I need to distance myself from these people before things spiral completely out of control¡
Act 2.11 (Chrysalis)
¡°Hahaha,¡± Alex burst into laughter, his glee practically echoing off the walls. ¡°My god, how can you be so good at everything you do?¡±
The group seemed utterly captivated by Lore Lovelace. She stood there like a shining beacon, her every word igniting their excitement. They looked at her like she was their leader, their muse, their golden ticket to¡ whatever this madness was supposed to be.
But instead of being swept up in the glow, I felt a chill creep into my heart.
Then, as if summoned by my very thoughts, Lore turned her gaze to me. Her eyes were sharp, unrelenting, the kind of look that felt like it was peeling away layers to get at something buried underneath. ¡°What do you think, North?¡±
I froze. Why me? Why not Alex? He¡¯s already halfway to worshipping you. Ask him!
I wasn¡¯t even remotely interested in her harebrained scheme, whatever it was. All I wanted was to shrug and give some noncommittal response, maybe mumble something about needing more coffee before I could form an opinion. But no. The weight of their stares pressed down on me like a lead blanket, the kind they use before an X-ray to make sure you don¡¯t accidentally radiate the rest of the hospital. Even Jade was watching intently, her silver eyes narrowed in that particular way that said don¡¯t mess this up. Maybe they thought I was the wise one, the voice of reason in the group? Fantastic. Peer pressure, thy name is ¡°a room full of people who think I know what I¡¯m doing.¡±
My shoulders slouched from all the invisible weight.
¡°It¡¯s¡ very good,¡± I said finally, keeping my tone as neutral as humanly possible. My face didn¡¯t twitch, didn¡¯t falter¡ªyears of dealing with awkward situations had given me the kind of poker face you could sell to a Vegas casino.
Lore tilted her head slightly, waiting for more, and the rest of the group leaned in, practically salivating for my next profound insight.
I furrowed my brow slightly, adopting what I hoped was a thoughtful expression. Maybe if I looked like I was taking her idea seriously, they¡¯d stop staring. ¡°Why don¡¯t I¡ add one more thing to camping?¡± I suggested calmly, my voice betraying none of my reluctance.
If they were going to dive headfirst into insanity, I wasn¡¯t about to let them think I was the odd one out.
¡°Whoever can take control of the entire villain gang wins,¡± I said, delivering the line with calculated confidence.
The group stared at me, a mixture of surprise and intrigue lighting up their faces.
¡°Whoa,¡± Alex said, eyes wide. ¡°That¡¯s¡ actually kind of brilliant.¡±
Lore¡¯s lips curled into a slow smile. ¡°Interesting twist. I didn¡¯t think you had it in you.¡±
Inside, I wanted to bang my head against a wall. Outside, I gave a slight shrug, like it was no big deal.
Fine. If someone was determined to leap off the metaphorical cliff, I might as well yank away their floaters while they¡¯re midair. That¡¯s just how I operated¡ªpetty by nature. Push me an inch? I¡¯ll shove you the rest of the way. Philosophy 101, courtesy of myself, North. As I was already at the short end of this cliff¡ªthank you, Lore¡ªI figured I might as well lean into it. If chaos was what they wanted, chaos was what I¡¯d give them. Wrapped up neatly, tied with a silver bow, and with a handwritten note saying, ¡°Enjoy!¡± Let¡¯s see who regretted it first.
¡°That¡¯s a very good idea,¡± Gina said, her voice practically sparkling with enthusiasm. She clapped her hands together, ¡°I knew we could rely on you¡ªyou¡¯re the best!¡±
My eye twitched involuntarily. It took every ounce of restraint not to roll it. It felt like watching a group of naive kids making increasingly reckless decisions, while all I could do was brace myself. Let¡¯s see how far this trainwreck would go. I could only hope for the best¡ªor at least that no one got themselves killed.
¡°Well,¡± Lore said, her tone smooth as ever, ¡°if we¡¯re going to do this, we¡¯ll need to approach it strategically. No haphazard attempts. We should each choose gangs that match our skillsets and let''s take a few days to do a through research.¡±
¡°Agreed,¡± Alex said, practically bouncing on his heels. ¡°This is going to be amazing. Think of all the intel we¡¯ll gather!¡±
As the group began to disperse, their heads buzzing with ambitious plans, I grabbed Jade¡¯s hand and pulled her along with me.
¡°You¡¯re finally taking me to your home,¡± she said, her voice bubbling with excitement. The corners of her lips lifted in a radiant smile that made it impossible to look away. Before I could even respond, she leaned in and planted a quick peck on my cheek.
I froze, blinking in surprise. My brain stalled. Was this really something to get excited about?
I glanced at her, utterly baffled, as she practically skipped beside me, her energy infectious. She seemed completely unfazed by my stunned reaction, her silver eyes sparkling as she swung our joined hands lightly between us.
To be honest, I didn¡¯t get it. Compared to Jade¡¯s house, mine wasn¡¯t much to write home about. It was small and cramped, nothing like her spacious place with its hanging plants, superhero-ready basement, and cozy corners for deep thoughts or tinkering with gadgets. My house didn¡¯t have ¡°character.¡± It had a living room that doubled as storage for Aunt Grace¡¯s endless knick-knacks and a kitchen where the microwave still had a blinking 12:00. But when I looked at Jade, I saw nothing but genuine enthusiasm radiating from her. My bafflement melted into mild embarrassment. Maybe she¡¯s not comparing, I thought. Maybe it¡¯s just the idea of being invited into my space that makes her happy.
And for some reason, that made me feel¡ warm. Warm and slightly awkward.
I felt her infiltrating more and more of my heart. And there wasn¡¯t a damn thing I could do about it.
Jade was practically bouncing on her tiptoes by the time I unlocked the front door. ¡°Is there anything I should know before stepping in?¡± she asked playfully, her eyes gleaming. ¡°Is your bedroom secretly a villain lair? Or is it one of those rooms where the floor is just clothes?¡±
¡°No villain lair,¡± I said dryly, rolling my eyes as I pushed the door open. ¡°And I¡¯m not that messy.¡±
¡°Hmm, I¡¯ll be the judge of that,¡± she teased, leaning in like she could peer through the door before I even unlocked it.
Finally, the lock clicked, and I pushed the door open. To my relief, the house was quiet. Aunt Grace was still at work, sparing me the awkward task of explaining why I¡¯d brought a girl home. Not that she¡¯d disapprove¡ªif anything, she¡¯d be thrilled¡ªbut I wasn¡¯t in the mood for her winking and nudging commentary. The house was quiet, the faint hum of the refrigerator the only sound. Jade stepped inside, her eyes scanning the small living room. She didn¡¯t say anything right away, just took it in, her expression thoughtful.
¡°Well?¡± I asked, breaking the silence. ¡°It¡¯s not much, but¡¡±
¡°It¡¯s cozy,¡± she said sincerely, her gaze flicking to me. ¡°I like it.¡±
I cleared my throat, gesturing vaguely toward the staircase. ¡°My room¡¯s upstairs,¡± I said.
She nodded, slipping off her shoes at the door without me needing to ask. Then she paused at the doorway, closing her eyes and taking a deep breath.
I found this habit of hers peculiar. She had a pattern of sniffing everything new, as if her nose needed to approve before her brain could process it. It wasn¡¯t even pleasant scents either¡ªif given the chance, I was pretty sure she¡¯d even sniff rotten eggs. Maybe it made her feel grounded or comfortable, like how some people bite their nails or chew their lips or maybe it was just Jade being Jade.
¡°Everything okay there, detective?¡± I asked, leaning casually against the doorframe.
She ignored me, stepping inside with an exaggerated air of curiosity. And before I could say anything else, she launched herself onto my bed, landing face-first in the blankets with a muffled fwump.
I froze for half a second, grateful I¡¯d taken the time to clean the room the day before, anticipating this visit. There was nothing for me to worry about¡ªeverything was in order and spotless¡ªno stray pants or jackets, no forgotten coffee mugs, no mystery crumbs lurking in the corners.
As expected, she grinned, then sniffed the air again like some sort of curious puppy exploring unfamiliar territory. ¡°It smells like you,¡± she said simply, her tone matter-of-fact.
I blinked. ¡°Uh¡ is that a good thing?¡±
Jade tilted her head, her silver eyes sparkling with amusement. ¡°I haven¡¯t decided yet.¡±
¡°Great,¡± I muttered, rolling my eyes as I sat down in the chair by my desk. ¡°So glad my personal scent is up for debate.¡±
She laughed, rolling onto her side and propping her head up on her hand. ¡°Don¡¯t take it personally. I just like to¡ catalog things.¡±
¡°Catalog?¡± I repeated, raising an eyebrow. ¡°What are you, a librarian?¡±
¡°Maybe,¡± she teased, wrinkling her nose playfully. ¡°I like knowing the details. Like how your bed smells like¡ lavender and¡¡± She paused, sniffing again dramatically, ¡°...cinnamon?¡±
¡°Laundry detergent,¡± I corrected. ¡°And maybe the air freshener Aunt Grace uses.¡±
¡°Mm-hmm,¡± she said, unconvinced. ¡°Sure.¡±
That¡¯s when it hit me: she didn¡¯t see me as a stranger anymore. Jade was entirely comfortable around me¡ªcomfortable enough to let this odd, curious side of herself come out without a second thought. It was endearing in a way I hadn¡¯t expected, and I found myself smiling despite the chaos she was causing. Placing both our bags on the table, I was about to sit quietly on the chair to watch her antics when she suddenly sprang up again. This time, she started scanning everything in the room with wide, curious eyes, as though every corner held a hidden treasure waiting to be discovered.
I watched in mild amusement as her focus shifted to my wardrobe. Without hesitation, she slid the door open and began rummaging through the contents. Her fingers flitted over shirts, jackets, and pants like she was appraising fine art.
¡°I guess, make yourself at home,¡± I muttered, leaning back in the chair.
She either didn¡¯t hear me or chose to ignore it, because she pulled out one of my sweatshirts, holding it up as if it were a prize.
After two minutes of shuffling, ¡°Can I have this?¡± she asked, her voice casual but tinged with excitement.
I blinked, caught off guard. The sweatshirt wasn¡¯t anything particularly special in my eyes. Sure, it was one of the unique pieces I¡¯d picked up from an artist recently, but it was nothing extraordinary. ¡°Uh¡ sure?¡±
Her grin widened, and she set the sweatshirt aside, then reached for another. By the time she was done, a small pile of my clothes had formed beside her¡ªsweatshirts, two expensive and fancy leather jackets, and even one of my hoodies.
I crossed my arms, raising an eyebrow as she inspected her haul. ¡°You planning to start a collection or something?¡±
She looked up at me with an innocent expression that was anything but. ¡°What? You¡¯ve already stolen two sets of my clothes. Fair¡¯s fair.¡±
Her words made me hide my face by diverting my attention at the window. Okay, fine, I admitted to myself. She¡¯s got a point. I still hadn¡¯t returned her clothes, and I wasn¡¯t planning to. They were just too comfortable¡ªlike wearing a cloud. I¡¯d even tried to find similar fabric online and failed miserably. Her wardrobe was basically luxury disguised as casual wear.
When her curiosity finally settled, she plopped down in front of me on the bed, her legs tucked under her as she tilted her head, staring at me like a curious cat.
¡°What?¡± I asked, raising an eyebrow as her gaze lingered.
¡°You,¡± she said simply, a small smile playing on her lips.
"Me?" I echoed.
She nodded.
My heart skipped a beat, and I leaned closer without thinking, our faces just inches apart. Her heartbeat seemed to sync with mine. I didn¡¯t know what it was about her in moments like this, but it felt like the world had slowed down, narrowing to just the two of us.
Two Hours Later¡
¡°Our hands are almost the same,¡± Jade murmured, her fingers entwined with mine as she compared them.
We were lying in my bed, under the blanket, bare, our bodies tangled together like they¡¯d been made to fit this way. This had practically become our everyday ritual over the past three weeks¡ªwrapped around each other like snakes and rabbits, fighting and teasing but never wanting to let go. Usually, this happened at her place where she lived alone, but today, we¡¯d broken routine. Between academy classes and these moments, we were spending more than fourteen hours a day together, and somehow, it still felt like the day was too short.
¡°But yours are prettier,¡± I noted, studying her fingers as they wove between mine. Her skin was softer, smoother, almost luminescent in the dim sunlight pouring through the curtains.
¡°Hehehe, how pretty?¡± she teased, her laughter light and mischievous as she turned her head to meet my gaze.
¡°Like¡ if angels did hand modeling,¡± I replied, pretending to be serious but cracking a grin. ¡°I mean, I¡¯m not an expert on celestial anatomy, but they¡¯d probably be jealous of you.¡±
She snorted, burying her face in the pillow for a moment before looking up at me with that radiant, uncontainable smile of hers. ¡°Angels? That¡¯s a lot of pressure. What if they revoke my wings because I keep smacking you with these ¡®pretty hands¡¯ every time you say something dumb?¡± The warmth of her breath brushed against my neck as she shifted closer, the blanket slipping slightly to reveal the curve of her shoulder, smooth and golden in the dim light filtering through the curtains.Unauthorized reproduction: this story has been taken without approval. Report sightings.
But without warning, the arrogant dragon returned in full force, aggressive as ever. Her silver eyes gleamed with a playful ferocity, and before I could react, her teeth found my shoulder¡ªnot hard enough to hurt, but enough to make me jolt. Sometimes, I wondered if she was secretly a vampire.
¡°Hey¡ªouch!¡± I yelped, my hand instinctively grabbing her waist as she laughed against my skin. Her giggle was light and breathy, the sound vibrating between us as she pressed closer, the softness of her chest brushing against mine.
¡°Let me go!¡± she teased, though the gleam in her eyes said she had no intention of stopping.
¡°Oh, you¡¯re asking for it now,¡± I growled playfully, twisting us over in a smooth motion. My hands found her hips, fingers sinking into the warmth of her skin as I rolled her beneath me.
Her laughter bubbled up again, wilder this time as she squirmed beneath me, her legs tangling with mine. The friction of our bodies, the press of her against me, made it hard to focus on anything but the way she felt¡ªsoft and warm, but strong, her muscles taut as she fought back. ¡°Surrender!¡± I demanded, breathless and grinning as I pinned her wrists above her head.
¡°Never!¡± she gasped, her chest rising and falling rapidly as she struggled in vain. Her skin glistened faintly.
Her resistance didn¡¯t last long though. Eventually, her strength gave way, and I managed to pin her properly, holding her wrists above her head while she lay sprawled beneath me. She was gasping for air, her chest rising and falling as she tried to catch her breath. The arrogant dragon had to be punished again. It never learned from its mistakes, and worse, it seemed to enjoy repeating them over and over¡ª though I was beginning to suspect it orchestrated these ¡®defeats¡¯ deliberately.
"You never learn, do you?" I said quietly. Her hair a wild mess sprawled across the pillow, and despite her ¡°defeat,¡± she had the most satisfied smirk on her face.
My other hand brushed along her jawline, my thumb skimming her warm, flushed cheek. Her skin was soft beneath my touch, and I felt the faintest shiver run through her.
Then her lips curved into a small smirk, though her breathing was uneven. "Maybe I just like losing to you," she murmured mischievously, her voice low, her breath mingling with mine as the space between us shrank. "Or maybe I''m just pretending."
¡°Is that so?" I asked, leaning down until my forehead nearly touched hers. ¡°Then keep dreaming.¡±
Her laughter bubbled up again, soft and genuine this time. ¡°Keep telling yourself that,¡± she said, poking my chest lightly. Then, with a sudden spark of defiance, she added, ¡°You know, if you weren¡¯t so cocky about it, I might actually let you win sometimes.¡±
¡°Oh, is that how it works now?¡± I asked, tilting my head ¡°You let me win?¡±
¡°Of course,¡± she said, grinning like she¡¯d just uncovered some secret truth. ¡°Maybe¡ I just like being close to you.¡±
My grip on her wrists loosened, and her hands slipped free. She didn¡¯t push me away, though; instead, her fingers trailed down my arm, slow and deliberate, leaving a trace of warmth in their wake. When her hand came to rest over my heart, she stayed there, her touch light but grounding, as if she was listening to the rhythm beneath. For a while, we just lay there, the tension from earlier replaced by a calm warmth. She rested her head against my shoulder, and I wrapped an arm around her, pulling her closer.
The arrogant dragon might never learn from its defeats, but maybe that was part of its charm.
As we settled back into the quiet comfort of the moment, she shifted slightly, propping herself up on one elbow. The blanket slipped down, exposing her shoulder to the cool air, and the way her silver eyes softened, catching the faint glow of sunlight through the window, made my heart flutter.
¡°You know,¡± Jade began, her voice barely above a whisper, ¡°I don¡¯t think I¡¯ve ever been this happy.¡±
I reached up, brushing a stray strand of hair from her face, letting my fingers linger against her temple.
¡°Me neither,¡± I said softly, my voice barely audible as I met her gaze. And it was true¡ªevery word. Nothing in my life had felt as vivid, as electric, as right as this.
For what felt like forever, we stayed that way. Neither of us moved, our bodies pressed close, our hearts beating in perfect sync. The world outside could have fallen apart, and I wouldn¡¯t have noticed. It was just us¡ªtwo souls wrapped in a cocoon of quiet intimacy, the kind that made time feel irrelevant. Her fingers brushed over my chest, tracing idle patterns, and I couldn¡¯t help but close my eyes, enjoying the sensation of her touch. ¡°Do you think it¡¯ll always be like this?¡± she asked, her tone laced with a rare fragility that made me want to hold her even tighter.
¡°It can be,¡± I said, tilting my head to press a kiss to her forehead. ¡°As long as we keep fighting for it.¡±
Her lips curved into a soft smile, ¡°I¡¯ll hold you to that.¡±
But the universe had other plans for us. Just as she settled back down, her body curling instinctively against mine, the sharp sound of a knock on the door shattered the stillness. We both froze, the spell broken in an instant.
¡°Seriously?¡± she groaned, burying her face in my chest like she could will the interruption away. ¡°Can¡¯t we just pretend we didn¡¯t hear it?¡±
I chuckled, though I shared her frustration. ¡°As tempting as that sounds, I don¡¯t think they¡¯re going to give up.¡±
With a sigh, I shifted out from under her, the loss of her warmth hitting me immediately. I sat on the edge of the bed, reaching for the clothes we¡¯d discarded hours earlier. She propped herself up again, her expression a mix of reluctance and amusement as she watched me.
¡°We need to go,¡± I said, glancing over my shoulder at her. The expression she made could have stopped my heart if I let it.
¡°Do we have to?¡± she whined, dragging the blanket up to her chin like a stubborn child. Her silver eyes sparkled with defiance, though the corners of her lips twitched with a hint of a grin.
¡°Yes, we have to,¡± I said, tossing her a towel along with her clothes. ¡°But you can pout all you want¡ªit¡¯s not going to change anything.¡±
She caught the towel, letting out a dramatic huff as she rolled off the bed. The blanket fell away as she stretched, her movements languid, deliberate, like she was trying to drag out every second of this. For a moment, I forgot to blink, staring at her. Her fingers trailed over my shoulder as she passed, breaking the spell. With a slight shake of my head, I grabbed my own clothes and headed downstairs, knowing I couldn¡¯t afford to take my time. Sure enough, as I entered the kitchen, Leo was already there, leaning against the counter with his arms crossed. His expression was a mix of impatience, the kind only a bored teenager could manage.
¡°What took you so long,¡± he complained as I walked past him to the downstairs bathroom.
¡°You¡¯re so annoying,¡± I shot back, closing the door behind me. "You could have come a little late."
About thirty minutes later, the three of us were strolling down the street, looking like we were out for a casual evening walk. The air was crisp, the sun beginning its descent.
I glanced at him out of the corner of my eye, half expecting him to burst into one of his usual rants about superheroes or villains, but instead, his gaze kept drifting toward Jade, who was now making her way down the stairs. Her damp hair was tied loosely over one shoulder, and the oversized hoodie she¡¯d stolen from my closet hung off her frame in a way that was almost annoyingly attractive.
Leo, clearly trying and failing to be subtle, sidled up next to me. He tugged at my sleeve, leaning in close like he had some top-secret mission to discuss.
¡°She¡¯s your girlfriend?¡± he whispered, his tone somewhere between awed and incredulous.
I couldn¡¯t help the grin that spread across my face. A smug sense of pride crept into my chest, ¡°What do you think?¡± I replied, letting my tone drip with arrogance.
Leo¡¯s face lit up, his grin so wide it was almost cartoonish. He gave me an enthusiastic thumbs up like this was some kind of achievement unlocked. ¡°Nice,¡± he said with exaggerated approval. Then, after a beat, he asked, ¡°She also goes to Beyonder¡¯s Academy?¡±
I nodded, keeping my answer short to see where this was going. Somehow, Leo¡¯s grin managed to double in size. He turned to glance at Jade again, and I could see the gears turning in his head
¡°She¡¯s¡ cool,¡± he said, his voice filled with genuine admiration. Then, after a pause, he added, ¡°Cooler than you, for sure.¡±
¡°Wow,¡± I said, turning to give him a flat look. ¡°Thanks for that boost of confidence.¡±
Leo waved me off like my feelings were irrelevant. His curiosity, as always, bulldozed past any semblance of tact. ¡°How¡¯d you even¡ªlike¡ªget her to like you?¡±
I raised an eyebrow, pretending to look hurt. ¡°What¡¯s that supposed to mean?¡±
"I mean, she¡¯s so¡ perfect,¡± he said, gesturing toward Jade. ¡°And pretty,¡± he added, which explained everything. He had developed a crush on her, I realized.
¡°Wow, Leo,¡± I said, folding my arms. ¡°You¡¯re making it sound like I¡¯m a charity case.¡±
He shrugged unapologetically. ¡°You said it, not me.¡±
Before I could come up with a scathing reply, Jade looked back, her eyes flicking between us. ¡°What are you two whispering about?¡±
¡°Nothing!¡± Leo said quickly, his voice shooting up an octave. Then, clearly unable to help himself, he turned to her with the enthusiasm of a puppy. ¡°You¡¯re really cool. Like, really cool. Cooler than him, for sure.¡±
Jade raised an eyebrow, her lips curving into an amused smile as she looked at me. ¡°Is that so?¡±
¡°Apparently,¡± I said, throwing my hands up. ¡°I don¡¯t know why I keep this guy around.¡±
¡°Because I tell you the truth,¡± Leo quipped, grinning like he¡¯d just delivered the punchline of a joke.
Jade laughed, her silver eyes sparkling, looking at me, ¡°You''re right. He¡¯s annoying and not cool as me, still he¡¯s not that bad.¡±
¡°See?¡± I said, turning back to Leo with a victorious smirk. ¡°She likes me.¡±
Leo rolled his eyes, muttering, ¡°Yeah, yeah. I still don¡¯t get it, but good for you, man.¡±
Then, as if realizing he¡¯d said too much, his face flushed slightly, and he mumbled something under his breath¡ªtoo quiet for me to catch¡ªbefore stepping back, putting a little space between himself and us. It was the classic move of a kid trying to play it cool while clearly being overwhelmed. To Leo, this must have felt like the ultimate dream come true¡ªnot just one, but two people from Beyonder¡¯s Academy hanging out with him, walking by his side like it was no big deal. I could practically see the gears in his head spinning, his thoughts racing through all the possibilities.
As we continued down the street, a strange thought crossed my mind. Could Jade¡¯s abilities extend to manipulating possibilities to such a degree that she could influence how another person¡¯s meta nature would form? It was a fascinating, albeit slightly unsettling, concept. Experimenting with something like that would have been exhilarating, but of course, I wasn¡¯t Jade, and her meta nature wasn¡¯t mine to wield.
Still, I knew better than to voice such thoughts aloud. The idea alone could make me seem villainous¡ªlike someone willing to cross moral lines for curiosity¡¯s sake.
The thought led me down a darker path, and I suddenly felt a strange pang of sympathy. Isn¡¯t this what supervillains often did? Challenge the norms of their world, ask questions that society didn¡¯t want to answer? And for that defiance, they were labeled as villains of humanity and relentlessly hunted. How pitiful. Of course, not all villains were guided by philosophical ideals or the need to challenge societal constructs. That was only a small percentage of them. Most villains, in my perspective, turned to crime out of fear, desperation, or pain. They did bad things because they were scared of losing something, lacked what they needed to survive, or had been hurt so deeply that they lashed out against the world.
The truly evil¡ªthe ones who committed crimes for the sake of chaos or to spread suffering¡ªwere rare. Their existence was more a reflection of the darkness humanity tried to suppress than a norm.
¡°Are there villains in this area?¡± Jade asked, her tone laced with curiosity and unmistakable excitement. ¡°Are we going to hunt them?¡±
Of course, she¡¯d phrase it like that¡ªhunt, not catch or stop, but hunt, like villains were wild animals meant to be chased down for sport. Where is your humanity hiding, my precious Jade? I wondered silently, suppressing the urge to roll my eyes.
Outwardly, I kept my composure. ¡°I thought we¡¯d just go on a walk today, like other couples,¡± I said, glancing at her. ¡°You don¡¯t like it?¡± I wanted to see how she¡¯d react.
Jade didn¡¯t hesitate. She slipped her arm around mine, her sudden closeness making my heartbeat falter for a moment. ¡°I like everything I do with you,¡± she said simply, her voice calm but unwavering.
My body stiffened as warmth crept into my face. From the corner of my eye, I noticed Leo biting his lip, trying¡ªand failing¡ªnot to burst into laughter. I shot him a glare that clearly said, don¡¯t even think about it, then turned back to Jade.
Silently, I begged her with my eyes not to say things like that in front of other people. She either didn¡¯t notice or didn¡¯t care.
I cleared my throat, desperately trying to regain some semblance of composure. ¡°There is one person in the area,¡± I said, steering the conversation back to safer ground. ¡°Hiding in the city tunnel. Leo¡¯s seen him stealing a few times over the past couple of weeks.¡±
Jade¡¯s eyes sharpened, her focus immediately narrowing. ¡°Is he alone?¡±
¡°No,¡± I said, relieved to have redirected her attention. ¡°It¡¯s a gang. The Tunnel Underground gang. Most of their members have bug-related meta natures.¡±
¡°Bugs?¡± Jade¡¯s nose scrunched slightly. ¡°That¡¯s¡ unsettling.¡±
Leo, who had been uncharacteristically quiet up until now, suddenly spoke up. ¡°Why do people even join gangs when they could use their powers to earn money? It¡¯s so odd.¡±
His question lingered in the air, and I glanced at him, considering my response. He wasn¡¯t wrong¡ªon the surface, it did seem strange. But life was rarely that simple. Leo¡¯s reasoning was straightforward, the kind of perspective that comes from someone who hasn¡¯t yet seen the broader complexities of the world.
I nodded thoughtfully, deciding to guide him toward a deeper understanding. ¡°Money only matters to those who can¡¯t live comfortably day to day,¡± I said, keeping my tone measured. ¡°But once someone earns enough to live well, they start craving something else. They can¡¯t just sit still, doing the same thing over and over for the rest of their lives.¡±
Leo furrowed his brow slightly, his young mind trying to grasp the concept.
¡°So, most people look for adventures,¡± I continued. ¡°Something to break the monotony, to stimulate themselves, to escape the cycle. Sure, they could join a reading group or take up gardening¡ªthere are hundreds of normal activities for that. But let me ask you this: What would thrill you more¡ªjumping from the sky or cycling?¡±
¡°Skydiving,¡± Leo answered immediately, his face lighting up.
¡°Exactly,¡± I said with a small smile. ¡°That doesn¡¯t mean people who enjoy cycling don¡¯t get satisfaction from it. Everyone has their own preferences, their own purpose. But for some, the ordinary isn¡¯t enough¡ªthey need something extraordinary. Now, let me ask you both: What could be more exciting than skydiving?¡±
¡°Going to the moon!¡± Leo exclaimed, his enthusiasm unshaken.
I chuckled, shaking my head before turning my gaze to Jade. ¡°And you?¡±
¡°Robbing a bank,¡± she said without hesitation, her expression as serious as ever.
Leo burst out laughing, and I couldn¡¯t help but smile as well. Leave it to Jade to cut straight to something outrageous. In a twisted way, she wasn¡¯t wrong.
¡°Exactly,¡± I said, catching their attention again. ¡°But most people don¡¯t want to associate themselves with villains or criminals. So instead, they create clubs and social circles with niche habits¡ªsafe outlets for their thrills.¡±
Leo¡¯s laughter faded as he mulled over my words, the gears in his head clearly turning.
I paused, watching their reactions carefully. ¡°Have either of you heard of the Spade Society?¡±
Jade shook her head dismissively, but Leo¡¯s eyes lit up with recognition.
¡°I¡¯ve heard of them,¡± he said eagerly, practically bouncing on his feet. ¡°They hold cryptic contests for their members every month. The members have to find and solve clues in the real world to win prizes. I read about them on Hyperspace.¡±
I nodded, pleased by his awareness. ¡°Exactly. The Spade Society is a perfect example of how people channel their desire for excitement without crossing certain lines. They seek thrills, but they do it in a way that keeps them just this side of the law¡ªor at least, that¡¯s what they¡¯d like you to believe.¡±
Then I turned to Leo, a teasing smirk forming on my lips. ¡°You wanted to join them, didn¡¯t you?¡±
¡°What?¡± Leo shot back defensively, his voice a little too high-pitched. ¡°They sound fun!¡±
Jade chuckled softly beside me, and I just shook my head, letting a small smile tug at my lips. ¡°Exactly¡ªthey are fun. But now, think about people who aren¡¯t like you. People who are depressed, hurt, or feel completely lost. How would they find their purpose?¡±
Leo¡¯s expression shifted, his curiosity still there but now tinged with thoughtfulness.
¡°For those people,¡± I continued, my tone more serious now, ¡°a gang isn¡¯t just about committing crimes. Most of the time, they don¡¯t have anyone to support them, no one to guide them toward the light. Villains and gangs scout them out, offer them a sense of belonging. A way to feel seen. Sometimes, that¡¯s all it takes for someone to fall into the wrong crowd.¡±
Leo looked down at the ground as he walked, clearly mulling over my words. ¡°So¡ they don¡¯t join because they¡¯re bad people?¡±
¡°Not always,¡± I said gently. ¡°Some are, sure. But for others, it¡¯s about survival. Or feeling like they matter, like they have a purpose¡ªeven if that purpose is destructive.¡±
Jade chimed in, her voice quieter than usual. ¡°It¡¯s easy to judge people when you¡¯re on the outside looking in. But when you¡¯re the one struggling, it¡¯s a lot harder to see a way out.¡±
I was slightly surprised when Jade said that, once again making me wonder about her story.
Leo frowned, his brow furrowed as he tried to piece it all together.
The wheels in his head were clearly turning, and I gave him a moment to process before adding, ¡°And the crimes they commit? They give those people an outlet¡ªa way to release their anger, their pain. For some, it¡¯s a temporary detour, and they eventually realize they¡¯re on the wrong path. They try to change.¡±
I paused, letting the weight of the words sink in before continuing. ¡°But for others? They get stuck. Deeper and deeper into the cycle, unable to break free.¡±
Leo nodded slowly, the frown on his face deepening. He didn¡¯t say anything, and I didn¡¯t push. Sometimes silence was the best way for someone to really absorb an idea.
I glanced over at Jade, who had been quiet during this part of the conversation. Her silver eyes were unreadable, but I hoped she was taking it in too. Maybe she¡¯d reflect on it later, start seeing things from a broader perspective. Jade had a sharp mind and a strong heart, but sometimes she could be quick to judge. This wasn¡¯t just for her own good¡ªit was for the people she might encounter along the way, the ones who needed understanding and empathy, not just her fiery determination.
Life wasn¡¯t black and white. It was messy, complicated, and filled with shades of gray. My understanding might not have been perfect¡ªthere were probably nuances and experiences I hadn¡¯t considered¡ªbut it wasn¡¯t about being right.
This was about planting seeds. Seeds that might help them see the world a little differently when the time came. The rest? That would be up to them.
I let the quiet linger for a few more seconds before clapping my hands together, breaking the tension. ¡°So,¡± I said, my voice light but with just enough edge to snap them out of their thoughts, ¡°who wants to enter the sewers first?¡±
Jade raised an eyebrow at me, her lips twitching into a faint smirk. ¡°You¡¯re volunteering, aren¡¯t you?¡±
¡°Absolutely not!¡±
Act 2.12 (Chrysalis)
¡°So, who wants to enter the sewers first?¡± I asked, doing my best to sound as casual and nonchalant as possible.
Both Leo and Jade turned to me with synchronized looks of sheer horror and disbelief. It was as if I¡¯d just suggested we kick a puppy¡ªor worse, that we adopt a sewer rat as a pet¡ªnot that I¡¯d ever do such a thing.
¡°Ew,¡± Leo made a sound so disgusted and unnatural, it barely seemed human. Meanwhile, Jade¡¯s face scrunched up in visible revulsion as she tried to read my expression, probably hoping I wasn¡¯t serious.
It didn¡¯t take long for me to realize why they were reacting this way. I sighed, pinching the bridge of my nose. Of course, this was their reaction. It didn¡¯t take a genius to figure out what had them so repulsed.
¡°It¡¯s not the sanitary sewer,¡± I clarified, ¡°We¡¯re not diving into raw sewage here. That would be suicidal¡ªwhat with the toxic gases and, you know, all the other delightful things swirling around down there. We¡¯re entering the storm drain system, completely different from the sewer system. The city planned it this way¡ªbig, open, dry most of the time. It¡¯s built to handle the massive supernatural storms that roll in from the ocean. Rainwater goes in, water gets drained out. Simple.¡±
Leo blinked at me, his head tilting slightly as though trying to process this new information. ¡°So¡ no poop?¡±
¡°No poop,¡± I said firmly.
Jade crossed her arms, still looking skeptical. ¡°And no¡ other stuff?¡±
¡°Correct. No other stuff.¡±
They exchanged a look, clearly still a little grossed out but no longer on the verge of outright mutiny.
I leaned back slightly, shaking my head. ¡°Honestly, how do you two not know this? We all studied city infrastructure in school. Did you sleep through that entire semester?¡±
Leo rubbed the back of his neck, avoiding my gaze. ¡°I mean¡ yeah, kind of.¡±
Jade shrugged. ¡°It wasn¡¯t on the test.¡±
I rolled my eyes. ¡°This is why people think the world¡¯s ending when they see a storm drain overflow during a downpour. It¡¯s literally doing its job, but nope¡ª¡®end of days¡¯ panic.¡±
Leo raised his hand like a kid in class. ¡°Uh, to be fair, it does look kinda scary.¡±
¡°Thank you, Professor Doom,¡± I muttered, shooting him a look.
We walked along the road until we reached the storm drain. The three of us stood around the heavy manhole cover, its surface scuffed and weathered from years of wear. With a shared nod, we crouched down, gripping the edges and carefully lifting it together. It came free with a metallic groan, revealing a dark void below. The faint sound of running water echoed up to greet us, carrying a cool, damp breeze that smelled faintly of mildew and rain-soaked concrete.
By my calculations, there shouldn¡¯t have been much water inside¡ªnothing dangerous, at least. But then again, storm drains had a way of surprising you.
¡°Remember,¡± I said firmly, looking at both Leo and Jade. ¡°We¡¯re going down to investigate. If we sense any danger, we hide. Then we get back up immediately. No hesitation.¡±
¡°I mean it,¡± I continued, locking eyes with Jade in particular. Her confidence was a double-edged sword. ¡°No lone hero stunts, no wandering off. We stick together.¡±
¡°I got it,¡± Jade replied, waving me off. ¡°Relax, mom.¡±
Leo snorted, but my glare silenced him quickly.
Bringing Leo along was already a stretch, and I knew it bordered on irresponsibility. He didn¡¯t have a meta nature yet, and there were countless ways this could go wrong. But if he wanted to learn, he had to start somewhere. A part of me wondered if I should¡¯ve waited¡ªgiven him more time to grow, to discover his abilities. He had four years to build his portfolio for the academy. What was the rush? But then again, people like Henry, Alex, Vinico, Gina, and Lore must have faced similar challenges before they became the legends they were at Beyonder¡¯s Academy. Growth didn¡¯t come from sitting comfortably¡ªit came from stepping into the unknown, even the dangerous.
I took the lead, gripping the cold metal rungs of the ladder as I descended into the storm drain. The air grew damper with each step, the smell thickening into a cocktail of mildew, rust, and wet stone. It clung to my skin like an unwelcome second layer, making me want to peel it off.
Leo came down last, his footsteps hesitant on the rungs. ¡°Is it just me,¡± he whispered nervously, ¡°or does it feel like we¡¯re walking into the start of a horror movie?¡±
¡°It¡¯s not a horror movie,¡± I said, glancing over my shoulder at him. ¡°In horror movies, people split up. We¡¯re smarter than that, right?¡±
Leo didn¡¯t look entirely convinced, but he nodded anyway. ¡°Right¡ smarter than that.¡±
When we reached the bottom, our shoes splashed softly against the damp concrete floor. The dim light from above barely penetrated the darkness, but the beam from my flashlight cut through the shadows, illuminating the tunnel ahead. The storm drain was wide enough to stand comfortably, with thick concrete walls streaked by years of water stains. Tiny rivulets of water trickled along the edges, feeding into shallow pools that shimmered under the flashlight¡¯s glow.
¡°See?¡± I said, gesturing to the relatively dry path ahead. ¡°Not so bad.¡±
¡°Speak for yourself,¡± Jade quipped, adjusting her footing to avoid a puddle. ¡°This place feels like it¡¯s been waiting for something to crawl out and grab us.¡±
Leo shivered at her words, his eyes darting nervously around the tunnel. ¡°Not helping.¡±
I sighed, pressing forward. ¡°Alright, keep it down. If there¡¯s anyone down here, we don¡¯t want to announce ourselves. Stay close.¡±
After a few minutes, Leo complained again, "It smells so bad¡± .
¡°Didn¡¯t you want to be a hero?¡± I scoffed, glancing back at him. ¡°You can still go back up and wait for us to return.¡±
Leo shook his head stubbornly, his expression a mix of determination and disgust. ¡°No way. I¡¯m not chickening out.¡±
¡°Suit yourself,¡± I said with a shrug,
I led the way with the flashlight, keeping my steps steady and quiet. Leo followed in the middle, his nose still wrinkled in distaste, and Jade brought up the rear, her movements light and calculated.
¡°What are we looking for though?¡± Leo asked after a few moments, his voice echoing faintly in the damp tunnel.
¡°Small animals,¡± I replied, keeping my eyes trained on the path ahead. ¡°Mice, cockroaches, snakes, bugs¡ªanything that might be controlled by a meta nature. If we see them heading in a certain direction, we follow.¡±
¡°Great,¡± Leo muttered under his breath. ¡°Because this couldn¡¯t get creepier.¡±
The air hung heavy with moisture, each breath carrying the faint taste of mildew and rust. Water dripped intermittently from above, the sound punctuating the steady trickle of the stream running down the center. Our footsteps echoed softly against the wet, uneven surface, the tunnel amplifying every sound until even the faintest shuffle seemed unnaturally loud.
¡°Stay alert,¡± I said softly, my voice firm but calm. ¡°The quieter it gets, the more we need to watch out.¡±
Leo¡¯s eyes widened slightly, and he glanced around as if expecting something to leap out of the shadows. ¡°Why quieter?¡± he asked, his voice dropping to match mine.
¡°Because if there¡¯s something down here, it¡¯ll go quiet to listen for us,¡± I explained. ¡°Predators don¡¯t make noise unless they¡¯re ready to strike.¡±
Immediately, Leo shivered glancing around and Inched closer to me.
We wandered through the tunnels in near silence, our footsteps echoing faintly as we turned left and right at random intersections. By the time an hour had passed, I checked my phone and realized we¡¯d walked over three kilometers. Despite the distance, we¡¯d found nothing remotely interesting. The tunnels were eerily quiet, with the steady trickle of water flowing peacefully down the center as our only constant companion. Occasionally, we spotted mice or rodents scurrying along the edges, but they were quick to vanish into cracks and crevices, too elusive for us to follow. Leo had tried once, crouching down and calling softly to a mouse like it might stop and have a chat, but the creature darted off before he even finished saying, ¡°Hey, little guy!¡±
Still, there was a strange feeling gnawing at the back of my mind. It was as if something¡ªsomeone¡ªwas watching us. Not directly, but through the eyes of those mice or through something unseen. The thought lingered for a moment before I dismissed it.
The world doesn¡¯t revolve around us, I reminded myself. I wasn¡¯t the main character in some grand, secret narrative where every shadow hid a spy or every mouse carried a hidden camera. If I were, I¡¯d probably never leave my house, too paranoid about stumbling into an incredible conspiracy or being dragged into a decades-long underground scheme.
That kind of life sounded exhausting. Constant battles, endless stress¡ªwho even had the mental stamina for that? Only people lacking serious self-reflection could survive such chaos.
Fortunately, everyone had their own lives.
Things happened and the world kept turning, whether I existed or not.
It was a comforting thought, one that helped me shake off the paranoia as we trudged forward.
Eventually, we climbed out through another manhole, emerging into the fresh evening air. It felt oddly liberating after the damp, oppressive atmosphere of the tunnels. I checked my phone again to get our bearings and realized we were about five kilometers from where we¡¯d started.
¡°We¡¯ve searched quite a bit today,¡± I told Jade and Leo, brushing off my hands. ¡°Next time, we¡¯ll cover other sections of the tunnel.¡±
That said, I wasn¡¯t confident our aimless wandering would yield any results. Without clear clues or leads, we were just running in circles. What we needed was someone to follow¡ªpreferably a member of the Tunnel Underground gang. An idea began to form in my mind, but I decided to save it for the next day. Meanwhile, Jade had begun sniffing herself and her clothes, her nose wrinkling in obvious disgust. She looked up at me with her signature innocent expression, her silver eyes wide and imploring. ¡°Me and my clothes¡ªboth smell!¡± she declared, her voice carrying just the right amount of melodrama.
Her face was so adorably pitiful that I found myself staring, caught off guard by the sheer cuteness of her complaint.
¡°Well,¡± I said, snapping myself out of it before Leo could catch me zoning out. ¡°We¡¯re all going home now, and unfortunately, I don¡¯t have any self-cleaning powers, so I don¡¯t have a solution for you.¡±
She pouted, crossing her arms as if my lack of magical hygiene abilities was somehow a personal failing.A case of literary theft: this tale is not rightfully on Amazon; if you see it, report the violation.
After thinking for a moment, I suggested, ¡°How about we book a hotel for the night? Just to take a bath and freshen up.¡±
Jade¡¯s face lit up immediately, her earlier pout vanishing like it had never existed. ¡°Yes! Let¡¯s do that!¡±
Leo perked up as well, nodding enthusiastically. ¡°Please. I can¡¯t show up at home smelling like I crawled through a dumpster.¡±
I nodded. It wasn¡¯t the ideal solution, but it was the best we had. At least we¡¯d end the day clean¡ªand I wouldn¡¯t have to come up with an excuse to Aunt Grace for why I smelled like I¡¯d been rolling around in a sewer.
Dinner at home with Aunt Grace was quiet, the occasional clink of utensils and the faint dialogue of her favorite TV drama filling the air. She seemed preoccupied with whatever plot twist was unraveling on-screen, so I was grateful she wasn¡¯t bombarding me with questions about where I¡¯d been all day.
The silence was oddly comforting, but it didn¡¯t last. As I got up to wash the dishes, Aunt Grace¡¯s voice cut through the quiet.
¡°You know,¡± she began, her tone light but laced with curiosity. ¡°When I came home earlier, it smelled quite nice. Like someone secretly brought a girl home.¡±
My grip on the plate faltered slightly, but I recovered quickly, turning to her with the most nonchalant expression I could muster. ¡°Must be your nose,¡± I replied, my voice as casual as I could manage.
Her eyebrow rose, her gaze sharpening. ¡°Oh, really?¡±
I nodded firmly, dodging her probing stare as I darted toward the sink. ¡°Maybe you¡¯re just imagining things,¡± I added over my shoulder, scrubbing a plate with slightly more enthusiasm than necessary.
Grace let out a huff of mild irritation, but I could tell she wasn¡¯t buying it. ¡°Hmm. I don¡¯t imagine things, you know.¡±
¡°Well, there¡¯s a first time for everything,¡± I quipped, hiding a smirk as I focused on the dishes.
Her muttered response was lost beneath the sound of running water, but I could feel her eyes still on me as I finished cleaning up.
By the time I escaped to my room, I couldn¡¯t help but feel a small sense of victory. Grace might be sharp, but I wasn¡¯t going to hand her ammunition that easily. At least, not tonight.
After dinner, I spent the next two hours scrolling through HyperSpace, falling into my usual routine. I alternated between chatting with Jade, reading old posts about different meta natures, and scanning the news for anything that might be relevant. Every now and then, I¡¯d search for mentions of magical meta natures¡ªnot common, but they popped up occasionally in discussions. I also checked my own post for replies. As expected, there were a few personal messages, most of which turned out to be scams. Over time, I¡¯d gotten pretty good at spotting these grifters. Desperation, as they say, breeds ingenuity¡ªand apparently, so does dealing with internet scammers.
But one message stood out. The username, ¡®DoingDirty,¡¯ was¡ interesting, to say the least. Unlike the usual spam, the sender hadn¡¯t asked for money¡ªnot upfront, at least. That was unusual.
The message read:
"I know a person with magical meta nature. Though, he¡¯s a reclusive old man and hates company. But, nowadays, he¡¯s searching for something. I recently had the pleasure to meet him personally and we talked, though I was unable to fulfill his request. I saw your post and thought perhaps you might be of some help with what he¡¯s looking for. Hit me up if you want to go through."
I stared at the message, rereading it carefully. The username alone should¡¯ve been a red flag, but the content intrigued me. It was specific enough to sound legitimate¡ªor at least not outright ridiculous.
Still, caution came naturally these days. I tapped my fingers on the desk as I considered my options. The message wasn¡¯t demanding money or personal details right away, and it didn¡¯t seem to be one of those typical ¡°enlarge your powers instantly¡± scams. But there was always the possibility it was a bait-and-switch.
Jade¡¯s chat pinged again, breaking my train of thought.
Jade: What¡¯s got you so quiet? Lost in the rabbit hole of HyperSpace again?
Me: Maybe. Found a lead on something, but it smells a bit off.
Jade: Everything on HyperSpace smells off. Comes with the territory.
Me: True. But this one seems¡ interesting. Think I should bite?
Jade: Why not? You¡¯re not committing to anything just by replying. Besides, if it¡¯s a scam, I¡¯ll help you track down the grifter and scare them straight.
Her casual confidence made me smile. Jade could turn anything into an adventure.
Me: Alright, I¡¯ll give it a shot. If I go missing, avenge me.
Jade: You¡¯re so dramatic.
Shaking my head, I returned to the message from DoingDirty and clicked on the reply button.
"I¡¯m interested. Can you tell me more about this old man and what he¡¯s looking for?"
I hit send, then leaned back in my chair. Whether this would lead anywhere or not, it was better than aimlessly wandering tunnels without a plan. If nothing else, it would give me something to think about while I waited for tomorrow¡¯s adventure to begin.
After that I decided to log off for the night, it was already twelve.
And when I logged in the next morning, I found a reply waiting for me from DoingDirty. I couldn¡¯t help but chuckle at the username. Just don¡¯t do me dirty in real life, I thought, opening the message.
The content was straight to the point:
"Glad you¡¯re interested. The old man is looking for a way to extend his lifespan. He¡¯s been searching for years and even went through the White Palace in recent years. You strike me as resourceful from your post. If you can help him, he might just owe you a big one."
Extend his lifespan? My eyes lingered on the words, the weight of the task sinking in.
Even with all humanity¡¯s advancements¡ªmetahumans, miraculous genetics research, new tech¡ªthe human lifespan still had a limit. Two hundred years, give or take. Beyond that, death claimed its due, regardless of power or wealth. Life extension or immortality-related meta natures were extraordinarily rare, their existence carefully guarded by governments, corporations, and the most secretive of organizations.
If this old man was searching so openly, he had to be desperate.
I leaned back, drumming my fingers on the desk. I¡¯d come across whispers during my time cycles¡ªrumors of methods to extend life. Some sounded like myths, others like the sort of schemes desperate people clung to. I¡¯d never pursued them. The burden of living through multiple cycles had been enough. Who would willingly sign up for more of this?
Still, this was intriguing. If the old man had been searching for years, he might have accumulated information worth knowing¡ªpieces of the puzzle I could use for my own purposes. A favor from someone with magical meta nature could be invaluable: protection spells, enhanced powers, or rare knowledge.
I tapped out a reply quickly:
"Can you provide me with the exact address or directions to meet this old sorcerer?"
Barely a moment passed before my phone vibrated with a response:
¡®742 Maplewood Drive.¡¯
I frowned slightly, recognizing the North district address. That area wasn¡¯t just well-off¡ªit was the kind of place where wealth practically radiated from the cobblestones. The old man was clearly rich, and if he could afford a house there, he¡¯d likely made a fortune with his abilities.
As for why the guy who messaged me was helping, three possibilities came to mind:
First, he could simply be a troll, spinning an elaborate story for his own amusement, knowing he¡¯d never have to face the fallout.
Second, he might be acting as a middleman, hoping to curry favor or earn a reward from the sorcerer by bringing someone useful.
And third¡ªthe most concerning¡ªthis could all be a trap. Perhaps there were people who wanted me dead for reasons I couldn¡¯t yet fathom.
The truth, however, could only be confirmed by going to the address.
Still, I wasn¡¯t overly concerned. My Likeness had been showing signs of growth and fortune recently, and I trusted my ability to handle whatever came my way. Why not? There weren¡¯t many things that could deter me from my goals. Well, unless my Likeness decided to swap in a black coffin, dark fog, or ominous swords dripping with blood hanging overhead. Then I might reconsider.
At the academy in the afternoon, I was enjoying lunch with Jade. She¡¯d brought something homemade¡ªan unusual occurrence¡ªand her nervousness about having me taste it only made me more curious. She placed a small box on the table, her hands fidgeting slightly as she pushed it toward me. ¡°Here,¡± she said, trying to sound casual but failing to hide the tension in her voice. Inside the box was a single cupcake, meticulously presented. She handed me a spoon, her silver eyes glued to my every movement. ¡°It¡¯s nothing fancy,¡± she muttered, clearly bracing herself for judgment.
I picked up the spoon, taking a closer look at her creation. The texture looked spot-on, with a soft crumb and smooth frosting. Sliding the spoon through the cupcake, I cut a small slice and placed it in my mouth.
Hazelnut.
The taste was sweet, not just from the sugar, but from the effort and care she had poured into making it. I could tell she must have practiced this recipe several times to get it right¡ªthere wasn¡¯t a single burned edge or inconsistency. This was no small feat for Jade.
By the time I finished the cupcake, I realized I hadn¡¯t actually said anything about it yet. Jade was still watching me intently.
¡°It was very good,¡± I said finally, raising my hand and spreading my fingers wide for emphasis. ¡°Five stars.¡±
Her expression brightened, though she still seemed hesitant. ¡°You think so?¡± she asked, her voice soft, but her face was already beginning to light up.
¡°Really?¡± she asked, her tone softening.
¡°Really,¡± I said firmly, taking another bite. ¡°You nailed it. Perfect balance of flavor, texture¡ªeverything.¡±
She let out a breath she¡¯d clearly been holding. ¡°Good. I wasn¡¯t sure if I¡¯d gotten it right. The first few batches were¡¡± She trailed off, making a face.
¡°Terrible?¡± I guessed, laughing.
She shot me a playful glare. ¡°They weren¡¯t that bad. Just¡ maybe a little burnt.¡±
¡°A little?¡±
¡°Okay, a lot,¡± she admitted, laughing along.
The fact that she¡¯d put in this much effort just for me wasn¡¯t lost on me. Jade, who lived on five-star meals and effortless elegance, had stepped into the kitchen and battled against her lack of experience¡ªprobably with a fire extinguisher nearby¡ªto create something meaningful.
A simple praise was all it took. Her face broke into the brightest smile I¡¯d ever seen, her confidence blooming like a flower in sunlight.
Maybe this is love, I thought. Doing things for someone else that you wouldn¡¯t usually do.
Jade had stepped out of her comfort zone, experimenting with baking¡ªof all things¡ªjust to make something for me. The effort behind that cupcake was tangible, and it hit me like a punch to the gut. What had I done for her lately? A pang of guilt tightened in my chest. Sure, I¡¯d been there for her in big ways¡ªsupporting her, fighting alongside her¡ªbut small gestures like this? I¡¯d been slacking.
How infuriating, I thought, half-scolding myself. I resolved right then to make something for her next time. A meal, a gift, something. It was only fair.
Jade¡¯s voice broke my train of thought. ¡°Are we entering the tunnels again?¡±
I shook my head. ¡°No. I¡¯ve got some other work to do.¡±
Her shoulders slouched slightly in disappointment, but she quickly looked back up at me, her curiosity reigniting. ¡°You found the leads on the magic meta nature?¡±
I nodded. She knew about my search from a call we¡¯d had two weeks ago, so it wasn¡¯t surprising that she¡¯d ask. ¡°Someone in the North district,¡± I explained. ¡°An old man, apparently on his last breath. I¡¯m going to meet him.¡±
¡°Can I come too?¡± she asked, her tone laced with eagerness and a spark of excitement.
I paused, considering it. Truthfully, I needed someone to watch my back. I couldn¡¯t fully trust the person who¡¯d messaged me online¡ªthere was always the chance this was some elaborate setup. Having Jade with me wasn¡¯t just reassuring; it was practical. With her luck and meta abilities, she was the best contingency plan anyone could ask for.
¡°Sure,¡± I said with a small nod. ¡°Why not?¡±
Of course, there was also a selfish reason behind my decision¡ªI wanted to spend more time with her. Her company was something I genuinely enjoyed. With her by my side, whatever lay ahead didn¡¯t seem quite as daunting.
Once the academy ended, I booked a cab for our ride to the North district. As the car sped through the city, weaving past traffic and skyscrapers, I mentally reviewed the next part of the plan. This wasn¡¯t just about showing up¡ªI needed to leave an impression, the kind that made people think twice before dismissing me. I couldn¡¯t just appear as some random person off the street. In this dangerous world, where reputation and connections carried as much weight as power, no one would take me seriously¡ªespecially given my relatively limited abilities.
To make the most of this opportunity, I decided to act as though I were part of an organization. A sense of legitimacy was crucial, not just for gaining trust but also for reaping any potential benefits. People respected authority, systems, and the implication that there was a network of people behind you. It added layers of mystery and leverage.
Jade, sitting beside me, broke the silence. ¡°What¡¯s your plan when we get there?¡±
I glanced at her, appreciating her straightforwardness. ¡°I¡¯m going to present myself as part of a group¡ªa fixer organization that specializes in solving niche problems.¡±
She raised an eyebrow, her silver eyes sharp with curiosity. ¡°A fixer organization? Since when do you have one of those?¡±
I smirked. ¡°Since five minutes ago. It¡¯s not about having one¡ªit¡¯s about making them believe I do.¡±
She let out a soft laugh, shaking her head. ¡°You¡¯re unbelievable. What¡¯s the name of this imaginary organization?¡±
I hesitated for a moment. ¡°It¡¯s still¡ under development.¡±
Jade rolled her eyes. ¡°Right. Just don¡¯t call it something stupid like ¡®The Solution Squad¡¯ or I¡¯m walking out the door.¡±
¡°Noted,¡± I replied, chuckling.
The cab pulled into the North district, and the contrast was immediate. The streets were wider, lined with perfectly trimmed hedges and pristine sidewalks. Houses here weren¡¯t just homes¡ªthey were estates, sprawling and imposing, each exuding wealth and influence.
Jade leaned closer to the window, her gaze scanning the neighborhood. ¡°Fancy,¡± she murmured.
Act 2.13 (Chrysalis)
The driver dropped us off four streets away from the address, and I led Jade to a nearby caf¨¦. It was a cozy spot, the kind of place where the aroma of freshly brewed coffee could make you forget the world outside. I guided her to a table by the window and ordered her favorite latte to soften the inevitable conversation.
¡°You wait here and if there¡¯s any danger, I¡¯ll contact you for backup,¡± I said as I placed the steaming cup in front of her, keeping my tone light.
Jade took the cup, her fingers brushing the warm ceramic. ¡°So, I¡¯m a sidekick now?¡±
I resisted the urge to roll my eyes. ¡°You¡¯ve always been a sidekick.¡±
Her mouth dropped open in mock offense. ¡°Coming from someone whose power is to literally read faces and colors?¡± she shot back, pouting as she took a sip of her latte.
Touch¨¦. I leaned back in my chair, pretending her jab didn¡¯t sting even a little. ¡°Hey, it¡¯s a very important skill. If a dangerous shade of magenta ever shows up, you¡¯ll be thanking me.¡±
The truth was, her coming with me wasn¡¯t just about protecting her from potential danger. I couldn¡¯t risk revealing too much. Jade was sharp¡ªtoo sharp. She had a knack for reading her surroundings and piecing together the things people tried hardest to hide. If she came along, she might start connecting dots I wasn¡¯t ready to share, uncovering secrets about me that I wasn¡¯t even sure she should know yet.
Not because I didn¡¯t trust her¡ªI did¡ªbut because some truths carried burdens I didn¡¯t want to share with her.
¡°I¡¯ll be back soon,¡± I said, standing to leave.
Jade simply nodded, her eyes lingering on me for a moment longer than usual.
I opened the maps app on my phone and navigated the streets, walking the rest of the way to the address. When I arrived, the sight that greeted me was undeniably impressive. The bungalow was massive¡ªeasily five times the size of our house. It had a grandeur that was impossible to miss, with its towering columns and pristine landscaping. Still, for all its architectural magnificence, it didn¡¯t appeal to me personally. There was something cold about it, something excessive. It screamed wealth, but not warmth. What caught my attention more than the house itself was the lack of visible security. No guards paced the grounds, no cameras peered from the corners of the property. For a place this grand, it was a conspicuous absence. Even modestly wealthy homes in this district had at least some form of visible surveillance.
Instead, a massive gate made of strange, unidentifiable metal stood at the front. Its design was intricate, with patterns and etchings that looked almost alive. Out of curiosity, I raised my hand to inspect it.
The moment my fingers got close, my hand stopped abruptly, meeting an invisible barrier. Glowing runes shimmered into view, flickering and shifting in a myriad of colors like a living kaleidoscope. The barrier wasn¡¯t visible to the naked eye¡ªat least not to most¡ªbut with my vision, its intricate details unraveled before me like the pages of an ancient, magical tome. It was breathtaking. The barrier enveloped the entire estate, forming a protective dome that shimmered faintly, as though alive with purpose. Even though I¡¯d encountered such barriers before, they always left me in awe. This one was particularly intricate, each rune pulsating with mysterious glimmer I couldn¡¯t fully comprehend.
Shaking myself free from the spell of its beauty, I noticed the bell on the marble gate. I strolled over and pressed the button softly. The chime that followed was subdued but clear, echoing faintly through the air.
For a moment, there was nothing but silence. Then, a faint crackling sound broke through, and a clear voice finally came through the intercom.
¡°Who is this?¡±
The sound was sharp, with an edge of authority that made it clear they weren¡¯t in the mood for nonsense.
Clearing my throat, I replied confidently, ¡°I¡¯m from the Rose Red Order. I heard the owner of the house has been searching for something for a long time. I believe we have some clues that could be of help.¡±
There was a pause, the crackling of the intercom the only sound. Then the voice returned, colder this time. ¡°State your purpose clearly.¡±
¡°My purpose is simple,¡± I replied calmly. ¡°I¡¯m here to help solve a problem. If your employer isn¡¯t interested, I¡¯ll leave.¡±
Another brief silence followed. I waited outside in the sun, unsure if my words had even registered. Finally, after what felt like two long minutes, the gate slowly slid open, and the barrier shimmered as a small opening appeared. Raising my eyes to take in the sight, I stepped through the opening and into the estate. At the front door, I was greeted by an elegant man dressed impeccably in black and white servant attire. His sharp features and unflinching posture made it clear he was no ordinary butler¡ªthis was someone who took his role seriously.
¡°Sir is waiting for you in his study,¡± he said with a polite bow, his tone respectful but devoid of warmth.
I nodded, and without another word, he turned and gestured for me to follow. The interior was a sharp contrast to the facade¡ªan intricate maze of corridors, rooms, and hallways filled with an eclectic mix of styles. It quickly became apparent that you couldn¡¯t judge someone¡¯s tastes just by the exterior of their home. On our way, I spotted several other servants, all of them young and strikingly handsome. Their presence made me wonder briefly if the master of the house had particular tastes and desires. Whatever the case, it wasn¡¯t my place to judge. Rich people lived in an entirely different reality, detached from the mundane struggles of the average person. Finally, we descended a flight of stairs into what could only be described as a vast library. Whether this was the basement or the entire basement had been converted into a library, I couldn¡¯t tell. The shelves stretched high above, filled with countless volumes whose spines were gilded and embossed with symbols and languages I couldn¡¯t recognize. The magnitude of the room, coupled with its eerie, quiet grandeur, gave me pause.
I silently wondered if I could escape this place if things took a turn for the worse. The more I thought about it, the lower my chances seemed.
The servant stopped in front of a large wooden desk at the center of the room, but before I could take a seat, a voice spoke from nowhere, deep and rasping, yet carrying an undeniable weight:
¡°You can take your seat, Mr. North.¡±
I turned just as an old man stepped out from behind one of the shelves. His movements were deliberate, almost calculated, and his presence was¡ unsettling.
He looked ancient¡ªreally ancient¡ªwith skin so pale it seemed translucent, as if he¡¯d spent centuries out of the sun or been drained dry by a team of especially motivated vampires. But it wasn¡¯t the pallor of illness. No, this was something else, something that hinted at a life touched by forces most people couldn¡¯t comprehend. Despite his apparent frailty, the man stood tall, well over six feet, his posture unnervingly straight. His eyes were the first thing I noticed¡ªunsettlingly alive, as if they housed their own consciousness, watching me in ways that went beyond the physical. And then there were his bones.
Yes, his bones.
They weren¡¯t made of ordinary calcium¡ªoh no. Beneath his pale flesh, they shimmered faintly, as if forged from pure gold. The sight was equal parts mesmerizing and unsettling, and I had to resist the urge to gape.
Truly a man of magic.
¡°Ah, Sir Nash,¡± I said as I took a seat on the surprisingly comfortable sofa opposite him. ¡°I didn¡¯t expect you to run a background check on me in such a short time.¡±
The old man chuckled softly. Though his face bore the marks of time, his posture was upright, his back as straight as a bamboo stalk. He radiated an uncanny vigor that belied his apparent frailty.
¡°You misunderstand my intentions, Mr. North,¡± he said, his tone carrying a quiet amusement that hinted at something far deeper. ¡°I simply asked the wind.¡±
I blinked, momentarily caught off guard. Of course he did, I thought. Because why bother with technology when you could interrogate air currents? I nodded slightly, masking my surprise with a carefully practiced expression.
¡°Truly marvelous,¡± I replied, forcing a respectful smile. Inside, my brain was turning gears: The wind?! What does that even mean? Did the wind rat me out? Do I need to worry about breezes now?
Sir Nash¡¯s lips curved into a faint smile, as if he knew exactly what I was thinking but was too polite¡ªor too amused¡ªto comment on it. His golden-bone fingers clasped in front of him, and he leaned forward slightly.
¡°You¡¯ve come with questions,¡± he said, his piercing gaze boring into me. ¡°And perhaps answers.¡±
I sat up a little straighter, brushing off the lingering absurdity of my internal commentary.
Sir Nash tilted his head slightly, his golden eyes narrowing. ¡°Why have I never heard of this Rose Red Order before?¡±
Probably because it hasn¡¯t existed yet, I mused silently. The name was stolen straight from a future organization I¡¯d encountered in the first cycle. It was an excellent choice¡ªvague, mysterious, and entirely unverifiable. Perfect for situations like this.Outwardly, I maintained my composure, giving a faint smile as though I¡¯d expected the question. ¡°The Rose Red Order is relatively new,¡± I said smoothly, leaning back just enough to look at ease. ¡°We don¡¯t operate openly, so it¡¯s not surprising you haven¡¯t heard of us before now.¡±
Sir Nash raised an eyebrow, his expression shifting to genuine surprise. He nodded slowly, as if turning the idea over in his mind. ¡°They must be remarkably good at keeping secrets,¡± he said, the faintest hint of admiration creeping into his tone.
I couldn¡¯t help the small, satisfied smile that crept onto my face. Of course they¡¯re good at keeping secrets¡ªthey don¡¯t even exist.
¡°Discretion is paramount,¡± I said simply, as though I were reciting a company mantra. ¡°It¡¯s how we maintain our¡ effectiveness.¡±If you discover this narrative on Amazon, be aware that it has been stolen. Please report the violation.
Sir Nash¡¯s gaze lingered on me for a moment longer, as though he were trying to peel back the layers of my answer. I met his eyes steadily, maintaining just the right balance of mystery and credibility. Inside, I was very pleased with myself. Convincing a century-old sorcerer that I was part of an underground organization he¡¯d never heard of? That was a win. But I didn¡¯t let it show¡ªtoo much, anyway.
¡°Well,¡± Sir Nash said, his tone softening just slightly. ¡°It seems I¡¯ve underestimated how much the world has evolved.¡±
I inclined my head politely, resisting the urge to pat myself on the back right then and there. ¡°We all have to adapt,¡± I replied. ¡°That¡¯s how we stay ahead.¡±
¡°We could treat it as a trade,¡± I added, keeping my tone calm but deliberate. ¡°Something that benefits all of us.¡±
It wasn¡¯t a lie. Not entirely.
Sir Nash didn¡¯t react visibly, but his eyes¡ there was something happening there. The strangeness I¡¯d noticed earlier was intensifying, the colors in his irises shifting, converging rapidly toward his pupils like whirlpools of liquid gold. It was mesmerizing, as if something alive was moving just beneath the surface. And then, because my brain is sometimes my worst enemy, a ridiculous thought crossed my mind: I want to touch his eyes. Worse, the urge to keep them¡ªlike some sort of bizarre trophy¡ªlingered for a fleeting moment. What was wrong with me? Was this the effect of his magic? I shook my head slightly, shoving the unsettling thought aside. Focus, North.
¡°You should know,¡± Sir Nash said, his voice breaking through my spiraling thoughts, ¡°I seek a method to extend my lifespan. As for the trade, as long as it is within my power, it will be done.¡±
¡°I¡¯m aware,¡± I replied, holding his gaze steadily. I wasn¡¯t going to let his shifting, hypnotic eyes unnerve me. ¡°And I may have what you seek.¡±
¡°Then do tell,¡± There was a practiced warmth to his voice, like someone skilled at putting others at ease.
Yet, beneath that surface, I could sense the faint tremor of excitement. It wasn¡¯t loud, but it was there¡ªpulsing in his words, in the flicker of his golden, shifting eyes. For a brief moment, I questioned whether I was doing the right thing. His hollow frame and pale, unnatural features carried an air of madness barely contained, like a dam about to crack.
¡°I would require five permanent spells as payment,¡± I said, leaning back in my seat, deliberately maintaining an air of relaxation.
Sir Nash paused, his gaze sharpening. His interest was unmistakable now, and he regarded me as though I¡¯d just become far more intriguing.
¡°I don¡¯t want to refuse,¡± he said slowly, his voice carrying a weight that hinted at unseen depths. ¡°But the Arcane is corruption. Are you sure you want this? A method to extend lifespan could win you many other prizes.¡±
His words lingered in my mind, swirling with layers of meaning. Arcane is corruption. What exactly did he mean by that? I tried to dissect it, but my knowledge didn¡¯t offer any immediate clues. Still, if there was a problem, I reassured myself, the time loop would reset everything in the next cycle. No risk was truly permanent¡ªat least, not for me.
¡°Don¡¯t worry,¡± I replied firmly, pushing aside my hesitation. ¡°That¡¯s a problem for us to deal with.¡±
Sir Nash¡¯s lips curved into a thin smile, one that didn¡¯t quite reach his strange, shifting eyes. ¡°Very well,¡± he said, his tone carrying a note of finality. ¡°How about this: you reveal half of your method first. If I can confirm its legitimacy, we¡¯ll proceed with your deal. Then, you can provide the full method.¡±
It was a reasonable request, and one I¡¯d anticipated. I nodded in agreement. A servant appeared shortly after, carrying a pen and paper, which he set down on the desk before me. The servant moved with the same polished grace as the others in the house, his expression unreadable as he stepped back and vanished into the shadows once more. I glanced briefly at Sir Nash, whose gaze remained fixed on me, unblinking and expectant. Then I turned my attention to the paper and began writing. The method I scribbled was something I¡¯d heard about long ago¡ªa rumor, a whisper carried through cycles. It was dark, untested, and potentially dangerous, but it was the only thing I could recall in full detail. My pen scratched across the paper, the words forming faster than I could consciously process them, as though my mind was retrieving them from a dusty, half-forgotten archive.
When I finished, I set the pen down and slid the paper across the desk to Sir Nash. He took it with deliberate slowness, his bony, gold-shimmering fingers clutching it delicately.
¡°Hmm,¡± Sir Nash murmured as he read the paper. ¡°Very ingenious, but it seems more like a concept. Has anyone actually used it before?¡± His curiosity was evident, though tinged with caution.
I repeated the method aloud for clarity: ¡°Find the *** Bizarre meta nature, and use it to slowly replace your life with someone else¡¯s, gaining their fate while keeping your essence.¡±
Sir Nash stared at me for a long moment. ¡°A truly evil method,¡± he said, neither condemning nor approving, but simply stating a fact. ¡°I don¡¯t know what to say. But tell me¡ªwhat is this bizarre meta nature I must seek?¡±
I met his gaze evenly, refusing to flinch. The answer would come, but not until I had what I needed. My silence was deliberate, and Sir Nash, to his credit, caught on quickly.
¡°Very well,¡± he said, leaning back slightly, his bony fingers interlaced. ¡°What kind of spells do you want? Even if this method is only half-complete, it¡¯s worth far more than most spells.¡±
My original intention had been modest: to acquire a single spell that could shield my mind. But now, with five spells on the table, I realized the power of restraint. Sure, I could have asked for more, but greed was a pitfall I wasn¡¯t willing to stumble into. Hunger was the downfall of many, and it was best to take only as much as I could handle. Sir Nash¡¯s warning lingered in my thoughts: Arcane is corruption. I didn¡¯t fully understand the implications of that yet, but I couldn¡¯t ignore the risk. How would five spells affect my being? Would they make me stronger¡ªor drive me mad? I could only hope for the best.
¡°A spell to shield my thoughts,¡± I said without hesitation. ¡°And one to organize my mind.¡±
Those two were obvious choices¡ªnecessary to solve the issues I was currently facing.
But when it came to the remaining three spells, I hesitated. I hadn¡¯t given them much thought, and now the weight of too many options pressed down on me. Someone had once said that having too many choices was a curse, and I was beginning to understand why. My mind felt tangled, trying to determine what I might need most.
What was I missing?
Briefly, the idea of asking for something to protect Jade crossed my mind. She was reckless, always throwing herself into danger with little regard for her own safety. But no¡ªI needed to test these spells on myself first. If there were any unforeseen side effects, it was better that I bore them. Jade¡¯s meta nature was already unstable, and I couldn¡¯t risk making it worse. Still, the idea stuck with me. Jade¡¯s safety was paramount, and if I could prepare for her as well, it would be worth it. I forced myself to focus, narrowing my choices. The spells needed to be practical, versatile, and manageable in case of side effects. Simple was better¡ªat least for now.
¡°A spell for defense, a spell for escape, and a spell for strength,¡± I said finally, my voice steady despite the swirl of thoughts in my head.
They were simple yet versatile. If there were side effects, they would hopefully be manageable. Besides, I could always make adjustments in the next cycle if needed. It was better to suffer losses now than to risk losing myself entirely.
Sir Nash nodded, his expression unreadable but his agreement evident.
With a simple wave of his hand, a twisted staff materialized in his grasp, its surface pulsating with a faint, otherworldly glow.
He tapped the floor gently with the staff, and the world around us dissolved instantly. Colors drained away like water down a sink, leaving behind a void of absolute nothingness. For a moment, I felt weightless, floating in a disorienting expanse of emptiness. But before I could panic, my feet landed on a surface. The floor beneath me glowed with a blinding white light, steady and soft, like energy condensed into a physical form. It wasn¡¯t solid in the traditional sense¡ªit seemed to be made entirely of energy. I steadied myself, taking in the surroundings.
The space was infinite and featureless, stretching endlessly in every direction. There were no walls, no ceilings¡ªjust a vast, glowing plane beneath us and the unbroken dark void above.
I glanced at Sir Nash. He stood calmly, his twisted staff resting lightly in his hand, as though this transition were as mundane as walking into another room.
It was both fascinating and unsettling.
¡°What is this place?¡± I asked, my voice echoing faintly in the void. The sound was strange, as if it were swallowed by the darkness around us before it could travel too far.
¡°This,¡± Sir Nash said, gesturing faintly with his staff, ¡°is the Blank Plane. A space untouched by time, reality, or consequence. It exists between our minds and reality.¡±
I blinked, trying to process his words. ¡°So¡ it¡¯s like a pocket dimension?¡±
He tilted his head slightly, ¡°You could call it that, though it would be an oversimplification. The Blank Plane is not created¡ªit simply is. A place where the arcane operates without interference.¡±
Then, he lifted his staff once more, swinging it through the air with an elegant precision that belied his skeletal frame. In an instant, hundreds of unknown runes burst into existence, materializing as if drawn from the very fabric of the emptiness around us. Each rune glowed with its own distinct color and intensity, their forms swirling and shifting like living entities. They danced in intricate patterns, weaving through the air at varying speeds, creating a mesmerizing display. I couldn¡¯t help but stare. The runes felt like they carried centuries of meaning, a language I couldn¡¯t even begin to comprehend. Each one seemed significant, as though it held a piece of some vast, unknowable puzzle. Gradually, they began to gather, drawn together by an unseen force. They moved with a magnetic pull, coalescing toward Sir Nash¡¯s outstretched hand. Slowly, they formed into a small orb, no larger than an avocado seed. The orb shimmered with countless colors, its surface flowing and shifting like liquid metal infused with light. It pulsed faintly, as though it were alive. The way it moved¡ªmorphing and flowing¡ªreminded me of ferrofluid reacting to a magnetic field, but far more ethereal and otherworldly.
¡°Every spell in this world is a unique existence,¡± Sir Nash voice was steady and almost reverent as he regarded the orb in his hand. ¡°Once you assimilate it, there will be nothing else like it. Recreating it¡ªor even deducing something similar¡ªwould take years, perhaps decades.¡±
He turned his sharp, penetrating gaze toward me, the orb still hovering in his hand like a living entity.
¡°This spell in my hand is a combination of the first two spells you requested: Splinter and Mindfield. I created them long ago and used them myself for a time. Until now.¡±
¡°What do they do?¡± I asked.
His eyes flicked back to the pulsing orb. ¡°The Splinter spell will transform your thoughts and memories into glass-like shards, fractured but precise. Should anyone attempt to infiltrate your mind, the Mindfield spell will trigger, turning your mental space into a field of volatile mines. The intruder¡¯s consciousness will collide with these shards, resulting in one of two outcomes: madness, as your fragmented memories pierce their mind¡ªor death.¡±
I stared at the orb as a chill field my heart. The spell was both beautiful and terrifying, a dual-edged sword designed to protect while ensuring no one who tried to intrude would leave unscathed.
¡°It¡¯s as lethal as it is protective,¡± Sir Nash added, his tone calm but firm. ¡°As for your other three spells.¡±
The staff swung again, this time with greater intensity. I could feel the strain it was putting on Sir Nash, though his body showed no outward signs of fatigue. It was his eyes, however, that unsettled me. The strangeness within them had grown more volatile, swirling wildly as though alive. The eerie, golden liquid seemed ready to spill out, dark tendrils threatening to cascade down his face like tears of molten gold.
Whatever that was¡ªwhatever that was¡ªevery instinct in me screamed to keep my distance. A hundred feet might not even be far enough.
Once again, a storm of glowing runes gathered around us in the void. Half of the runes emerged from the darkness above, while the other half rose from the radiant light below. Despite their contrasting origins, they moved in harmony, swirling and colliding with precision before coagulating into three separate orbs. Beside, each orb had its own unique glow and texture, distinct from the others. First was translucent, its surface swirling with ghostly light. The second shimmered with a metallic sheen, pulsing steadily like a heartbeat. The third was dark and dense, exuding an almost gravitational pull.
¡°Weight of Time, Breakdown, Leave a Face Behind.¡±
¡°These three remaining spells fulfill your final requests.¡±
Act 2.14 (Chrysalis)
Sir Nash gestured to the first orb, which swirled with ghostly opalescent light. ¡°Weight of Time accumulates defense based on how long it has been since your last battle. The longer the interval, the stronger your defensive power becomes.¡±
The second one pulsed faintly like it had a heartbeat of its own, ¡°Breakdown reveals your opponent¡¯s weaknesses. It shows you precisely where and how to strike to bring them down with maximum efficiency.¡±
I nodded slowly, trying not to look too impressed. A cheat sheet for fights? Now we were talking.
Finally, his hand moved to the third orb, this one dark and dense like a tiny black hole. ¡°Leave a Face Behind,¡± he said with a faint trace of amusement. ¡°If you¡¯re in a fight you can¡¯t win, this spell creates a perfect copy of you from thirty seconds ago. The copy stays behind while you escape undetected.¡±
That one gave me pause. I could picture it now¡ªleaving a version of me to face whatever nightmare I was running from. The thought of abandoning my past self to die for me felt¡ odd. But hey, survival first, right?
These wizards were truly loved by the world to have such strong meta natures. They seemed to operate without limitations, their power stretching into realms I couldn¡¯t begin to fathom. As I observed Sir Nash, I couldn¡¯t help but wonder whether he was a unique or hive-type meta nature.
I leaned toward him being unique. No visible threads extended from him into the void¡ªa hallmark of hive-types, where energy radiated outward and connected to a larger collective. Sir Nash¡¯s energy was different. It swirled inward, entirely self-contained, like a whirlpool consuming itself. There was something deeply unsettling about his Likeness, too. Otherworldly, almost monstrous. It looked like a creature pulled from liquid darkness or dredged from a vat of crude oil, reshaped into a man.
The magic Fae used to create a mind-calming tea for me was fundamentally different from Sir Nash¡¯s. Though I struggled to articulate exactly how. Yes, one was Unique and the other Hive type, but the distinction felt deeper than mere classification. The two seemed to draw from entirely distinct forces, almost as if they operated under separate laws of existence.
Fae¡¯s magic was organic, flowing effortlessly through her process, like water seeking its natural course. Sir Nash¡¯s Arcane, on the other hand, was something else entirely¡ªalien, imposing itself on reality rather than harmonizing with it. It didn¡¯t flow; it warped. His spells felt like they¡¯d been carved out of raw chaos, refined into tools too sharp and strange for mortal hands.
For now, this was the only plausible explanation that made sense to me.
As Sir Nash finished his explanations, the strange space between realities began to dissolve. The infinite void of light and shadow faded rapidly, peeling away like the layers of a dream. In its place, the familiar library reappeared¡ªits towering shelves, the muted smell of aged paper, the soft glow of candlelight. Within moments, it was as though we¡¯d never left.
Well, except for the four luminous orbs now hovering in Sir Nash¡¯s hands.
Sir Nash extended the four glowing orbs toward me, ¡°You can test them here if you¡¯d like, Mr. North. Ensure their legitimacy. But remember¡ªeach spell carries its own weight, and the arcane is never without consequence.¡±
I shook my head politely, keeping my tone steady. ¡°These aren¡¯t mine to use just yet. If it¡¯s possible, I¡¯d prefer to take them with me.¡±
Sir Nash studied me as though weighing the merit of my request. After a short pause, he gave a slow nod. ¡°Sure,¡± he agreed.
The orbs, which had been moving with a strange, almost organic rhythm and gleaming with impossible colors, suddenly froze in place. With a casual flick of his sleeve, they were encased in crystalline shells¡ªsmall, ice-like cubes that sparkled faintly, each containing the condensed spell within.
¡°Before using them,¡± he instructed, ¡°simply crush the shell. The spell will bond to you instantly.¡±
Next, I retrieved the paper where I¡¯d written down the name of the bizarre meta nature he needed. Handing it over, I watched as Sir Nash folded it meticulously and tucked it into his pocket without a word. How he intended to find the meta nature wasn¡¯t my problem. For someone like him, it shouldn¡¯t be a challenge¡ªbut whatever happened next, it would be far from ordinary.
¡°Very well,¡± Sir Nash said, waving his hand as this was the end of our small meeting. ¡°Our business for now is concluded. If you uncover anything of interest in the future¡ªor find yourself in need of my expertise¡ªyou can reach me by letter. As long as the price is right, we can work together again.¡±
I inclined my head in acknowledgment. ¡°Understood.¡±
With that, the meeting concluded. I left the library and followed the same path back through the labyrinthine corridors of the estate, led silently by the elegant servant who had greeted me. As the grand gates slid open to let me out, I felt a weight lift off my shoulders.
As I stepped out onto the road, I couldn¡¯t help but reflect on how smoothly everything had gone. Almost too smoothly. Sir Nash was powerful¡ªterrifyingly so¡ªbut I¡¯d walked out of his lair with four potent spells and no visible strings attached. That kind of outcome was rare. Lucky, I thought. Or maybe not. There was always a price, even if you didn¡¯t see it right away. The man wasn¡¯t a villain in the traditional sense¡ªat least, not openly¡ªbut his aura, his presence, was deeply unsettling. He wasn¡¯t someone you wanted to owe a favor to, nor someone you wanted as an enemy. Whatever his motives or alliances, they were none of my business, and I planned to keep it that way.
The best outcome, I thought, would be for us never to cross paths again in this cycle.
His magical meta nature, though awe-inspiring, unsettled me on a level I couldn¡¯t entirely explain. It was like standing at the edge of an abyss and feeling it stare back. Power like his wasn¡¯t just dangerous¡ªit whispered of consequences and complications.
And then there were the spells. I¡¯d gotten what I came for, but I knew I¡¯d have to test them before relying on them. Spells that strong weren¡¯t free of complications. I could already hear the small, persistent voice in the back of my mind warning me about hidden costs. For now, all I could do was hope the consequences wouldn¡¯t be too dire.
Once I was far enough from the mansion to feel a semblance of safety, I pulled out my phone and messaged Jade.
Me: Meet me at the train station. We¡¯re heading home.
Sliding my phone back into my pocket, I continued walking. The streets were quiet, but a sense of unease clung to me. I glanced over my shoulder more times than I cared to admit, searching for something that wasn¡¯t there¡ªor maybe was.
A nagging thought crept into my mind: What if Sir Nash had planted a tracking spell on me?
It was entirely possible. With someone of his level, there was no telling what he might have done without me noticing. My experience¡ªthree centuries of trial and error¡ªhad taught me to respect individuals like him. They didn¡¯t operate on the same logic or rules as the rest of us. Even with my knowledge, in his eyes, I was likely a small fish swimming obliviously through a shark-infested sea.
Dealing with the powerful was always a gamble. They thought differently, acted differently. Their methods were incomprehensible at times.
Still, I thought, glancing up at the skyline, if he wanted to harm me, he had plenty of chances already. Paranoia can only do so much.
Jade met me at the train station as planned, her usual cheerful demeanor doing wonders to ease the knot of tension that had settled in my chest. We boarded the train together.
¡°How did it go?¡± Jade asked, her voice soft and steady, her hand resting lightly on mine.
I smiled, ¡°All went according to plan,¡± I replied, keeping my tone casual.
She tilted her head slightly, her silver eyes searching mine for a hint of anything unsaid. Her curiosity was practically tangible, but she didn¡¯t push. That was the thing about Jade¡ªshe let you share things at your own pace, even if her curiosity was eating her alive. As we sat in a quiet corner of the mostly empty train, a thought struck me. I hadn¡¯t told her the full details of my visit to Sir Nash. Should I? Perhaps sharing this new knowledge could broaden her understanding of the dangers we might face. After all, having more knowledge often meant being better prepared.
¡°That¡¯s great,¡± she squeezed my hand warmly.
Glancing around to ensure we were alone, I reached into my pouch and carefully pulled out one of the crystalline spheres. Its faint glow shimmered against my palm as I opened my hand just enough for Jade to see.
Her eyes widened, lighting up like a kid spotting their favorite toy. ¡°What¡¯s this?¡± she squealed, her voice a hushed whisper as she leaned closer.
¡°A spell construct,¡± I whispered back, grinning at her reaction.
Her gaze darted between me and the sphere, her curiosity morphing into intrigue. ¡°That¡¯s what you got from the sorcerer?¡±
I nodded. ¡°One of four, actually. Each of these contains a spell.¡±
Her silver eyes locked onto the sphere like it held the secrets of the universe. ¡°What kind of spells?¡±
¡°Defensive, offensive, and¡ one for escape,¡± I said, choosing my words carefully. There was no need to overload her with details just yet.
Jade glanced up at me, a playful smirk forming on her lips. ¡°So, basically, everything you need to keep me safe while I do all the dangerous stuff.¡±
I chuckled, shaking my head. ¡°You¡¯ve got it backwards. These are to keep me alive while you try to out-crazy the bad guys.¡±
Jade¡¯s hand reached out toward the glowing sphere in my palm, but I quickly stopped her with a gentle grip. ¡°Not here,¡± I said firmly, sliding the sphere back into my pocket.
She puckered her lips in annoyance, but her focus quickly shifted, ¡°So, how does it work?¡±
¡°Once assimilated, I can use the spell as if it¡¯s part of my meta nature,¡± I explained, keeping my voice steady.
Jade raised an eyebrow, skepticism coloring her expression. ¡°That sounds way too good to be true.¡±
¡°That¡¯s because there¡¯s a catch,¡± I replied, glancing at her to gauge her reaction. ¡°Once a spell is given away, the original sorcerer can never use it again.¡±
Her eyes widened in shock, her voice rising slightly. ¡°What? Why would anyone give up something like that?¡±Ensure your favorite authors get the support they deserve. Read this novel on the original website.
¡°It¡¯s not something they do lightly,¡± I said, trying to keep my tone calm. ¡°It¡¯s permanent¡ªcompletely irreversible.¡±
She stared at me, her suspicion growing with every second. ¡°Then how did you get these?¡±
I smiled wearily, unable to resist the urge to tease her a little. Her suspicious expression was so endearing it made me want to reach out and pinch her cheeks. ¡°It was a trade,¡± I said simply.
Jade wasn¡¯t having it. ¡°A trade?¡± she repeated, her brow furrowing in frustration. ¡°What kind of trade would make someone willingly give up their spells forever?¡±
I held her gaze for a moment but didn¡¯t answer. My silence spoke volumes, and she knew it. She huffed, crossing her arms with a dramatic pout. ¡°Acting mysterious again,¡± she muttered under her breath.
Her reaction made me chuckle softly. Some things were better left unsaid¡ªfor now.
Mrs. Marlee wasn¡¯t the kind of professor who needed to demand attention¡ªher energy and enthusiasm drew it naturally. After two months in her class, I had come to realize that she had a knack for turning complex concepts into engaging discussions that left everyone eager to learn more.
¡°Today, we¡¯ll be exploring the classification of meta-natures.¡± She began, ¡°And let me be clear: this is not the same as classifying powers. That¡¯s a topic for next week¡¯s lecture. Today, our focus is on understanding the nature of what makes your powers tick at their core.¡±
She paused, letting her words sink in before continuing. ¡°Over the past two months, we¡¯ve studied the three main types of meta-natures: the Hive, the Unique, and the Bizarre. We¡¯ve dissected their defining characteristics, what sets them apart, and the ways they overlap. Now, we¡¯re going deeper. It¡¯s time to look at how these powers connect to something much more fundamental.¡±
Mrs. Marlee turned to the board and drew a large triangle, each side labeled: Body, Mind, and Soul. ¡°This is the Life Triangle. It represents the three essential components of a living being.¡± she announced, tapping the chalk against the diagram.
¡°The Body is your physical vessel, the foundation for all movement and action. The Mind is your center of thought, perception, and control. And the Soul¡ªthe most mysterious of the three¡ªis what ties everything together, serving as the core of identity and connection to the universe.¡±
The room was silent now, everyone hanging on her words. ¡°Humans exist at the intersection of these three. They need all three to function. Remove one, and you lose what it means to be human.¡±
She turned back to the board and began connecting the dots. ¡°Meta-natures, as we know, often correspond to one or more parts of this triangle. Let me break it down further:
- Meta-natures focused on the body primarily manifest in physical powers or enhancements. These include abilities like super strength, speed, or the power to manipulate physical elements such as fire or water.
- Meta-natures centered around the mind involve powers related to thought, perception, and control. Examples include telekinesis, mind reading, and heightened cognitive abilities.
- Meta-natures connected to the soul are often more conceptual and abstract. These include abilities that influence fate, manipulate time, or engage with fundamental universal principles.¡±
She gave the class a moment to process before moving on. ¡°Now, here¡¯s where things get interesting. Many meta-natures aren¡¯t confined to just one part of the triangle. Instead, they exist as combinations of two or even all three aspects. For example, someone with both physical enhancements and mental acuity might exhibit powers that bridge the body and mind. Similarly, conceptual powers that manifest physically may indicate a link between the soul and body.¡±
Mrs. Marlee smiled, her enthusiasm lighting up the room. ¡°If we take a closer look, most of you here likely possess meta-natures that combine all three of these aspects. This is what makes you so special and, frankly, why you''re at Beyonder''s Academy. Now, let¡¯s open up the floor. Can anyone guess which part of the triangle their own meta-nature aligns with? Are you body-dominant? Mind-focused? Or is there a deeper, soul-driven quality to what you do? Reflect on how your powers manifest and try to identify their roots.¡±
The students began murmuring to each other, the wheels in their heads visibly turning as they tried to place themselves within this framework.
¡°Take a moment,¡± Mrs. Marlee prompted, leaning against her desk.
I glanced around the room, watching my classmates furrow their brows in thought. Lore, sitting a row ahead, looked confident, as if she already knew her place on the triangle. Alex, with his aura of invincibility, seemed to be wrestling with the idea of where exactly his power originated. Jade, on the other hand. For a moment, I thought she was taking detailed notes¡ªabsorbing every word of the lecture like the studious type she was definitely not.
Curious, I tilted my head to get a better view. What I saw nearly made me choke.
She wasn¡¯t writing notes¡ªshe was doodling again. Another cartoonish sketch of two figures: one unmistakably me, with my slouch and perpetually unimpressed expression, and the other unmistakably her, grinning mischievously. She¡¯d drawn herself holding a bouquet of flowers, while "mini North" looked like he was trying to escape.
I stifled a laugh, shaking my head. Of course. This was Jade¡¯s idea of ¡°engaging with the material.¡±
She caught my glance and immediately slapped her hand over the notebook, her cheeks flushing pink. ¡°What?¡± she whispered, glaring at me with mock indignation.
¡°Nothing,¡± I replied innocently, the corner of my mouth twitching. ¡°Just admiring your dedication.¡±
I returned my attention back to the lecture. For myself, my meta nature also didn¡¯t fit neatly into a single corner of the triangle. I knew my human nature was mental, and my meta nature reached more into the abstract territory of the soul.
¡°Consider someone with the meta nature to manipulate fire. At first glance, you might think it¡¯s purely body-focused¡ªa direct, physical manifestation of energy.¡± She paused, letting the idea settle before continuing. ¡°But what if that fire is controlled by the user¡¯s emotions or thoughts? Suddenly, it¡¯s not just physical¡ªit has a mental component.¡±
The room seemed to collectively lean in, captivated.
¡°And what if,¡± Mrs. Marlee said, her voice dropping slightly, ¡°that fire can burn intangible things¡ªlike memories, guilt, or even fear? At that point, we¡¯re stepping into the realm of the soul.¡±
¡°Meta-natures are rarely as straightforward as they appear on the surface.¡±
The class erupted into quiet chatter, everyone debating their own powers and those of their friends.
Mrs. Marlee raised a hand to quiet them. ¡°Your assignment for the week is to analyze your own meta-nature and determine where you fall on the Life Triangle. Bring your findings to our next session, and be prepared to discuss how understanding your place within this framework could improve your control and effectiveness.¡±
After an engaging discussion hour of debate, the class finally ended for the week. Jade and I walked down the hallway together, the bustling noise of students filling the air. Jade was wearing another striking outfit¡ªa gray cropped sweater with a loose, textured knit and slightly flared sleeves that draped elegantly over her pink turtleneck top, the soft pastel color peeking through. She paired it with baggy, washed-out green cargo jeans, their patchwork details and large pockets adding a rugged, casual vibe that contrasted beautifully with the delicate knit. Her long, wavy hair framed her face perfectly, enhancing her effortlessly cool look. Then, I looked at myself. I think I was dressed well too, at least others couldn¡¯t say I didn¡¯t have a taste or didn¡¯t know how to style.
We eventually found our way to the student lounge and claimed an empty sofa tucked into a quiet corner. It was a nice escape from the noise and chatter of the main crowd.
Jade wasted no time making herself comfortable. She slouched against me, her back resting snugly against my side. The warmth of her proximity was familiar¡ªand more than a little distracting.
¡°I¡¯m tired,¡± she declared dramatically, tilting her head back to rest it on my shoulder. Her voice carried the exaggerated tone of someone begging for sympathy, but her actions were far from passive. Without warning, her fingers slid into my hair, combing through the strands like it was her personal stress toy.
¡°Let me cut your hair,¡± she said suddenly.
I turned my head slightly to glance at her, raising an eyebrow. ¡°You know how to cut and style hair?¡±
Her lips pursed for a moment, her face the picture of innocent contemplation. Then, with a cheeky grin that could only mean trouble, she replied, ¡°No. But I could always practice on you.¡±
I snorted. ¡°I¡¯ll pass.¡±
¡°Oh, come on,¡± Jade teased, her fingers ruffling my hair playfully. ¡°What¡¯s the worst that could happen?¡±
¡°I walk into class looking like a half-plucked chicken?¡± I shot back, earning a giggle from her.
¡°You have no sense of adventure,¡± she muttered.
¡°And you have no qualifications,¡± I retorted with a grin.
Jade laughed softly, finally letting her hand drop to her lap. ¡°Fine, fine. But one day, you¡¯re going to let me try,¡± she said with mock determination.
¡°Not unless I¡¯ve completely given up on social interaction,¡± I replied, shaking my head.
¡°Deal,¡± she said brightly, like she¡¯d already won the argument.
I shook my head at her antics. It wasn''t annoying, not really¡ªit was just Jade being Jade, and I found myself smiling despite my attempts to focus. Her little distractions, her ways of demanding attention without words, had become as natural as breathing. Or perhaps I was still in that honeymoon phase of our relationship, where even her interruptions felt endearing, my perception clouded by the rose-tinted glasses of new love.
I wondered if I should be concerned about how easily she could derail my thoughts, how readily I accepted these distractions. Maybe this was temporary, these feelings that made everything she did seem charming rather than disruptive. Eventually, time would wear down the sharp edges of new love, revealing whatever lay beneath this initial infatuation.
Meanwhile, I had a notebook in my hands, the pages filled with hastily scribbled notes and sketches. My mind wasn¡¯t on the lounge or the people moving around us. Instead, it was occupied by the runes I had seen Sir Nash create during spell creation. The intricate patterns were etched into my memory, each line and curve imbued with a purpose I was trying to decipher. I was attempting to recreate them, not with magic, but with pen and paper¡ªan effort to understand their structure before I even thought about using them.
¡°What¡¯s that?¡± Jade¡¯s voice broke my concentration as she leaned in, her hair lightly brushing against my cheek. She craned her neck to get a better look at the page I was working on.
¡°The runes that make up a spell,¡± I explained, my hand pausing over the intricate sketches.
¡°Like atomic particles?¡± Jade guessed, her tone curious.
¡°You could use that analogy to get an idea,¡± I said, setting my pen down for a moment. ¡°But their nature is inherently different.¡±
¡°Have you assimilated the spell already?¡± Jade asked, sitting up straighter, her gaze fixed intently on my notebook.
¡°No,¡± I replied, shaking my head. ¡°I want to understand the potential side effects first.¡±
Her expression shifted, the playful light in her eyes dimming as she considered my answer. ¡°If they¡¯re not safe, why do you still want to use them?¡±
I paused, her question cutting deeper than she realized. Should I tell her the truth¡ªthat my mind was fraying, that I could feel myself unraveling little by little? That I wasn¡¯t sure how much longer I could hold myself together without help? No. She¡¯d worry, and Jade worrying was a Pandora¡¯s box I didn¡¯t want to open.
Instead, I just smiled faintly. ¡°Some risks are worth taking,¡± I said evasively.
Jade frowned at my non-answer, her lips forming a pout. She knew I was dodging her question, but rather than press further, she pivoted. ¡°When are you going to try it?¡±
¡°Later today,¡± I replied, shifting my focus back to my notes.
¡°I want to be with you when you do it,¡± she said firmly, her tone brooking no argument. Her silver eyes locked onto mine, and I could see the stubbornness gleaming in them like polished steel.
I smiled softly, letting out a quiet sigh of defeat. ¡°Sure,¡± I agreed. Better to let her be there than to fight her on it.
Jade¡¯s pout transformed into a small, triumphant grin. ¡°Why don¡¯t you let me see the spell now?¡± she asked, tilting her head and trying for a look of mock innocence. ¡°I could help, you know.¡±
I raised an eyebrow, suppressing a chuckle. ¡°I doubt it,¡± I said teasingly. ¡°Unless you¡¯ve suddenly become an expert in magic.¡±
She huffed, crossing her arms with exaggerated indignation. ¡°I¡¯ve got plenty of expertise! I¡¯m great at moral support. And I¡¯d probably look amazing holding a magical artifact.¡±
I laughed, shaking my head. ¡°I don¡¯t doubt the second part. But for now, I think I¡¯ll manage on my own.¡±
Jade narrowed her eyes, her lips curling into a mock scowl. ¡°You don¡¯t know what I¡¯m capable of,¡± she shot back, her tone dripping with exaggerated offense. ¡°Maybe I am a secret expert in ancient magic. Maybe I¡¯ve been holding back this whole time just to see you struggle.¡±
¡°Oh, sure,¡± I said, leaning into the banter. ¡°And next you¡¯ll tell me you¡¯ve been secretly controlling my fate all along.¡±
She grinned, her silver eyes glinting with mischief. ¡°Wouldn¡¯t that explain a lot?¡±
I couldn¡¯t hold back a chuckle. Jade had a way of making even absurd scenarios sound oddly plausible.
With an exaggerated huff, she let her head fall back onto my shoulder, clearly deciding I wasn¡¯t going to give her much more. ¡°One day, you¡¯ll have to spill all your secrets to me.¡±
I smirked, ignoring her attempts to get a reaction out of me. The arrogant dragon, predicting the future now? It was a funny thought, but somehow, it wouldn¡¯t surprise me if she turned out to be right.
¡°Keep dreaming,¡± I muttered, tapping her on the nose.
She shot back, poking my ribs, ¡°Oh, I will.¡±
Act 2.15 (Chrysalis)
As I scribbled in my notebook, Jade¡¯s body leaned comfortably against mine. She peered over my shoulder, her curiosity radiating off her in waves but surprisingly restrained¡ªfor now.
Her warmth was grounding, like a cozy blanket, though I couldn¡¯t ignore the subtle distraction she brought. Every now and then, I¡¯d feel her shift or fidget, her fingers brushing against my arm. For a while, she behaved herself, simply watching me. But of course, this was Jade. Her patience had the shelf life of a carton of milk left out in the sun. Before long, her ¡°restraint¡± turned into little attempts to gnaw at my arm or shoulder¡ªor even my cheek¡ªlike a mischievous cat trying to assert its dominance. I¡¯d shoo her away, but the smug little grin she wore told me she wasn¡¯t even trying to hide her intentions.
I should¡¯ve known better. Jade¡¯s tolerance for being ignored had its limits.
Eventually, she reached out with both hands and gently nudged the notebook, trying to push it out of my grasp. When that didn¡¯t work, she went straight for the nuclear option. With a dramatic sigh, she closed the notebook with a definitive thump and turned to me.
¡°Let¡¯s go home,¡± she said simply, like she¡¯d just solved all my problems.
I blinked, staring at her with a mix of disbelief. ¡°You can¡¯t just¡ª That¡¯s illegal.¡±
¡°Oh, but I can,¡± she interrupted, her smirk daring me to challenge her authority.
I blinked at her sudden mood change. ¡°Stop messing around when I''m working,¡± lightly pushing her face away like she was a pesky cat. ¡°There¡¯s just a little left to finish. Give me five minutes, and then we¡¯ll go.¡±
She tilted her head, clearly unimpressed. ¡°You said that five minutes ago. And ten minutes before that.¡±
I sighed, reaching to reopen the notebook, but she stopped me with a hand on my wrist. ¡°Fine. But if you take longer than five minutes, I¡¯m holding your notebook hostage.¡±
¡°Noted.¡±
Then she huffed, flopping back into her seat with the air of someone who had been gravely wronged. Propping her chin in her hands, she stared at me with exaggerated boredom, making no effort to hide her annoyance. But ten minutes later, Jade broke the silence with a groan.
¡°So, are we investigating the tunnels today?¡± she asked, her voice filled with barely concealed impatience.
I paused, glancing up from my notes to meet her gaze. ¡°Depends on how much time we have left at the end of the day,¡± I replied evenly, returning to my work.
Her groan grew louder, and she slouched further into her chair, muttering something about ¡°workaholics¡± under her breath. I ignored her theatrics and returned to my work.
After thirty minutes, I finally closed the notebook with a sigh of relief. It had taken me two painstaking hours to sketch out just thirteen runes from memory¡ªthirteen out of the thousands I¡¯d glimpsed. The runic symbols were far too complex for me to recall perfectly, and even these thirteen had taken significant effort. My brain felt like mush, but at least I¡¯d made some progress. Experimenting with these spells would require patience, focus, and, frankly, a miracle.
I paused, thinking about my second cycle knowledge. Perhaps it was time to put some of that to use¡ªit might help me move forward more efficiently.
That¡¯s when I noticed Jade. I had stretched my promise of five minutes into fifteen.
She had shifted to the edge of the sofa, sitting with her back to me, perfectly quiet. Too quiet. Was the dragon angry? I chuckled softly at the thought. Jade¡¯s moods were as mercurial as her mischief, but an angry dragon wasn¡¯t something I wanted to provoke further. I decided to approach carefully. Sliding closer without making a sound, I caught sight of something new: her nails, painted a delicate shade of blue. It was subtle but striking, and I realized I hadn¡¯t noticed earlier. Curious and emboldened, I reached out and gently took her hand. She didn¡¯t pull away, but her silence was as cold as her deliberately blank expression.
The dragon was digging in, determined to punish me with stubbornness.
Yup, definitely angry.
The dragon, it seemed, wasn¡¯t just arrogant¡ªit was infuriatingly stubborn when it wanted to be.
I held back a laugh and leaned in, planting a feather-light kiss on her cheek. It was a page straight out of her own playbook¡ªthe ¡°Kiss attack¡± technique she¡¯d perfected to catch me off guard and kill me with affection. Though her hand trembled ever so slightly, but she stayed stoic, her sulken face as solid as stone. I could practically hear her inner monologue screaming:
Don¡¯t give in! Don¡¯t you dare let him win!
Alright, I thought. I kissed her nose next, soft and teasing, my lips brushing against her skin just long enough to make her twitch.
Still nothing.
The dragon was putting up a fight. But, if the arrogant dragon won¡¯t yield, it¡¯s time for the ultimate weapon.
Smirking, I decided to bring out the heavy artillery. I cupped her face with both hands, holding her still as I launched a barrage of rapid, relentless kisses all over her cheeks, her forehead, her temples¡ªwherever I could reach. The aggressive onslaught was playful and shameless, entirely designed to break her stubborn defenses.
That did it.
Her cold mask shattered like glass as she burst into giggles, her laughter high-pitched and uncontrollable. ¡°Stop! Hehehe, stop! I can¡¯t breathe!¡± she squealed, her hands flailing in a half-hearted attempt to push me away.
But I wasn¡¯t done, ¡°You asked for this.¡±
¡°Okay, okay! I surrender!¡± she cried between giggles, finally squirming free of my grip. She flopped back onto the sofa, her cheeks flushed and her silver eyes shimmering with happiness.
¡°Next time, maybe try communicating instead of sulking,¡± I teased, ruffling her hair.
¡°Next time, maybe finish your work faster,¡± she shot back, sticking her tongue out at me.
Ah, the dragon was back in full form. Peace restored.
This was my life. I held Jade close, resigned to the fact that these "attacks" came two or three times a day. The arrogant dragon, as shameless as ever, was always quick to surrender when faced with relentless affection, laughing in defeat. Seriously, what kind of dragon gives up so easily? It was almost embarrassing¡ªan insult to the entire dragon species. But, admittedly, I was happy with her antics.
But the moment I let her go, though, Jade turned on me, taking advantage of my relaxed guard. With a gleeful grin, she lunged at me with a grin, ready to return the favor in full force. And before I could react, her arms wrapped around me in a flash, and I felt her lips attack my cheek in a relentless flurry of kisses.
¡°Payback time!¡± she declared, her silvery eyes sparkling with mischief.
I groaned, half-laughing, half-suffocating, as she peppered kisses along my jaw, my temple, and even¡ªugh¡ªmy ear. I squirmed and tried to wiggle free, but her grip was ironclad. Where do people like this even come from? I wondered, exasperated. Is there some secret academy for chaos-makers with a curriculum on weaponized affection?
Then, our playful bubble was rudely popped by an unexpected voice.
¡°Ugh,¡± muttered someone nearby, loud enough for the half lounge to hear, dripping with exaggerated disapproval. ¡°In every fucking corner, there¡¯s someone with their tongue inside each other¡¯s mouths.¡±
We both froze, turning to see a group of two boys and three girls, roughly our age, walking past.
"Seriously, get a room. Or better yet, a muzzle.¡±
¡°Yeah, it¡¯s like public spaces don¡¯t exist anymore. Do people think this is a rom-com?¡±
One of the girls shook his head dramatically, clearly unimpressed with our PDA. I frowned, confused and irritated. What was their problem? We weren¡¯t breaking any laws, and last I checked, we weren¡¯t living in some dystopia where a kiss in public was punishable by stoning.
As I wasted precious seconds debating whether or not to engage, Jade was already two steps ahead of me¡ªas usual.
She dove into her bag with a fire in her eyes, pulling out something that made my blood run cold. A blaster. An actual freaking blaster!
¡°Seriously?¡± I hissed, panicking as she raised it slightly, her expression livid. ¡°Jade, put that down!¡±
¡°How dare they!¡± she fumed, her voice shaking with rage. ¡°Do they think they own the place? Let me at ¡®em!¡±
I leapt into action, wrapping both arms around her and yanking her back down onto the sofa before she could do anything stupid¡ªor, worse, illegal.
Why did she even have a blaster with her in the academy? How was it even possible to sneak it in successfully? I wondered frantically. Was she not worried about getting caught and facing serious consequences?
I snatched the blaster from Jade¡¯s hand and hid it behind me, my heart pounding. ¡°Calm down!¡± I hissed under my breath, my eyes darting to see if anyone nearby had noticed. ¡°They¡¯re just ignorant kids.¡±
Jade¡¯s head snapped toward me, ¡°Why don¡¯t you say anything to them? They''re annoying.¡± she demanded.
¡°Because they¡¯re not worth it,¡± I replied, trying to keep my tone calm while clutching the blaster tightly behind me. ¡°You can¡¯t just go blasting people for being annoying.¡±
I tightened my hold on her as the group glanced back, noticing the commotion. They sneered, their expressions dripping with disgust, before continuing on their way, completely oblivious to how close they¡¯d come to actual danger.
I shook my head, These rich kids are really looking death right in the eyes and laughing. Must be nice to have zero survival instincts. I thought, exasperated.
Jade huffed beside me, and I could feel the storm brewing. Her meta nature bled into reality like a broken dam, making the air around us ripple with bad luck. The Likeness of the place was rapidly shifting, turning orange: unpredictable chaos.
The Meta Aspect Reading Alarms in the hallway and lounge immediately roared to life, blaring like fire alarms in an inferno. Their purpose wasn¡¯t to detect flames but to read the changes in the very basic fabric of reality and notify authority and people if someone was using their meta to cause huge amounts of reality altering changes in the localized space.
They were practically everywhere.
I braced myself for whatever storm was about to follow.
Subsequently, the group suddenly froze mid-step.The boy who had made the snide comment froze mid-step, his hand flying to his chest, his face contorted with pain. Another student, pale as a ghost, wobbled before vomiting blood. The rest didn¡¯t fare any better¡ªtwo collapsed unconscious, their bodies hitting the floor like ragdolls. The room fell into a stunned silence. A few nearby students gawked, unsure whether to stay or run. Others scrambled to call for teachers or medics, their voices panicked and shaky.
A human body is a delicate machine. Billions of interdependent processes hum along seamlessly¡ªuntil someone like Jade decides to throw a wrench into the works. It doesn¡¯t take much to disrupt it: a subtle shift in blood pressure, an untraceable spike in adrenaline, or a tweak to cellular balance. That¡¯s all it takes to turn a cocky fool into a gasping wreck. The boy had no idea how close he¡¯d come to brushing against death itself.
I grabbed Jade by the shoulders and made her look directly into my eyes. ¡°Not here,¡± I said firmly
My voice was resolute, leaving no room for argument. I was worried she might whisk away their souls before I or them could even blink. But, I seriously couldn¡¯t understand why such a small comment had sparked such uncontrollable anger in her, but I knew this wasn¡¯t the place to unleash it. The other students in the study lounge looked on, spooked and uncertain about what had just happened. Six students collapsing in quick succession wasn¡¯t something anyone could easily overlook. A few students scrambled to call for teachers and medics. Meanwhile, I quickly dragged Jade to a more secluded corner. My mind raced, shocked at what had just occurred. I didn¡¯t think we would escape unscathed from this incident. We would certainly be called in by the discipline committee and might even receive severe detention.
The academy¡¯s security measures were extensive: Meta Aspect Alarms, cameras, they even had unconventional means ¡ªpossibly the ability to rewind time in the area to reconstruct the event.
¡°Let¡¯s get out of here first,¡± I said, grabbing Jade¡¯s hand and pulling her along.
As we hurried through the hallways, I kept a firm grip on her hand, leading her toward the nearest exit. Her usual defiant energy had been replaced by a simmering anger that radiated off her like heat waves. She stayed quiet, her jaw clenched, and her silvery eyes glinting with an unsettling light. I needed to diffuse her emotions before they spiraled further. Outside, the cool evening air hit us like a slap, but it did little to cool her mood. I pulled her to the side, out of view of passing students and staff. Her breathing was uneven, her fists balled at her sides. She wasn¡¯t ready to talk, but I wasn¡¯t about to let this go without addressing it.
¡°Jade,¡± I said firmly, releasing her hand and stepping in front of her. ¡°What the hell was that?¡±
Her silvery eyes flashed as she crossed her arms tightly over her chest. "They deserved it.¡±
I ran a hand down my face, exhaling slowly to keep from snapping. ¡°Do you hear yourself? You pulled a blaster on a group of kids because they muttered some sarcastic comment. This is a school, not the Wild West.¡±
¡°They mocked you,¡± she growled, her eyes narrowing. ¡°Us. I won¡¯t let anyone insult what we have. Not now, not ever.¡±
I pinched the bridge of my nose, fighting the urge to laugh at the absurdity of it all. ¡°So your solution,¡± I said, incredulous, ¡°was to escalate the situation to Defcon One? We¡¯re at the academy. They can probably review the incident frame by frame if they want.¡±
¡°Maybe they should think twice before opening their mouths next time.¡± She scoffed, crossing her arms defensively. ¡°Do you think I care? Let them figure it out. I¡¯ll handle whatever comes.¡±
I pressed my palm against the wall, trying to steady myself.
In that moment, I seemed to grasp more about Jade¡¯s nature. She operated on a wavelength entirely different from normal people.
¡°Let¡¯s go home,¡± I said softly, booking a cab.
The ride home was silent, neither of us attempting to speak. I wanted to let Jade cool down and think without interference. She wasn¡¯t the type to reflect and realize she¡¯d made a mistake; she was the type to fiercely protect what she cared about, consequences be damned. Though I couldn¡¯t decide whether I should feel grateful or unsettled. Once we reached home, our usual dynamic shifted. Instead of jumping on each other like hungry animals, as was typical for us, Jade quietly retreated to her plants. I watched as she picked up her watering can and tended to them with a precision that spoke volumes. It was her way of processing emotions, turning her anger into something constructive.
I gave her the space she needed and busied myself in the kitchen. If words wouldn¡¯t work, maybe something sweet could. Strawberries and cream were always a safe bet, and before long, I had a simple trifle bowl ready. The layers of bright fruit, soft sponge, and airy cream were almost too cheerful for the somber mood.
When I returned, Jade was curled up on the sofa, scrolling through Hyperspace with a distracted expression. She barely noticed me sit beside her until I nudged her arm lightly. She blinked, startled, and slipped the chrome band off her head.
Her gaze drifted to the trifle bowl in my hands, and I didn¡¯t say a word.
Instead, I scooped a spoonful and held it near her lips. Jade hesitated for a moment, then leaned in and took a large bite.
Her expression softened instantly as the sweetness melted into her mouth. ¡°It¡¯s good,¡± she murmured, almost begrudgingly.
I smiled, glad to see even the smallest crack in her armor. ¡°There¡¯s plenty,¡± I said, offering her another spoonful.
This time, she took it without hesitation, her demeanor easing with each bite. The tension in her shoulders began to melt away, and I could see hints of the Jade I knew returning.
After the third bite, she finally spoke, her voice quiet and hesitant. ¡°Are you not angry with me?¡±
I leaned back slightly, thinking for a moment. ¡°Angry? No,¡± I replied honestly. ¡°Concerned? Absolutely.¡±
Her brows knit together, and she averted her gaze, staring into the half-empty trifle bowl. ¡°I just¡ I couldn¡¯t stand it. The way they looked at us, commented about us. Like they had a right to judge.¡±
¡°I get it,¡± I said gently, setting the spoon down. ¡°But next time, let me handle it. You don¡¯t need to take everything on yourself. And¡ blasters aren¡¯t exactly subtle.¡±
A faint pout formed on her lips. ¡°You¡¯re seriously not mad anymore?¡±
¡°Why would I be?¡± I chuckled, taking a small bite myself. The trifle had turned out really well; no wonder it managed to melt Jade¡¯s anger. It felt worth the effort.
She didn¡¯t meet my eyes. ¡°I thought you¡¯d be mad,¡± she admitted, her tone unsure.
I sighed, scooting a little closer to her on the sofa. I wasn¡¯t sure if she realized the mistake she¡¯d made or if she was just worried I¡¯d be upset and stop caring about her. Either way, it didn¡¯t matter much to me. There weren¡¯t many things in the world I cared about deeply, and Jade was one of them¡ªundoubtedly at the top of that short list.
¡°There¡¯s nothing about you that could make me mad,¡± I said firmly, placing the trifle aside. ¡°So what if you gave some entitled brats a scare? They should be blaming their superhero parents for not teaching them better. They¡¯ve grown up thinking their shiny, powerful meta natures and famous families make them untouchable. Honestly, they¡¯re lucky I stopped you from blasting them into a pile of burnt regrets. If you want, we can always go back tomorrow and teach them round two.¡±
The corner of Jade¡¯s mouth twitched, and then, as if against her will, she burst into laughter.
I leaned forward, cupping her cheeks gently in my hands. ¡°I¡¯m sorry,¡± I said softly. ¡°For not standing with you in that moment. For not understanding what you needed from me.¡±
Her shoulders slumped slightly, and she turned her head, as if trying to hide her face from me. Her silver eyes glistened, and for a brief moment, I worried she might start crying. But then she spoke, her voice cracked and filled with emotion. ¡°You don¡¯t have to apologize. It was my mistake for lashing out in the first place. You were right¡ªwe shouldn¡¯t care about a dog barking on the street.¡±
There was a pause, and then, with a faint, almost sweet smile, she added, ¡°Besides, we both can¡¯t be hotheaded in a relationship. Someone has to keep the other grounded.¡±
I grinned, brushing my thumb lightly against her cheek. ¡°And here I thought you were the one keeping me grounded.¡±
¡°Well, sometimes,¡± she leaned into my touch, her smile growing. ¡°But you¡¯ll have to take over when I¡¯m busy plotting revenge.¡±
¡°Did I ever tell you that I love you very much?¡± I asked softly, pulling Jade into a tight hug.
Her arms slowly wrapped around my neck, her fingertips lightly grazing my skin. ¡°No,¡± she whispered, ¡°because I love you more.¡±
I let out a relieved laugh, happy to see her old self returning.
Our faces were inches apart. ¡°We¡¯re really arguing over this?¡± I whispered, my fingers brushing a stray strand of hair from her face.
Before she could respond, I leaned in, capturing her lips in a slow, deliberate kiss. Her body melted against mine, her hands moving up into my hair, tugging gently. Her lips parted slightly, inviting me deeper, and I didn¡¯t hesitate. The kiss intensified, her soft sighs sending sparks down my spine. My hands traced the curve of her waist, pulling her even closer, until there was no space left between us.Royal Road is the home of this novel. Visit there to read the original and support the author.
Jade broke the kiss for a moment, her breath ragged, her eyes locking onto mine. ¡°You can¡¯t win this,¡± she whispered, her voice low and full of mischief.
¡°Guess I¡¯ll have to keep trying,¡± I replied, smiling, before diving back in, my lips finding hers again.
Three hours later.
As I tried to stand, ¡°Are you going home already?¡± Jade asked quietly, tightening her arms around my chest.
I paused, looking at her with mock indecision. ¡°Should I, or should I not?¡±
Her lips curved into a playful smile. ¡°How about we flip a coin?¡±
I raised an eyebrow but couldn¡¯t help smiling back. ¡°A coin flip for my fate? Seems risky.¡±
Jade¡¯s face lit up, and before I could say another word, she bounced out of bed with surprising energy. ¡°You¡¯re my most favorite person in the world!¡± she declared, her voice practically singing.
I chuckled softly, shaking my head. ¡°And you¡¯re mine.¡±
She rummaged through my jacket, pulling out my wallet with the practiced ease of someone far too familiar with it. ¡°Here we go,¡± she said, fishing out a coin like she¡¯d just uncovered buried treasure.
¡°Let me do it,¡± I offered, extending a hand toward her.
Jade¡¯s expression turned mock-serious as she pulled the coin closer to her chest. ¡°No. You¡¯re not lucky enough for this.¡±
¡°No powers,¡± I reminded her, trying to level the playing field.
Her silver eyes sparkled mischievously as she flipped the coin high into the air. It spun, catching the faint light, and landed neatly in her palm. She peeked at it, then turned to me with a grin that practically screamed victory.
¡°Heads or tails?¡± she asked, barely containing her laughter.
¡°Tails,¡± I said, already sensing where this was going.
Jade peeked at the coin again, then slowly revealed it with exaggerated drama. ¡°It¡¯s heads!¡± she announced triumphantly, her eyes dancing with delight.
I sighed, shaking my head. ¡°Sure, the coin definitely has your back. Even if it had been tails, you¡¯d still say it was heads.¡±
Jade grinned mischievously. ¡°What can I say? The universe just knows who the main character is.¡±
I gave her a deadpan look but couldn¡¯t hold back my smile. Jade¡¯s charm always managed to outmaneuver my frustration. She leaned closer, poking my cheek. ¡°Don¡¯t pout. It¡¯s unbecoming of my favorite servant.¡±
¡°Servant?¡± I gasped with mock indignation. ¡°I¡¯ll remember that the next time you¡¯re begging me for a favor.¡±
Jade laughed, her head tilting back like a villain.
After our usual activities, I dragged her with me to the basement. It was time to assimilate the Splinter and Mindfield spells. Despite the risks, my deteriorating memories state left me little choice. I was walking a razor''s edge - on one side, the terror of others accessing my timeline memories, on the other, the growing risk of delusion and madness as those memories continued to bleed together.
¡°Camera¡¯s ready,¡± Jade announced, giving me a thumbs-up as she approached. She leaned in and planted a quick kiss on my lips that seemed to say, You¡¯re not doing this alone. Then she stepped back to the corner of the room.
I appreciated her presence but was insistent on her staying as far away as possible in case something went wrong.
¡°Don¡¯t come closer if you see anything wrong with me or the process,¡± I warned, though I wasn¡¯t sure I believed my own words. If the roles were reversed, I¡¯d have done exactly what I was telling her not to.
Jade crossed her arms, her expression stubborn. ¡°You think I¡¯m just going to run if something happens? You know better than that.¡±
I sighed. ¡°I¡¯m serious. I don¡¯t want you to get hurt.¡±
She nodded reluctantly but didn¡¯t move farther back.
Taking a deep breath, I retrieved the cube containing the sealed spells. Sir Nash¡¯s instructions echoed in my mind: Break the cube when you¡¯re ready to assimilate the spell.
The cube felt deceptively ordinary in my hand¡ªsmooth and cool, like polished glass. My fingers brushed its edges as I tested its resistance, feeling the faint hum of energy emanating from within. Slowly, I applied pressure to its corners, first gentle, then firm. The cube gave way with an almost imperceptible crack, fragile as an eggshell despite its solid appearance.
The moment it broke, the air shifted.
A ripple of energy pulsed outward, making the hairs on my arms stand on end. The spell emerged, uncoiling like liquid light, its surface shimmering with a kaleidoscope of infinity colors that bled into one another with hypnotic fluidity. It hovered before me, weightless and alive, as though it were examining me just as I was examining it.
The holes dotting its structure expanded and contracted rhythmically, almost like breathing. The sight was mesmerizing, and for a moment, I forgot to breathe myself. Rapidly, the feeling of strangeness crept into my mind again.
With no warning, the spell began to expand. Its fluid, glowing form grew rapidly, stretching outward until it enveloped me entirely. I was swallowed by its presence.
In an instant, my consciousness severed from my physical form.
Then the pain hit me like a tidal wave, sharp and all-encompassing, flooding every corner of my mind. I felt I was falling through the endless abyss and all my memories playing before my eyes for the one last time. My thoughts, once fluid and seamless, felt like they¡¯d been thrown into a grinder, each one scraping painfully against the other. The world outside faded, replaced by an intense internal struggle as my mind tried to make sense of the strangeness now coursing through it. It was as though the spell was dismantling me, shattering the delicate threads that held my mental fabric together, only to reweave it in ways I didn¡¯t understand.
Then came the moment of fracture.
Each memory began to splinter, twisting and contorting as though wrung through the hands of an unseen force.
Then, with an audible, glass-like shatter, they broke apart. Every thought, every moment of my existence, fragmented into glittering shards. They floated in a surreal, infinite void, suspended like stars in a night sky. I recognized pieces of myself within them¡ªa laughing child in the sunlight, my mother¡¯s warm smile as she put a piece of cake in my mouth, the cold emptiness of my first heartbreak, and the shattering loneliness of nights spent wondering who I was meant to become.
The beauty was undeniable, but so was the terror.
The shards hung in a chaotic maze, twisting and turning in impossible patterns that defied logic. Some memories seemed close enough to touch, but when I reached for them, they slipped further into the void. Others hovered ominously, sharp-edged and threatening, as though they might cut me if I dared come closer. The deeper I looked, the more lost I became. It was disorienting¡ªan infinite labyrinth of myself, my past, my very essence scattered into a fragile, glittering minefield. And that¡¯s when I realized the truth.
The shards weren¡¯t just memories. They were traps.
I tried to reach out, to piece them together, but my hand¡ªor rather, my soul¡ªwas frozen. The glass didn¡¯t follow the familiar rules of three-dimensional space; they hovered in loops, twists, and spirals that bent in ways I couldn¡¯t fully perceive. Some pieces seemed close, but when I reached for them, they slipped impossibly farther away.
The deeper I gazed, the more disoriented I became. It was an endless maze, each twist and turn revealing another fragment of my life, scattered and fractured. And then the minefield took shape.
Some fragments shimmered with a warm, inviting glow¡ªmemories of love, joy, and triumph. But as I reached toward them, I saw the faint threads of energy coiled around their edges, razor-thin and deadly. They weren¡¯t safe. Touching them would unleash an eruption of agony that could rip through my mind like wildfire. Others hummed with an ominous vibration, their jagged edges reflecting distorted images of pain and failure. Their energy was suffocating, toxic even from a distance.
This wasn¡¯t a sanctuary anymore¡ªit was a battlefield. The spell wasn¡¯t just protecting me; it was reshaping my mind into a labyrinth of defense, a weapon forged from the fragments of my past.
And then the whispers began.
Faint at first, they grew louder, incomprehensible voices rising and falling in a chaotic symphony. They weren¡¯t mine. They didn¡¯t belong here. They carried the weight of countless lives, stories, and secrets¡ªfragments of the spell itself, speaking its alien truths directly into the core of my being. I gritted my teeth, fighting against the tidal wave of thoughts, but every move felt like stepping into quicksand. The glass minefield shifted with me, reshaping itself to block any path forward. I realized then: this wasn¡¯t just about breaking me down. The spell was building something new, using the fragments of my past as raw materials.
I couldn¡¯t let it. I wouldn¡¯t.
However, the next moment, my eyes snapped open, and I found myself still sitting in the chair, my body and clothes drenched in sweat like someone had emptied a bucket of water on me. My chest heaved as I tried to catch my breath. Beside me, Jade was staring at me with palpable nervousness, her face pale.
¡°Thank God, you¡¯re fine!¡± Her voice broke through, trembling with relief.
She was at my side in an instant, wrapping her arms tightly around me. Her hands trembled as she held me, her emotions bleeding through in waves of relief and fear. Her heart thudded against mine, its frantic rhythm a mirror of my own. ¡°You scared the hell out of me.¡±
I wanted to reassure her, but my mind was racing too fast to process everything. The remnants of the spell lingered like the aftertaste of something acrid, and I felt a deep unease. The bizarre glass minefield¡ªwas no longer accessible. Jade finally pulled away, her voice trembling with residual panic. ¡°I¡ I tried to touch you, but it was like you weren¡¯t even there,¡± she stammered, her eyes wide and searching. ¡°My hands went right through you, like¡ like you were slipping away. It was terrifying.¡±
I shook my head, trying to ground myself in her words. It must have been my newly acquired intangible meta nature activating¡ªtriggered instinctively by fear to protect me. My consciousness being dragged out and into the labyrinthine space was likely tied to my meta nature too. Damn it! That old bastard Nash hadn¡¯t said anything about the side effects as such or what the spell¡¯s process would feel like. Typical.
¡°I¡¯m here now,¡± I said softly, though my voice betrayed a tremor I couldn¡¯t suppress.
Her brows furrowed in concern. ¡°Are you okay now? Do you feel¡ different?¡±
I paused, scanning myself internally. Physically, I felt the same¡ªtired, yes, but intact. Yet beneath the surface, something fundamental had shifted. My thoughts were no longer fluid but sharp and fast, leaping from one idea to another as if overclocked cpu. It was as though my brain had been rewired, like an old system replaced with bleeding-edge tech. And then I noticed something peculiar. As Jade spoke, I found myself predicting her next words before they even left her lips. My mind wasn¡¯t just faster¡ªit felt illuminated, as if every thought, every neuron, wasn¡¯t firing through electrical currents anymore but through beams of light, refracted through those strange glass-like memories. Could this be the glass nature of my thoughts?
¡°I¡¯m¡ fine, I think,¡± I said hesitantly, waving my arm.
Though my own voice sounded foreign to me, too measured, too precise. And, my arm, which was supposed to move with my words, didn¡¯t move.
Then, out of nowhere, the arms finally moved, completing the gesture I had thought about for what felt like an eternity.
I sat still in the chair, trying to process what was happening to me. My mind raced, firing off thoughts and calculations at an unimaginable speed. It was like a supercomputer, processing thousands of variables in an instant. Every observation, every detail, was vividly clear and perfectly categorized in the endless library of my thoughts.
But my body¡ my body refused to keep up.
It felt like an old, sluggish machine compared to the razor-sharp efficiency of my mind. The disconnect between the two was overwhelming, like watching a high-speed train screech to a halt while still expecting it to fly down the tracks. The disorientation hit me hard.
I decided to test it. Slowly, I willed myself to stand. The thought was clear: Rise, put weight on the legs, balance.
But my body betrayed me. By the time the signal reached my legs, my mind had already moved on, mapping out the next action I needed to take. My knees wobbled, and before I could recalibrate, I toppled forward, collapsing in a heap on the floor.
¡°Damn it,¡± I muttered, frustration seeping into my voice as I tried to sit up. Movements that once happened effortlessly, without conscious thought, now felt foreign and deliberate. I didn¡¯t need to think about walking or moving my hands before¡ªit was instinctual, muscle memory seamlessly bridging mind and body. But now, something was fundamentally altered.
The Splinter and Mindfield spells had done more than enhance my mental capacity¡ªthey had changed me or my mind on a physical level.
Suddenly, a realization struck me, surfacing like a shard of light in the darkness. These arcane spells didn¡¯t work magically in the abstract sense. Their effects were literal, tangible.
If my deductions were right, then if someone cracked open my skull right now, they wouldn¡¯t find the soft, squishy gray matter of a normal brain. No, they¡¯d find a literal lattice of glass shards¡ªa damn mindfield encased in a crystalline matrix.
I couldn¡¯t help but think of Sir Nash and his golden bones, glimmering beneath his pale, paper-thin skin. Those weren¡¯t just aesthetics or some magical party trick. Or byproduct of his arcane mastery; they were evidence of the spells¡¯ physical impact.
The same was now happening to me. My thoughts and memories were more organized, yes, but the how of it wasn¡¯t magical mysticism¡ªit was structural. Real, as if my gray matter was being systematically replaced with crystalline architecture. Each memory, each timeline, being cataloged and stored in geometric precision in four dimensional space, thoughts flowing through lattices of transformed matter rather than neural pathways. The spell wasn''t just affecting how I thought - it was fundamentally changing what I was thinking with. This wasn''t magic in the traditional sense; this was biological reconstruction at its most intimate level.
The idea spiraled further: If my brain had transformed, what about the rest of me? Was I becoming a walking glass factory? What if my organs were next? Would my lungs turn into crystal bellows? My stomach into a shiny gemstone pouch? Hell, what if my heart was already pumping something far more sparkly than blood? Shouldn¡¯t I be dead by now?
Magic wasn¡¯t just magical¡ªit was too fucking magical.
"What happened?" she asked, her voice edged with alarm as she crouched down, placing a firm hand on my shoulder.
"I... I don¡¯t know," I gasped, struggling to catch my breath. "It¡¯s like my body¡¯s out of sync with my mind. My thoughts are moving too fast, but my body¡ it can¡¯t keep up.¡±
Her frown deepened as she pulled me upright, "Be careful," she said softly. "You¡¯re shaking."
And she was right. My legs trembled beneath me, unsteady and unpredictable. Each attempt to balance felt like playing a broken video game¡ªdelayed responses and overcorrections. I tried to stabilize myself, but the effort only sent me lurching sideways. Jade caught me with ease, her arms steadying me before I could collapse.
She caught me easily, her grip strong and steady. ¡°You¡¯re moving like you¡¯re drunk,¡±
I managed a weak chuckle despite myself. "Not my usual post-spell assimilation side effect."
Her unease grew, her grip tightening slightly. "Are you sure you¡¯re okay? Because it doesn¡¯t look like it. Let me call someone¡ªa doctor, a meta healer, anyone."
"No," I said quickly, raising a trembling hand to stop her. "Not yet. First, I need you to check something." My voice was shaky but resolute. "Do you see¡ anything strange about me? Anything unusual?"
She raised a shaky hand, pointing to the mirror across the room. "You¡ you should see yourself."
Curiosity and dread warred within me as Jade helped me stand and guided me to the large mirror nearby. When I finally stood before the mirror, the reflection staring back at me made my blood run cold. My irises weren¡¯t brown anymore. They were black¡ªpitch black¡ªbut not in any natural way. It wasn¡¯t just a dark shade; it was alive, swirling faintly within my eyes like an endless abyss.
I stared, unable to tear my gaze away from the eerie sight. The blackness moved, twisting and rippling as though it had a mind of its own.
The sight was eerily familiar, too familiar, and my stomach churned as realization hit me.
It was the same darkness I¡¯d seen in Sir Nash¡¯s eyes. At the time, I had thought it was just a characteristic of his meta nature, an oddity unique to him. But now, staring into my own corrupted reflection, I realized my notion had only been half true.
This was the so called Corruption of Arcane he had warned me about.
The memory of his explanation resurfaced, and for the first time, I truly understood what he had meant. The darkness wasn¡¯t just a part of the spell¡ªit was a manifestation of something deeper, a price for dabbling in powers that bent the natural order. The Strangeness! It sat calm on the surface for now, but I had seen it in Nash¡¯s eyes. The more the spell was used, the more of that darkness would rise, growing and merging into itself like a living thing. It was not just a side effect¡ªit was alive, parasitic, and insidious.
Fear gripped me, coiling tightly around my chest. I had known there were risks before I assimilated the spell, but facing the reality of them was another matter. Was this irreversible? I wondered. Was this strangeness now an intrinsic part of me, marking me as something¡ other?
I stared at my reflection, trying to suppress the rising tide of unease. My mind raced with questions, but no answers came.
Then, as if sensing the storm within me, Jade¡¯s hand slipped into mine. Her touch was warm, grounding, and her soft voice cut through the chaos.
¡°Take a deep breath,¡± she asked, though her tone tinged with concern. "Everything will be fine."
Her question momentarily pulled me out of my spiral of thoughts.
I needed a scan of my brain¡ That thought settled firmly in my mind. These spells, as promising as they had sounded, had consequences¡ªones that couldn¡¯t be ignored. If I couldn¡¯t sync my actions with my thoughts, then I was, for all intents and purposes, useless. Jade helped guide me back to the chair, her support steady as I struggled with my coordination. Once I was seated, I took a deep breath. ¡°Get a stopwatch, pen, and paper,¡± I instructed, my voice calmer than I felt.
To her credit, Jade didn¡¯t bombard me with questions. She simply nodded, retrieved the items, and handed them over. Her silence, focused and understanding, was something I deeply appreciated in that moment.
¡°How fast do neurons in our brains communicate?¡± I asked as I gripped the pen, my fingers trembling slightly.
Jade furrowed her brows and searched online. ¡°Electrical signals travel at approximately 80 to 120 meters per second,¡± she began. ¡°Chemical signals take about 0.5 to 1 millisecond.¡±
I nodded and began scribbling a series of messy calculations on the paper. The numbers weren¡¯t perfect¡ªI wasn¡¯t trying to win an award. I just needed a rough estimate of how fast my thoughts were now being generated and transmitted. If the medium had indeed changed, and my neurons were communicating at speeds closer to¡ªor even half¡ªthe speed of light, then the shift in my perception and actions made a lot more sense.
Finally, I placed the notebook down with a sigh. The conclusion wasn¡¯t shocking, but it was sobering.
It wasn¡¯t about the difference in timing. The adjustments were still measured in milliseconds, only slightly faster than the original speed. The real issue was that while my brain now worked exponentially faster, the signals travelling down my spinal cord and throughout my body were still moving at the normal human speed.
It was like my mind was overclocked, running on a futuristic processor, while the rest of my body remained an old, clunky machine trying to catch up.
The solution, at least for now, was clear: I needed to calm my mind and stop overthinking. My brain was firing too fast for its own good, and I had to forcibly slow it down.
Taking another deep breath, I focused on wiping my mind clean of any thoughts, letting the chaos dissipate.
I stopped thinking.
For the first time since activating the spell, I felt a semblance of balance returning.
My body began to feel less sluggish as my mind''s overclocked pace gradually slowed, inching closer to alignment with my physical actions.
Tentatively, I tried lifting my hand¡ªand voil¨¤! It moved effortlessly.
I waved it back and forth, testing it further, then thought of another action. There was a slight delay, close to half a millisecond, but it was manageable. Encouraged, I stood on my feet cautiously, holding my breath as if the balance might betray me again. But this time, there was no wobble. I let out a deep sigh and instinctively turned to Jade, who had been watching me with a mix of worry and anticipation. A deep breath filled my lungs, and relief washed over me. Without a second thought,I reached for Jade, pulling her into a tight hug. My arms wrapping around her like a lifeline. For a fleeting moment, the fear¡ªthe possibility of being trapped within my own mind¡ªfaded into the background. All that mattered was her. I clung to Jade as if she were the only thing keeping me tethered to reality.
She stiffened in my arms, her body freezing in surprise. Then, with a soft sigh, she relaxed, her arms wrapping around me in return. Her embrace was warm, ¡°You scared me,¡± she murmured, her voice muffled against my chest. ¡°Don¡¯t ever do that again, you idiot.¡±
"I swear, I didn¡¯t mean to,¡± I murmured, burying my face in her hair. ¡°But I¡¯m okay now. I think¡ whatever the spell did, it¡¯s manageable.¡±
She pulled back slightly, her hands gripping my shoulders as she looked up at me, her silver eyes narrowed. ¡°Manageable or not, if you pull another stunt like that, I¡¯ll¡ª¡±
¡°¡ªbeat me until I understand?¡± I finished for her with a soft chuckle, my smile betraying how much I enjoyed her concern.
¡°Yes,¡± she huffed, her cheeks puffing slightly in annoyance. ¡°You¡¯re laughing, but I¡¯m serious. This¡ª¡± she gestured vaguely at me and eyes, her voice rising slightly, ¡°¡ªthis isn¡¯t something you should mess around with. Do you even realize what would¡¯ve happened if you didn¡¯t come back from... whatever that was?¡±
I nodded, taking her words to heart. ¡°You¡¯re right.¡±
For now, I couldn¡¯t shake the apprehension about the remaining three spells. What kind of changes would they bring? Could I risk using them on myself¡ªor even giving them to Jade? They were bound to reshape us in profound ways, and that thought left me unsettled.
¡°Let¡¯s go upstairs,¡± I said, agreeing to her demands without hesitation, ¡°I feel exhausted.¡±
We sank back into the sofa, the tension in the air slowly ebbing away. I closed my eyes, letting the silence envelop us. My mind drifted to the possibilities¡ªwhat the spell had done to me, how it might have altered my very being. The sharp clarity of my memories was startling. Events from my past, even those buried deep in the folds of time, surfaced with an intensity that made them feel fresh.
Tentatively, I reached further back, daring to touch the edges of a timeline that felt almost forgotten: my first cycle.
And then, without warning, my vision blurred and shifted.
I was back.
The mindscape¡ªor the mindfield, as I¡¯d come to call it¡ªunfolded around me.
The space extended infinitely in all directions, a breathtaking maze of double helix structures, their spiraling forms towering endlessly above and below me. Their translucent glow pulsed faintly, like the rhythm of a distant heartbeat. Each strand was laced with crystals of varying shapes, sizes, and hues, forming a seemingly endless lattice. But what truly caught my attention was the four-dimensional nature of the space¡ªheight, width, depth, and time itself interwoven into the geometry. The helixes and crystals shifted in ways that defied comprehension, as though they existed in a space that only the subconscious could fathom.
Also it didn''t feel hostile anymore, as though the spell had finished its task of reshaping my mental landscape. This time, I didn¡¯t feel like a trespasser in my own mind.
Relief washed over me, loosening the knot in my chest. The earlier terror that the spell had irreparably damaged me began to dissipate. With a clearer head, I could finally study this strange, otherworldly space for what it was¡ªa construct, built from fragments of my past and bound together by the spell¡¯s design. Each crystal it it was alive, playing fragments of my memories across its shimmering surface. I reached out, tentatively brushing my fingers against one, and immediately, a vivid scene from my life sprang to life in my mind.
It wasn¡¯t just a memory. It was all of it¡ªthe sights, the sounds, the emotions, the very thoughts I had in that moment. A perfect replica, preserved in crystalline clarity.
Focusing on the memory caused the lattice to ripple. The double helixes twisted and rotated, moving in an intricate yet incomprehensible motion, carrying me through the space. Yet, I wasn¡¯t moving myself; the mindfield shifted around me. No, opposite. Ugh! I couldn''t tell. It was too confusing.
Then another cluster of crystals came into view, glowing faintly with a familiar light. On their surfaces, moments from my first cycle began to play. My heart raced as I stared at the vivid images of a life that felt both alien and mine. These were memories I had thought long lost¡ªburied under layers of time and repetition. Yet here they were, pristine and untouched. I stepped closer¡ªor rather, the mindfield brought me closer¡ªexamining the memory more closely. The crystal pulsed, and as I reached out, it seemed to respond to my touch, unraveling its contents further. The scene grew larger, filling my vision entirely. I saw my younger self, laughing with my family in the garden, the scent of freshly cut grass almost tangible. The emotions of that moment¡ªpure joy, warmth, and belonging¡ªsurged through me.
I pulled back, overwhelmed.
The shards weren¡¯t just memories¡ªthey were living pieces of me, suspended in a way that made them feel more real than ever before.
And for anyone who dared to invade this space. If someone tried to read my mind without my me being a guide, they would be drawn to these glass shards as they detonate in this consciousness like stepped on a minefield¡ªand the consequences would be catastrophic.
¡°Impressive work,¡± I muttered, a wry smile tugging at my lips. ¡°But let¡¯s hope I never have to use it.¡±
The experience was both scary and exhilarating, and my earlier fear of the spells mostly faded. My thoughts raced. I came to the conclusion, this space wasn¡¯t just a repository of memories¡ªit was alive, reacting to me in ways I couldn¡¯t fully perceive and fanthom. However, for now, I didn''t know if it was a good thing or bad. And, I couldn¡¯t think of possibly using the other spells at the moment.
Suddenly, a familiar voice pulled me back to reality.
¡°North?¡± Jade¡¯s voice was soft but laced with concern. My eyes snapped open, meeting her gaze. She was perched on the edge of the sofa, watching me closely.
¡°You zoned out,¡± she said, her brow furrowed. ¡°What happened?¡±
¡°Nothing bad,¡± I assured her. ¡°Just¡ testing the new hardware.¡±
She raised an eyebrow, unconvinced. ¡°And?¡±
¡°And it¡¯s seemed to be working,¡± I replied with a small grin.
Jade let out a soft laugh, though the worry in her eyes lingered. She shifted closer to me on the sofa, her curiosity palpable.
¡°You never actually told me,¡± she began, taking my hand in hers and playing with my fingers to get the words out of me more easily, ¡°What was this spell supposed to do, exactly?¡±
I hesitated for a moment, trying to gauge how much I should share. The truth? Too complicated¡ªand potentially alarming. Instead, I opted for a more superficial explanation.
¡°It¡¯s supposed to¡ make me think better,¡± I said with a casual shrug, avoiding her eyes.
Jade raised an eyebrow, her lips twitching ¡°Think better? That¡¯s your big, impressive spell? What¡¯s next¡ªone that helps you tie your shoes?¡±
I shot her a mock glare, ¡°Hey, don¡¯t knock it. Thinking better is an underrated skill.¡±
¡°Underrated or underutilized?¡± she quipped.
¡°Wow,¡± I said, clutching my chest dramatically. ¡°Straight for the heart. Remind me why I let you stay around again?¡±
¡°Because you¡¯d be lost without me,¡± she replied, her grin softening into a fond smile.
I sighed, leaning back into the sofa. ¡°You¡¯re not wrong,¡± I admitted quietly, meeting her gaze. ¡°But seriously, the spell¡¯s more complicated than that. I¡¯ll explain it properly¡ªsomeday.¡±
¡°Someday,¡± she echoed, rolling her eyes but letting it slide.
¡°Fine. Just don¡¯t let it fry that better-thinking brain of yours.¡±
Act 2.16 (Chrysalis)
Arcane¡ How was it different from other forms of magic?
It didn¡¯t just manipulate energy or elements¡ªit seemed to bring things to life.
The more I tried to understand its nature, the more convoluted and branched out the concept became. It was like pulling at the thread of a tangled web, only to find more layers hidden beneath, each more complex than the last.
The next day, Jade and I attended our lectures as usual. For half the day, everything felt normal, as if the storm that had been brewing was now lying dormant. But I knew better¡ªthis was the calm before the inevitable punishment. I was sure by now, the academy had figured that Jade and I were the reason for the bad situation. And then, the moment of judgment arrived. Halfway through our lecture, a woman in a sharp suit appeared at the door. Without a word, she gestured for me to follow. My pulse quickened, but I kept my expression neutral. I gathered my belongings, trying not to meet the curious gazes of my classmates, and left the room. Now that I had time to think about it, I might be the most problematic student in our class.
As I followed the woman down the long corridors, my mind raced with possibilities. The academy was notorious for its unconventional methods of handling discipline. They didn¡¯t believe in simply casting students out; no, they preferred to mold, reform, or¡ªif all else failed¡ªbreak them down until they fit the institution¡¯s ideals. Even if Jade had killed those students¡ªand I doubted it had gone that far¡ªthe harshest penalty wouldn¡¯t have been expulsion. Whatever awaited me at the end of this walk, I had no doubt it would be... memorable.
In just two minutes, I found myself outside the disciplinary office.
The assistant, without so much as a glance, motioned for me to sit in the lone chair by the wall. Then, as if I were invisible, she vanished inside, the door clicking shut behind her.
I sat down, the silence of the hallway pressing in on me. My eyes darted around, half-expecting to see Jade already waiting. But there was no sign of her. My thoughts churned as I tried to piece together what might have happened. Jade must have been called in earlier, given our different class schedules¡ªI hadn¡¯t seen her since morning.
Had they spoken to her first? Was she facing the brunt of the consequences?
My silent questions were soon answered. The door creaked open, snapping me out of my spiraling thoughts and I saw Jade stepping out. Her shoulders were slouched, her usual confident air completely stripped away. She looked like a rose cloaked in gloom, her radiance dimmed by something heavy weighing her down. She moved quietly to the seat beside me, her movements slow and subdued. She didn¡¯t look at me, didn¡¯t say a word. Her expression was a mix of frustration. I wanted to ask her what had happened, what punishment had been doled out, but the words caught in my throat.
Before I could say anything, the assistant reappeared, ¡°Mr. North,¡± she called, her tone clipped and professional.
I stood, glancing back at Jade, then leaned down to give her a soft hug, reassuring hug. Her faint nod was all the response I got, but it was enough for now.
I turned and entered the office, my curiosity piqued. In two cycles, I¡¯d never once been dragged to the disciplinary office, so this was... new. A first, like trying out a weird dessert you weren¡¯t sure you¡¯d enjoy but couldn¡¯t resist.
The air inside the office seemed heavier, oppressive. My gaze shifted immediately to the six students standing by the desk. To my no surprise, they looked perfectly fine¡ªno signs of the collapse or their hearts giving up from twelve hours ago. Their expressions, however, suggested they were perfectly aware of why I was here.
¡°Take your seat, North,¡± came the calm but firm voice of the disciplinary officer, Madam Olran.
Her nameplate gleamed under the overhead light, and her sharp gaze cut through my thoughts. I sat down without a word.
¡°I assume you¡¯re aware of why you¡¯ve been called here.¡± Madam Olran said, her hands folded on the desk.
I nodded slightly, ¡°I have an idea.¡±
Though my mind couldn¡¯t help but wander. Were Jade and I the only ones facing the axe for this? Meanwhile, these six clowns¡ªwhose unprovoked insult had started the whole mess¡ªstood there untouched. Untouchable, more like. I guessed the Academy wouldn¡¯t waste much effort on them. It was always easier to focus on those who fought back rather than those who started the fight.
¡°Yesterday¡¯s incident,¡± Madam Olran began, ¡°was, let¡¯s say, disruptive. While the exact details remain unclear, our preliminary investigation suggests that you and Ms. Jade were involved.¡±
¡°And by ¡®involved,¡¯ you mean...?¡±
Her lips twitched, ¡°Let¡¯s not play coy, Mr. North. The aftermath speaks for itself. four students sustained serious injuries, other three minor but notable, and several more were psychologically rattled. You¡¯ve stirred the pot, as they say.¡±
I remained silent, unsure of how much to admit¡ªor deny. The administrator leaned forward, her eyes narrowing.
¡°This behavior violates not only the Academy¡¯s student code of conduct but also basic moral expectations as metahuman.¡± Madam Olran''s tone was cool but unyielding.
¡°The Academy values discipline highly,¡± She continued. ¡°But we also value potential. So, Mr. North, I¡¯ll ask you this once: What do you have to say for yourself?¡±
I considered my words carefully. ¡°It was¡ a regrettable incident,¡± I began, my tone measured. ¡°But it wasn¡¯t without provocation. I¡¯m not excusing what happened, but it wasn¡¯t entirely unprovoked.¡±
The six students stiffened, and I could feel their resentment simmering. One of them, a lanky girl with sharp features, glared at me from the corner of her eye. Then she opened her mouth, likely to protest, but Madam Olran raised a hand sharply, silencing her before a single word escaped.
¡°This is not the time for excuses,¡± she shut her instantly, her tone flat yet sharp. ¡°Every person in this room is responsible for what happened, though the level of accountability differs. And each of you will face consequences.¡±
Then her eyes landed back on me. ¡°North, and your classmate Jade, the two of you displayed a lack of control and recklessness, threatening your fellow students'' lives using your meta nature. I understand tempers flared, but that does not absolve you of your actions. This academy has protocols for conflict resolution, and you chose to ignore them.¡±
I tried not to sigh audibly. Of course, she had a point, but who had time for ¡°measures¡± when arrogant dragons were already going for the flamethrower?
¡°It¡¯s fortunate no one was seriously hurt, but that doesn¡¯t erase what happened. You¡¯re both being given a chance to learn from this, but make no mistake: this is your warning. Any future incidents like this will result in much harsher consequences.¡±
I nodded, mostly to make it end faster. There was nothing else to say, and it was clear she wasn¡¯t asking for an explanation. Still, my thoughts wandered briefly. How were the families of these students feeling about the incident? Would they let this slide, or would I have to start watching my back every time I left the academy? There were a lot of vengeful, well-funded people out there who didn¡¯t take kindly to their offspring getting a metaphorical smackdown.
Madam Olran¡¯s gaze shifted to the group of six students standing to the side. Her already sharp tone hardened further. ¡°And as for you six. Your behavior was equally unacceptable. Provoking others, creating a hostile environment in the academy¡ªit¡¯s childish and dangerous. Words have power, and you used yours irresponsibly.¡±
The lanky girl¡¯s jaw tightened, her fists clenching at her sides, but she didn¡¯t dare speak this time.
¡°Do you think the world outside this academy will tolerate such arrogance?¡± Madam Olran pressed, her voice growing colder. ¡°Do you believe your meta natures or your family names will protect you forever? They won¡¯t. Actions have consequences, and out there, in the real world, your recklessness could cost you your life¡ªor someone else¡¯s.¡±
With a final warning, Mrs. Olran dismissed the six students. They shuffled out with a mix of shame and suppressed irritation, their heads low. The door clicked shut behind them, leaving the room significantly quieter.
Mrs. Olran¡¯s assistant turned her focus to me, and Mrs. Olran herself didn¡¯t waste time.
¡°Because this was your first offense and you actively attempted to deescalate the situation, I personally don¡¯t hold you fully accountable,¡± she began, her tone surprisingly calm. ¡°However, you and your fellow classmate were still the catalysts and lacked proper discipline.¡±
Catalysts, I thought, fighting the urge to raise an eyebrow. Sure, let¡¯s call us that.
¡°An official letter detailing the event and its consequences will be sent to your home. As for your punishment: you are barred from using your meta nature on academy grounds for the next three months. Additionally, you will be required to complete one year of community service and attend a year-long course on power ethics.¡±
I nodded, absorbing the information. Three months without using my meta nature? A minor inconvenience. Community service? Annoying, but survivable. Power ethics class? Okay, that one might sting¡ªmostly because I¡¯d probably fall asleep halfway through each session. All things considered, I¡¯d gotten off pretty lightly.
Mrs. Olran¡¯s voice snapped me out of my thoughts. ¡°However,¡± she said, her tone sharpening, ¡°if there are any further signs of aggression or misuse of your meta nature against fellow students, the consequences will be far more severe. They won¡¯t be limited to simple detention or community service. You could face prison time of up to a year or early deployment to a dangerous system¡¯s frontline.¡±
Frontline deployment? That escalated quickly. I nodded again, this time with a touch more seriousness. Not because I was scared¡ªI just didn¡¯t want to give her the impression that I wasn¡¯t taking this seriously.Support the creativity of authors by visiting the original site for this novel and more.
¡°Understood,¡± I said, keeping my tone steady. Inside, I was already mentally drafting an excuse for the letter that would soon find its way home. Something involving ¡°helping a friend in trouble¡± might work. Parents loved noble-sounding excuses.
After a pause, I rose from my chair, feeling a small wave of relief wash over me. This could¡¯ve gone much worse. I¡¯d managed to avoid expulsion, and I wasn¡¯t being sent to a cosmic deathtrap¡ yet.
Just as I was about to stand up, Mrs. Olran¡¯s voice stopped me mid-motion.
¡°North,¡± she said, her tone softer but no less commanding. I turned, my expression carefully neutral.
¡°Yes, ma¡¯am?¡±
¡°There¡¯s one more thing,¡± Mrs. Olran said, her tone shifting slightly. It wasn¡¯t ominous, but it wasn¡¯t casual either. That got my attention.
I froze, halfway out of my chair, and slowly lowered myself back down. ¡°Go on.¡±
¡°We received a personal message for you¡ªfrom Jade¡¯s parents.¡±
Ah, there it was. My heart sank faster than a rock in a river, and for the first time during this meeting, my mask of calm cracked just a little. Whatever was coming, it wasn¡¯t going to be a warm invitation to family dinner.
Mrs. Olran clasped her hands, her expression neutral but her tone now overly careful, like she was handling a live grenade. ¡°Normally, the Beyonder¡¯s Academy doesn¡¯t interfere in students¡¯ personal lives. You¡¯re free to form friendships¡ªor relationships¡ªas you see fit. However, Jade¡¯s parents specifically requested that I deliver this message to you.¡±
Oh, great, I thought. Because nothing screams "mind your business" like sending a formal message through the disciplinary office.
She cleared her throat, her gaze steady. ¡°They wanted to acknowledge that you¡¯re a bright student with a promising future. That much is clear. However, they believe it¡¯s in your best interest to reconsider your relationship with Jade.¡±
I blinked, stunned by the sheer audacity. ¡°Reconsider,¡± I echoed flatly. ¡°As in¡?¡±
¡°As in, they think you should not see each others,¡± she clarified. ¡°They¡¯ve advised¡ª¡± and here she did a great job of not rolling her eyes, ¡°¡ªthat Jade isn¡¯t who you think she is. In their words, your lives are incompatible, and it would be wiser to part ways now rather than regret it later.¡±
I tried to keep my face blank, but my thoughts were running at full speed. Lives are incompatible? Regret it later? What is this, a dating show where parents get a veto?
Madam Orlan must¡¯ve noticed my rising tension, because she added, ¡°This isn¡¯t meant as a threat. They¡¯ve framed it as advice¡ªfor your own well-being.¡±
¡°Advice,¡± I repeated, my voice dry. ¡°That¡¯s thoughtful of them.¡±
Mrs. Olran didn¡¯t respond.
¡°Is that all?¡± I asked finally, keeping my voice steady despite the storm brewing inside me.
Mrs. Olran nodded, ¡°That¡¯s all. You¡¯re free to leave.¡±
I rose from the chair, my movements deliberate, and left the office without a backward glance. The hallway outside felt eerily empty, and I quickly noticed that Jade wasn¡¯t waiting there anymore.
Did she already leave?
Then it crossed my mind that she might have spoken to her parents while inside and received a similar warning or piece of "advice." That would explain her earlier gloom. Jade wasn¡¯t one to let punishment weigh her down; if anything, she would have brushed it off with defiance. After all, she had been ready to stand by her actions, consequences be damned. The thought unsettled me. If she had spoken with them, had their words affected her? Or was she simply fuming in her own way, refusing to let anyone¡ªincluding me¡ªsee it? Perhaps they thought I was a bad influence, that I was the reason she¡¯d acted out so recklessly. The idea unsettled me. Did they believe I was dragging her down, making her decisions for her, or worse¡ªleading her into situations she¡¯d regret?
I glanced down the empty hallway one last time before heading toward the exit. Whatever they¡¯d said to her, I¡¯d find out soon enough. And while the idea of her parents trying to interfere annoyed me, it didn¡¯t change anything.
In the next class, I barely had time to settle into my seat before the group of Alex, Lore, Gina, Henry, and Vinico surrounded me, their curious eyes fixed on me like a spotlight. Their voices overlapped in a flurry of questions and guesses, leaving me no room to respond.
¡°So, are you going to tell us what happened?¡±
¡°Did you fight someone?¡±
¡°Was it Jade¡¯s idea?¡±
¡°Do we need popcorn for this story?¡±
¡°Guys, guys, calm down!¡± Alex finally stepped in, trying to restore order by physically pushing them back a step. ¡°At least let him explain before you start grilling him!¡±
I sighed, leaning back in my chair. It wasn¡¯t as though I could escape this interrogation, so I might as well give them something to chew on. ¡°There was an incident yesterday,¡± I said, choosing my words carefully. ¡°Let¡¯s just say some people couldn¡¯t keep their mouths shut, and Jade and I might¡¯ve... overreacted.¡±
Vinico¡¯s eyes lit up like a kid on Christmas morning. ¡°Overreacted how?¡± he pressed, leaning in so close I could smell the mint gum he was chewing.
I hesitated, debating whether or not to downplay the details. But judging by their expressions, they wouldn¡¯t be satisfied until they got something juicy. ¡°Let¡¯s put it this way: if the academy hadn¡¯t stepped in, things could¡¯ve gotten¡ messy.¡±
Gina¡¯s brow furrowed as she folded her arms. ¡°Messy how? Spilled drinks or spilled blood?¡±
Before I could answer, Lore¡¯s eyes widened, a spark of realization lighting up her face. ¡°Wait,¡± she said, her tone sharp and accusatory. ¡°You mean the students who mysteriously got sent to the med wing yesterday? The ones who were barely clinging to life?¡±
Vinico practically jumped out of his seat. ¡°That was you two?!¡± he exclaimed, a mix of awe and disbelief in his voice.
I pinched the bridge of my nose, already regretting not keeping my mouth shut. ¡°It wasn¡¯t just us,¡± I muttered. ¡°They started it.¡±
¡°Classic villain defense,¡± Henry quipped, smirking. ¡°They started it.¡±
I rolled my eyes. ¡°You weren¡¯t there. Trust me, you¡¯d have done the same thing.¡±
Alex crossed his arms, tilting his head curiously. ¡°what¡¯s the damage? Are you guys in trouble?¡±
¡°A little,¡± I admitted, keeping my tone casual. ¡°Punishment¡¯s not too bad¡ªjust some community service, ethics classes, and no using meta nature on campus for three months.¡±
The group collectively groaned at the mention of ethics classes, their shared disdain for the mandatory lectures evident.
¡°The punishment is too light,¡± Henry said, crossing his arms. ¡°You two got off easy without serious repercussions.¡±
I nodded, agreeing with his sentiment. We truly had gotten lucky, all things considered.
Vinico whistled low. ¡°Wow, you¡¯re lucky they didn¡¯t expel you. I mean, you guys almost killed them. That¡¯s gotta be a new level of overkill.¡±
Alex leaned closer, ¡°Also did you guys hear something else about the student lounge?¡±
Gina arched an eyebrow. ¡°No, what about it?¡±
Alex grinned. ¡°Apparently, the academy closed it for a few days. Officially, they¡¯re saying it¡¯s for ¡®construction¡¯ or some routine maintenance. But I heard some students talking about weird stuff happening there.¡±
¡°What kind of weird stuff?¡± Henry asked, leaning in, clearly intrigued.
¡°You know, the usual... drinks spilling for no reason, people tripping over nothing, homework disappearing into thin air,¡± Alex said, ticking off each point on his fingers. ¡°One guy swears he walked in and immediately lost his lucky charm. Another said the lights flickered, and he dropped his entire lunch.¡±
Lore gave him a skeptical look. ¡°You¡¯re saying the lounge is cursed?¡±
¡°Not cursed,¡± Alex replied, wiggling his eyebrows. ¡°But... you have to admit, it sounds like bad luck central. And it all started yesterday, right after¡ª¡± He trailed off, his gaze darting toward me meaningfully.
I resisted the urge to roll my eyes, keeping my face carefully neutral. Inside, though, my thoughts churned. Of course, it was Jade¡¯s meta nature bleeding into reality. Her emotions had destabilized the localized space in the lounge.
The academy wouldn¡¯t be able to fix it with some basic repairs or recalibration of the area. They¡¯d need a high-level meta with spatial restoration abilities¡ªsomeone who could literally reset the metaphysical properties of the space. And even then, it wouldn¡¯t be easy. It might take days, weeks even, to stabilize the lounge fully. If they didn¡¯t call in help soon, the whole area might remain semi-hostile to anyone who dared enter.
¡°Come on,¡± Lore said, her tone dripping with suspicion. ¡°You can¡¯t tell me this has nothing to do with Jade. We all know how... her meta works.¡±
¡°Yeah,¡± Gina chimed in, ¡°if anyone¡¯s meta nature could mess with a place like that, it¡¯s hers.¡±
I shrugged, feigning ignorance. ¡°I have no idea what you¡¯re talking about. Maybe the lounge just needs better management.¡±
Then Alex turned to me, ¡°Jade? Is she okay?¡±
¡°I don¡¯t know,¡± I admitted with a slight frown, leaning back in my chair. ¡°The last I saw her was outside the disciplinary office. She didn¡¯t say much.¡±
The group exchanged uncertain glances, their curiosity mingled with genuine concern for Jade¡¯s well-being. Even Vinico, who rarely expressed any serious emotion, looked momentarily thoughtful.
¡°She¡¯s tough,¡± Lore finally said with a shrug. ¡°If she¡¯s upset, she¡¯ll bounce back. But maybe we should check on her later, just in case.¡±
I nodded, already planning to do so. Jade wasn¡¯t one to let her emotions show easily, but I knew her well enough to see when something was bothering her. For now, I just needed to give her space.
Gina shifted uncomfortably, breaking the silence. ¡°Honestly, after hearing all this, I¡¯m kind of glad I wasn¡¯t involved in the mess. I wouldn¡¯t survive a second in the disciplinary office. My parents would kill me.¡±
¡°You mean your parents would kill the disciplinary officer for daring to punish their precious daughter,¡± Vinico quipped, earning a round of chuckles.
¡°Maybe,¡± Gina said with a smirk, not entirely denying it.
Shortly, the conversation naturally shifted away from Jade and me being pulled out of class, gravitating toward the topic of villain gangs. Each of us had taken the task of infiltrating a gang or villain group, collecting information, and potentially dismantling parts of their operations from within.
¡°Has everybody finally picked which gangs they¡¯re going to infiltrate?¡± Lore asked, taking the seat across my table.
¡°I¡¯ll be joining the Black Sun villain group,¡± Alex declared confidently. ¡°They¡¯re a medium-sized organization with about thirty or so members across different ranks. Their main activities are in the West District, where they control a lot of businesses. Most of it¡¯s dirty¡ªexploitation of young or homeless girls, running clubs, and prostitution rings.¡±
The group nodded collectively. Alex¡¯s choice was calculated, targeting a group with tangible influence but not so large that it would be impossible to navigate their structure. He clearly wasn¡¯t afraid to dive into murky waters.
¡°I¡¯ll be targeting the Sinister Hands,¡± Gina announced next. ¡°They¡¯re involved in smuggling high-end tech and arms, operating under the radar in the North District. Their leader is someone with techno meta nature, which means they¡¯ve got access to some serious tech-savvy members and technology.¡±
When it was my turn, I straightened up slightly in my seat. ¡°I¡¯ll be going after the Tunnel Underground. They¡¯ve been ramping up their criminal activities in my neighborhood lately¡ªextortion, illegal substances, even some underground fighting rings. They¡¯re smaller, but well-connected. Jade and I have been tracking their movements for the past two weeks.¡±
I paused, glancing at the group. ¡°I know it¡¯s not conventional, but Jade and I will be working together on this one. With their growing network, it¡¯s better to have two sets of eyes and hands.¡±
Gina was the first to break it, her expression lighting up with approval. ¡°No problem, no problem!¡± she said, her voice cheerful and encouraging. ¡°Makes sense. It¡¯s a very large villain group, spanning the entire city. It¡¯s a smart move.¡±
The others exchanged glances but soon nodded in agreement, following Gina¡¯s lead.
¡°Looks like everyone¡¯s made their choices. However, don¡¯t forget to ask for help if anyone gets stuck in some tough situation. After all, our lives are more important than winning a so-called game.¡± Lore leaned back in her chair with a faint smile.
¡°Good luck, then.¡±
Act 2.17 (Chrysalis)
"Are you sure you''re okay?" Leo''s voice broke through my spiraling thoughts.
He sat slouched in the chair beside me, one leg draped over the armrest and a book lazily propped on his lap. Not that he was reading it¡ªhis eyes were fixed on me with the intensity of someone who had way too much free time.
"I''m fine," I replied, a little too sharply.
(Skip to the red line halfway through the chapter if you¡¯d rather avoid the emotional drama.)
Leo arched an eyebrow, completely unfazed. "You sure? Because the way you¡¯ve been staring at that phone for the past thirty minutes, it looks like you¡¯re either expecting a message from God or trying to mentally summon one."
I sighed, gripping the phone a little tighter. "Can you not?"
Leo leaned back in his chair, letting out a dramatic sigh of his own. "Just saying, I don¡¯t think notifications work faster through sheer willpower. You¡¯ve checked your phone ten times in the last five minutes.¡±
I shot him a warning look. "Leo, can you try¡ªjust try¡ªfor once in your life to be quiet?"
¡°Hey, I¡¯m just trying to help,¡± he said, raising his hands in mock surrender. Then, as if unable to help himself, he added under his breath, "Not my fault your girlfriend¡¯s ghosting you."
That did it. I turned to glare at him, but my usual fire was missing. He wasn¡¯t entirely wrong, and that only made his words sting more. I let out a frustrated groan and sank back onto my bed, staring up at the ceiling like it held all the answers.
Dammit! I think I was going mad and my life was coming to an end.
Love was scary!
"See?" Leo continued, his tone maddeningly cheerful. "Now you¡¯re doing the classic ¡®existential ceiling stare.¡¯ That¡¯s at least Level Three Worry. You¡¯ve got it bad, man."
¡°Do you have an off button?¡± I muttered, looking lifeless.
"Nope," Leo replied with a grin. "But I do have suggestions. Why don¡¯t you just go check on her? You know, like a normal person."
I peeked over, frowning. "And do what? Knock on her door and say, ¡®Hey, why aren¡¯t you replying to my messages?¡¯ That¡¯s not desperate at all."
Leo shrugged. "Desperate? Maybe. Effective? Definitely. I mean, what¡¯s worse¡ªsitting here going insane, or just ripping off the Band-Aid?"
I frowned, my mind racing. Should I?
The thought of showing up unannounced was tempting¡ªbut it also felt¡ reckless. What if she needed space and I just made things worse? But then again, what if something was wrong? What if I was sitting here moping like an idiot while she actually needed me?
"You¡¯re overthinking it," Leo chimed in, as if reading my mind. "Either you go check on her, or you sit here driving yourself crazy. Those are your options, bro."
I sat up, immeditly jumping up. His words, as irritating as they were, made sense.
"Fine," I muttered, dashing to grabbing my jacket. "I¡¯ll go check on her."
My heart was already teetering on the edge, needing just a little push to leap into action. Without a second thought, I rushed downstairs. Aunt Grace wasn¡¯t home, sparing me the trouble of answering any questions or dealing with her knowing glances. The ride to Jade¡¯s house felt both too fast and agonizingly slow. Twenty-five minutes, but each mile felt like a trial. When the car finally pulled up in front of her home, I sat there for a moment, staring at the front door. My palms were clammy, and my heartbeat was loud enough to drown out the engine¡¯s noise. With a quick tip to the driver, I stepped out, the cool evening air doing little to calm my nerves.
Knock. Knock.
I rapped on the door, trying to strike the balance between polite and urgent. One minute passed. Then two. Then three.
Knock. Knock. Knock.
This time, I knocked harder, my frustration and worry spilling into the motion.
¡°What are you doing, trying to break my door down?¡±
Jade voice, sharp and irritated, came from behind the door.
I froze, a strange mix of relief and nervousness washing over me. Before I could process her words, the door swung open to reveal Jade. Her eyes were puffy and red, her expression a swirl of exhaustion and barely concealed frustration.
¡°Why are you here?¡± she asked, her voice sharp but unsteady. The crack at the end gave her away more than anything else.
I hesitated for a moment, words escaping me. ¡°I can leave if¡ª¡±
¡°Stupid,¡± she interrupted, her glare cutting through my hesitation like a knife. ¡°Then why did you come in the first place?¡±
Her tone was biting, but it didn¡¯t match the trembling of her hands as she gripped the edge of the door. She was trying to hold it together, but the cracks in her armor were showing, fragile and unmistakable.
¡°I was worried about you,¡± I said softly, taking a cautious step closer. ¡°You haven¡¯t been answering my calls. I just¡ I wanted to make sure you were okay.¡±
"Now you have it. Look, I''m fine," She said rubbing her eyes as to wipe away any evidence, but she avoided directly looking at me.
I shook my head at her falling attempts to hide her emotions and state, "Jade," I called out gently. My voice barely above a whisper. ¡°It¡¯s okay to not be fine.¡±
Her expression faltered for a moment, like she wanted to respond but couldn¡¯t figure out what to say. Without a word, she turned on her heel and walked back inside, leaving the door open. It was then I noticed she was wearing one of my hoodies¡ªthe same one she¡¯d stolen from my room weeks ago. Was she missing me, or was it just a coincidence? The thought lingered, tugging at me in a way I wasn¡¯t ready to unpack. Shaking my head, I followed her in and gently closed the door behind me. The living room was dim, illuminated only by the faint light filtering in through the curtains. A handful of crumpled tissues littered the coffee table. Jade plopped onto the sofa, her arms crossing defensively over her chest. Her back was rigid, her gaze fixed stubbornly on the floor. I hesitated for a moment before sitting down beside her, leaving a little space between us.
I began carefully, my tone soft. ¡°What¡¯s wrong? You don¡¯t have to deal with this alone. You can talk to me.¡±
She shook her head, her hair falling over her face like a curtain. ¡°Nothing¡¯s wrong,¡± she said, her voice flat. ¡°You shouldn¡¯t have come.¡±
Her words rang hollow, a flimsy wall that didn¡¯t match the tired red of her eyes or the faint tremor in her hands as they clutched at the fabric of her sweatpants. She was holding on to something¡ªmaybe her pride, maybe her anger¡ªbut whatever it was, it was locking me out.
I didn¡¯t want to push too hard, but I couldn¡¯t just sit there and accept her silence, either.
¡°Don¡¯t tell me nothing¡¯s wrong,¡± I said gently but firmly. ¡°I know you better than that.¡±
Her head snapped up, her silver eyes meeting mine. They shimmered with unshed tears, her walls threatening to crumble. For a moment, she said nothing, just stared at me as though weighing the cost of letting me in.
¡°Please,¡± she whispered, her voice trembling. ¡°Don¡¯t push me to open.¡±
The rawness in her tone froze me in place. It wasn¡¯t just a plea¡ªit was a warning, a fragile, desperate attempt to hold herself together.
I exhaled slowly, fighting the urge to press her further. ¡°Okay,¡± I said softly, taking a small step back, though my voice stayed steady. ¡°I won¡¯t push. But I¡¯m here. Whenever you¡¯re ready. You don¡¯t have to do this on your own.¡±
She blinked, and the first tear slipped down her cheek. She swiped at it hastily, ¡°Why do you always do this?¡± she muttered, her voice breaking. ¡°Why do you always have to be so¡ so stubborn?¡±
¡°Because someone has to be,¡± I said softly, my voice steady but gentle. ¡°And if it means being stubborn to remind you that you don¡¯t have to face this alone, then so be it.¡±
Her hands clenched around the fabric of her sweatpants, her knuckles whitening. ¡°You don¡¯t get it. You can¡¯t just¡ fix things by showing up and saying the right words. Life doesn¡¯t work like that!¡±
¡°I know,¡± I replied, ¡°I¡¯m not here to fix anything. I¡¯m here for you. There¡¯s a difference.¡±
Her breath hitched, and she looked away, her shoulders trembling slightly. ¡°I don¡¯t need anyone,¡± she whispered, though her tone lacked conviction.
¡°Maybe not,¡± I said, lowering my voice. ¡°But that doesn¡¯t mean you don¡¯t deserve someone.¡±
For a moment, the room fell silent except for her uneven breathing. Her walls were crumbling, piece by piece, and I knew better than to rush her.
¡°Fine,¡± she muttered, ¡°Just¡ stay.¡±
¡°Okay,¡± I said softly. ¡°I¡¯ll stay.¡±
I moved carefully, lowering myself onto the couch a few feet away from her. Close enough to be there, but not so close as to crowd her. Jade stayed where she was, her back to me, her breaths shallow but slowing. After a minute, I got up and walked to the kitchen, grabbing a glass from the cupboard. The faint clink of ice against the glass as I filled it with water echoed in the quiet house with snivels coming from the living room. I offered her the glass wordlessly. She hesitated before taking it, her fingers trembling slightly. She brought it to her lips, taking a few small sips. Her eyes stayed fixed on the water, as if avoiding mine on purpose.
I studied her face¡ªpale under the warm glow of the lamp, faint tear tracks streaking her cheeks, and the redness around her eyes.
What was eating her up like this? It was painfully obvious that her parents had told her to stay away from me, but was that really enough to bring her to tears? Maybe I didn¡¯t know her as well as I thought.
When she finished, she set the glass on the coffee table and leaned forward, her elbows resting on her knees. Her hands moved to her hair, fingers threading through it as she let out a shaky breath.
¡°It¡¯s my parents,¡± she said finally, her voice barely above a whisper. ¡°They¡¯re trying to control everything again.¡±
¡°They don¡¯t trust me,¡± she continued, her fingers tightening in her hair. ¡°They never have. It¡¯s like... no matter what I do, it¡¯s never good enough. I¡¯m always just their stupid project, their puppet, something to manage.¡± She laughed bitterly, the sound hollow and brittle. ¡°And I hate it.¡±
I leaned forward slightly, resting my forearms on my knees to match her posture. ¡°What are they trying to control this time?¡±
¡°¡°Everything. My choices, my time, who I¡¯m allowed to be with. They think I¡¯m distracted,¡± she admitted, her voice wavering. ¡°They think I¡¯m distracted. That I¡¯m not focused enough on their plans, on why I¡¯m even here. They don¡¯t like you, North. They think you¡¯re... dangerous for me.¡± Her hands fell to her lap as she lifted her gaze, meeting mine. Her silver eyes shimmered with unshed tears. ¡°They told me I should end things now. Before it¡¯s too late. Before something bad happens.¡±
¡°Something bad happens?¡± I echoed, confusion flickering in my voice. ¡°What does that even mean?¡±
Jade shook her head, wiping her eyes with the sleeve of her sweatshirt. ¡°Yesterday, I didn¡¯t realize the academy would inform my parents about the incident. And apparently, they¡¯ve been keeping tabs on me the whole time.¡± she muttered, her voice tinged with frustration and fear. ¡°They¡¯ve always been like this¡ªcontrolling, manipulative. But this time¡¡± Her voice trailed off. ¡°They¡¯re not good people, North. You shouldn¡¯t come in contact with them.¡±
¡°What do you mean they¡¯re not good people?¡± I hesitated, unsure how much to push. ¡°Why did they send you here in the first place, then? If they don¡¯t trust you or think you can handle yourself?¡±
¡°That¡¯s the thing,¡± she said, her voice tinged with frustration and something else¡ªfear. ¡°I don¡¯t know. None of it makes sense. They¡¯ve always had a plan for me, always made every decision. But this?¡± She gestured vaguely, her hands falling to her lap. ¡°Sending me here, letting me come to Earth¡ªit doesn¡¯t fit. They never explained why, and now they¡¯re trying to control me from a distance, like they¡¯re scared I might actually start thinking for myself.¡±
I slipped an arm around her shoulders, pulling her into a half-hug. Her body was stiff, but she didn¡¯t pull away. My hand moved instinctively in slow, soothing circles on her back, the same way you¡¯d comfort someone in the middle of a nightmare. That¡¯s what it felt like¡ªlike she was trapped in something she couldn¡¯t wake up from. Sometimes, parents are the worst thing that can happen to a child, I thought grimly. Jade¡¯s few words had revealed more than she probably meant to. This wasn¡¯t just about control. Her parents didn¡¯t just oversee her life¡ªthey dictated it, manipulating everything around her, ensuring that no one, least of all Jade, ever stepped out of line.
I could feel the weight of it in her trembling shoulders, in the way she pressed her lips together like she was trying to swallow the pain whole.
¡°They can¡¯t keep you like this forever, you know,¡± I said softly, my voice low enough that it wouldn¡¯t startle her.
Her head tilted slightly, just enough to show she¡¯d heard me, but she didn¡¯t reply.
¡°You¡¯re not something they get to own, Jade,¡± I continued. ¡°Not a tool, not a puppet. You¡¯re allowed to live for yourself. They don¡¯t get to take that away from you.¡±
¡°You make it sound so simple,¡± she murmured, her voice tinged with bitterness. ¡°But it¡¯s not. You don¡¯t know what they¡¯re capable of.¡±
"Look," I said quietly and calmly. "Whatever they are, whoever they are, I¡¯m not scared. They¡¯re not going to push me away from you. I¡¯m not going anywhere."
Her fear was evident - that our relationship would bring danger to my door. And while, maybe her parents were likely connected to some underground network, perhaps even leaders in their world. But that wasn¡¯t the whole picture. Someone else¡ªsomeone bigger¡ªwas behind the scenes. Perhaps the mastermind could be tied to the original time traveler or someone they controlled. The pieces were there, scattered like a jigsaw puzzle, but putting them together would take time. For now, all I could do was wait for the picture to come into focus.
Jade leaned back slightly, her head tilting just enough to look at me. Her eyes were wide and wet, shimmering with unshed tears that caught the dim light. She looked like she wanted to believe me but couldn¡¯t let herself.
¡°You don¡¯t get it, North,¡± she whispered, her voice cracking on my name. ¡°They don¡¯t just control me¡ªthey control everything. People, systems, entire lives. If they see you as a problem, they won¡¯t stop. They¡¯ll do whatever it takes to¡ª¡±
¡°Do you trust me?¡± I asked, cutting her off gently.
Her lips parted, her breath hitching as if she wanted to argue. But after a moment of hesitation, she nodded, the motion barely perceptible. ¡°I do.¡±
¡°Then trust me when I say I¡¯m not going anywhere,¡± I said, brushing a stray tear from her cheek with my thumb. Her skin was cold, and it made my resolve burn even hotter. ¡°Even if you push me away, I¡¯m staying. I¡¯m not letting them win.¡±
She shook her head, frustration bubbling over as her voice rose slightly. ¡°You¡¯re not listening! You don¡¯t understand how dangerous they are. They don¡¯t just threaten people¡ªthey erase them. If they see you as a problem, they won¡¯t stop until you¡¯re¡ª¡±
¡°You know why I like you?¡± I interrupted again, this time more firmly.
Her lips pressed into a thin line, and she shook her head, clearly more interested in protecting me than hearing my reasons.
I exhaled slowly, searching for the right words. This wasn¡¯t a moment for anything less than honesty.
¡°Because I need a reason to keep moving forward,¡± I said, my voice steady.
Her brow furrowed, confusion breaking through the storm in her eyes.
My hand moved to her chest, resting lightly over her heart. The rhythm beneath my fingers was uneven but strong, like it was fighting to keep her standing. ¡°You make my days shorter,¡± I said softly, my voice quieter now but no less certain. ¡°You make the hours slip through my fingers faster than they should. No matter how much time I spend with you, it¡¯s never enough. And that¡¯s never happened to me before.¡±
Her gaze darted to mine, a mix of confusion and vulnerability flashing across her silver eyes. I pressed on, wanting her to hear me, to understand.
¡°Believe me when I say, time doesn¡¯t mean the same thing to me as it does to you,¡± I continued. ¡° Chaos? It¡¯s just free entertainment. I wasn¡¯t afraid of it yesterday, and I won¡¯t be tomorrow.¡±
I caught her gaze again, holding it steady as I spoke, my tone firm but gentle. ¡°So, you don¡¯t have to worry about me. Whatever they are, whoever they are, they¡¯re not going to scare me off. I¡¯m not going anywhere.¡±
Her expression shifted slightly, the tension in her shoulders loosening, like a tightly wound spring beginning to unwind. I couldn¡¯t tell how much of what I said she truly believed. But something was changing. Maybe it was relief that I wouldn¡¯t abandon her, or maybe she was finding her own strength to push back against the fear that seemed to haunt her.
Sometimes, all it took was knowing someone else believed in you.
Jade exhaled deeply, the sound carrying the weight of the turmoil she¡¯d been holding inside. Her head leaned against my shoulder, a quiet surrender of her defenses. For a moment, the mighty dragon let her walls drop, and in that moment, she wasn¡¯t a force of nature¡ªshe was just Jade.
¡°You¡¯re so stubborn,¡± she murmured, her voice low and almost teasing. ¡°Why can¡¯t you just leave me alone? It would be easier.¡±
Easier for whom? The thought crossed my mind, but I didn¡¯t say it aloud. Instead, I brushed a strand of her hair from her face, letting my hand linger there for a moment.
¡°Maybe it would be,¡± I admitted quietly. ¡°But easy doesn¡¯t mean right. And you¡¯re not something I could ever give up.¡±
¡°I don¡¯t deserve this,¡± she murmured.
I glanced at her, surprised. ¡°Don¡¯t deserve what?¡±
¡°This,¡± she said, gesturing vaguely at the space between us. ¡°You. Any of it. You don¡¯t even know what you¡¯re risking.¡±
¡°You don¡¯t get to decide what you deserve. That¡¯s not how this works.¡± I replied stubbornly.
Her eyes flicked up to meet mine, a flicker of vulnerability shining through the fear. ¡°But I¡¯ve done things¡ things I can¡¯t fix.
I cut her off, my tone firm but kind. ¡°Do you think I care what others think? About what you¡¯ve done? You think I don¡¯t know the risks?¡± I paused, searching her face. ¡°I¡¯m here because I want to be. Because you¡¯re worth it.¡±
Her breath hitched, and she shook her head, her hands balling into fists against my chest. ¡°Why? Why would you do that? It doesn¡¯t make sense.¡±
¡°Because you¡¯re the first person who¡¯s ever made my life feel bigger than just me,¡± I said, my voice steady. ¡°You make it matter. And no one¡ªno parent, no enemy, no shadow¡ªis going to take that away from me.¡±
Her tears came silently this time, streaking her cheeks as her fingers curled into the fabric of my shirt as if holding onto it could steady the storm inside her. ¡°You¡¯re so stupid,¡± she whispered, a small laugh escaping through her tears. ¡°But I¡¯m glad you¡¯re stupid.¡±
¡°Huh?¡± I feigned surprise, raising an eyebrow.
¡°I thought you already knew that.¡± Then, with a playful smile, I flicked her forehead gently. ¡°But only a real idiot falls in love with another idiot.¡±
¡°Ouch!¡± she yelped, her hand flying to her forehead as if I¡¯d seriously hurt her. But the sound was followed by a laugh¡ªlight and genuine¡ªand a real smile broke through the tears still clinging to her lashes.
¡°Yeah,¡± she said softly, her voice steadying as she looked up at me. ¡°I guess I must be stupid too.¡±
¡°Yes, you¡¯re,¡± I replied with a grin, wrapping my arms around her and pulling her closer. ¡°That makes two of us. Let¡¯s figure this out together, okay?¡±
Her nod was slow, but it carried a certainty that hadn¡¯t been there before.
Her arms slid around me tightly, her grip almost desperate, as if letting go would make me vanish.
¡°Okay,¡± she whispered, her voice muffled against my chest. ¡°Together.¡±
I pressed a kiss to the top of her head, letting the warmth of the moment settle around us. I held her as close as I could, as if I could shield her from everything she feared.
¡°Together,¡± I promised, my voice low but unwavering.
?????????????????????????????????????????????????????????????????????????????????
For the next two weeks, Jade and I kept our interactions more discreet, avoiding open spaces where prying eyes might be watching. I was worried, her parents were probably keeping tabs on us, and we couldn¡¯t afford to give them a reason to interfere. Instead, we made the academy''s emergency stairwell our secret meeting spot. It wasn¡¯t glamorous, but it was ours. The lack of cameras and its usual state of being locked made it a safe haven for us.
It felt like a necessary sacrifice to keep her close to me. I couldn¡¯t bear the thought of her parents deciding to pull her out of the academy and moving her back to their home planet. The mere idea was horrifying.
Meanwhile, I had my own burdens to deal with: the 24 hours of weekly community service and endless ethics lectures. They were a pain in the ass. I found myself wishing every day for some miraculous reprieve, but, as always, my prayers fell on deaf ears.
During this time, I also made a significant investment¡ªan idea that had been rattling around in my head for weeks. I bought an old research lab in the Western District. It wasn¡¯t cheap. Fifty million dollars evaporated from my account in a single transaction, but I didn¡¯t hesitate. The place had once been a cutting-edge lab where scientists studied particles and energy, but the company had gone bankrupt and while their downfall was unfortunate, it left behind exactly what I needed: an empty lab with specialized tools and instruments I could repurpose for my own needs.
I intended to transform it into my personal lab, a base where I could dive into my research on Arcane magic and spells.
This felt like a worthwhile pursuit¡ªa field vast and mysterious enough to challenge me, to give purpose to this third cycle.Stolen content alert: this content belongs on Royal Road. Report any occurrences.
The first time I walked into the lab, it felt surreal. Dust covered most of the surfaces, and the air carried the faint metallic tang of disuse. Rows of complicated machines lined the walls, their screens black. The silence was heavy, like the place had been waiting for someone to wake it up again.
I spent hours wandering through the small facility, imagining what it must¡¯ve been like when it was buzzing with dozens of scientists. Every corner held some potential. I sketched out plans for where I¡¯d start setting up my work, which areas I¡¯d clear for testing, and which equipment needed repairs or upgrades. It was overwhelming but kind of exciting in a way. And then, the next month flew by in a blur of fixing, tweaking, and setting things up. Having been a student of science in my second cycle, I had a pretty good grasp of handling machines and solving technical issues. Each success, no matter how small, filled me with a quiet sense of pride as the lab slowly transformed from a dusty, abandoned relic into something functional¡ªsomething mine.
The work wasn¡¯t glamorous. Most days, I was up to my elbows in grease or fiddling with outdated instruments and circuits. But there was a strange satisfaction in the repetition, in seeing my plans come to life one wire, one screw, one recalibrated machine at a time. The equipment, once dead and silent, now lit up softly, signaling progress.
Still, the venture was turning out to be a black hole for money.
Even though my lottery win had filled my account to the brim, it was draining faster than I anticipated. Equipment repairs, software updates, special tools¡ªI had budgeted for all of it, but the reality of running a full-scale lab, especially that dabbled into magic, hit harder than expected. Every week, I saw the numbers in my account dip lower and lower. I wasn¡¯t worried¡ªyet. After all, luck was still on my side. I had been cautious about overusing it, mindful of the delicate balance that kept it from turning against me. But today, it was time to dip into that well again.
Today was the lucky day of the month, the day when someone would scratch another winning lottery ticket.
I had mapped out the patterns, observed the timings, and now I just needed to follow the plan meticulously. Being in the right place at the right time was all it would take to tip the odds in my favor.
Another lottery scratch. Something to refill the coffers and keep my plans afloat.
Hopefully, I won¡¯t be getting beaten this time around, I thought grimly. The memory of my last ill-fated attempt was still fresh¡ªand painful. Jade had practically dragged my half-conscious body home after that fiasco, muttering something about how my stupidity knew no bounds. The humiliation still stung.
¡°Great, now we¡¯re inside the mall,¡± Alex grumbled, his tone dripping with frustration. ¡°You guys still haven¡¯t told me why you dragged me here. I have better things to do.¡±
¡°Do you?¡± Jade quipped, her eyebrow arching as she glanced at him.
Alex scowled. ¡°Yes. Like¡ not being here.¡±
Jade turned to me, shrugged, and silently handed off the ¡°explaining¡± part to me. Thanks for that.
¡°We¡¯re here to win the monthly lottery draw,¡± I said, keeping my tone as casual as possible.
Alex blinked at me, clearly unimpressed. ¡°Win the lottery? How exactly?¡±
¡°Well,¡± I began, choosing my words carefully, ¡°using Jade¡¯s and my meta natures, we can, uh, pinpoint the winning ticket and, you know, make it happen.¡±
Alex raised an eyebrow, skepticism radiating off him in waves. ¡°Meta natures. Right. Sure. And the tooth fairy¡¯s in the food court grabbing a smoothie, I suppose?¡±
Naturally, I couldn¡¯t tell him the full truth¡ªthat I already knew exactly where the winning ticket would show up. Still, I wasn¡¯t technically lying. If I pushed my meta abilities hard enough, I could locate a fortune. The real issue was what kind of cosmic tantrum I¡¯d have to deal with afterward. For example, my meta nature might point me toward a mountain of gold and when I reach there I found a dragon coiling it that would burn me alive. Not Good!
¡°Oh,¡± Alex said slowly, his expression shifting as realization hit. ¡°Wait a second¡ªis that why you two are always so close?¡±
Hold on. Wrong conclusion!
¡°No!¡± I said, maybe a little too quickly. Jade shot me a look, part amusement, part ¡°you¡¯re on your own.¡±
Alex crossed his arms, clearly enjoying my discomfort. ¡°Uh-huh. Sure. But isn¡¯t this whole thing, like¡ against the rules or something? Manipulating luck to win?¡±
I sighed, rubbing the back of my neck. ¡°First of all, it¡¯s not manipulating luck¡ªit¡¯s redistributing probabilities. Totally different thing. Second¡¡± I paused, debating how much of this I wanted to explain. ¡°Okay, fine, but who¡¯s going to prove it? Good fortune isn¡¯t illegal. As long as no one sees a ¡®crime,¡¯ then there is no crime.¡±
I glanced at Jade for backup. She nodded, her expression as unapologetic as mine. Team solidarity.
Alex hesitated, clearly suspicious. ¡°So, what do you need me for? Pretty sure no one likes sharing their fortune with others.¡±
Jade stepped in, her voice calm and composed, like she was explaining why we needed eggs for breakfast. ¡°I¡¯ll be increasing North¡¯s fortune for a couple of minutes,¡± she said. ¡°During that time, and for a few hours after, his luck will¡ recalibrate.¡±
¡°Recalibrate?¡± Alex repeated, narrowing his eyes.
I cut in, helpfully. ¡°Plummet into the negatives. Think sudden chaos, accidents, stuff catching on fire for no reason.¡±
¡°Awesome,¡± Alex deadpanned. ¡°And you¡¯re just¡ cool with that?¡±
I shrugged. ¡°It¡¯s manageable.¡±
¡°That¡¯s where you come in,¡± Jade said, picking up the thread without missing a beat. ¡°We need you to keep him alive and in one piece while the universe throws its tantrum. Deal with any random disasters, make sure he doesn¡¯t walk into traffic or accidentally blow something up. You know, basic babysitting.¡±
Alex stared at us like we¡¯d just asked him to wrestle a bear. ¡°So let me get this straight: you¡¯re going to cheat the lottery, tank your own luck, and I¡¯m the guy who has to babysit you while the universe tries to murder you?¡±
¡°Exactly,¡± I said, grinning. ¡°And hey, you might even get a cut of the winnings. It¡¯s a win-win.¡±
¡°For who?¡± Alex muttered, pinching the bridge of his nose. ¡°This has bad idea written all over it.¡±
¡°Not if you¡¯re good at your job,¡± I said cheerfully.
¡°Great,¡± Alex groaned. ¡°This better be worth it. If I end up in the hospital because of one of your schemes, you owe me for life. No exceptions.¡±
¡°Deal,¡± I said without hesitation.
But Our little venture was doomed to hit snags from the start. As we neared the shop in the mall, my steps faltered. There he was¡ªthe goon from last time, jabbing furiously at the lottery machine¡¯s buttons like it had personally wronged him. His frustration was palpable. Worse still, he wasn¡¯t alone. Two burly accomplices loitered nearby, radiating a level of menace usually reserved for bad action movies. I froze just outside the shop, raising a hand to stop both Alex and Jade. They exchanged confused glances before following my gaze through the half-glass window. Jade¡¯s expression shifted instantly to one of righteous indignation, while Alex just looked, well, Alex¡ªclueless and slightly alarmed.
¡°What¡¯s the problem?¡± Alex asked, leaning in to peer at the man with the subtlety of a train horn.
¡°He¡¯s our competitor,¡± Jade muttered, her voice low but brimming with disdain. ¡°Last time, we almost had to run for our lives because of him. And now he¡¯s brought backup.¡±
Alex¡¯s gaze flicked back to the shop. ¡°So, uh, what¡¯s the plan here? Because I¡¯m not built for running¡ªor dying, for that matter.¡±
My eyes narrowed as I focused on the scene inside. Though I couldn¡¯t be entirely sure, I had a strong suspicion this guy might be the second anomaly I¡¯d encountered this cycle, aside from Jade. Trouble seemed to orbit me like a storm cloud that didn¡¯t know how to take a hint.
¡°We can¡¯t fight in the mall,¡± I said after a moment, glancing at Jade. ¡°Unless, of course, you¡¯re feeling lucky enough to spend the night in a jail cell.¡±
¡°Pass,¡± she replied dryly.
¡°Can you reduce their odds of winning?¡± I asked, shifting gears.
Jade¡¯s eyes lit up, a sly smile curling at the edges of her lips. ¡°Easily.¡±
¡°Good. But don¡¯t go overboard¡ªjust enough to make sure they can¡¯t win,¡± I instructed. but looking at her evil grin for a second, I wondered if she would actually hold back.
Alex, meanwhile, was watching our exchange with growing suspicion. ¡°Okay, but what about us?¡± he asked. ¡°We can¡¯t just hang around here forever.¡±
¡°We¡¯ll wait them out,¡± I explained. ¡°They¡¯re not going to stay in there all day. But timing is critical¡ªif no one draws the winning ticket within the allocated window, the draw¡¯s voided, and we¡¯re out of luck.¡±
¡°And if they don¡¯t leave in time?¡± Alex asked skeptically.
¡°Then we improvise,¡± I said with a shrug. ¡°But hopefully, it won¡¯t come to that.¡±
I turned to Alex and handed him my bank card. ¡°You¡¯ll have to go in. They don¡¯t know you¡¯re with us.¡±
Alex hesitated, looking at the card like I¡¯d handed him a live grenade. ¡°Wait. Me? What about my luck? Isn¡¯t it going to screw things up?¡±
Jade smirked, already preparing to work her magic. ¡°Don¡¯t worry about that,¡± she said, her tone far too gleeful for comfort. ¡°I¡¯ll make sure you have just enough luck to pull this off. Any more, and we risk making it obvious.¡±
¡°And any less?¡± Alex asked, clearly not reassured.
¡°Then you might trip over your own feet and end up in the fountain,¡± she said sweetly.
¡°Great,¡± Alex muttered, pinching the bridge of his nose. ¡°This is definitely going to end well.¡±
¡°Exactly,¡± I said, clapping him on the back. ¡°You¡¯ve got this. Just stay calm, act natural, and don¡¯t make eye contact with the goons.¡±
Alex hesitated, his brow furrowing. ¡°What about my luck? Won¡¯t that screw things up?¡±
Jade explained, ¡°It won¡¯t matter. Once I lower their odds of success, the system will be in our favor. They won¡¯t be able to draw the winning ticket no matter how hard they try. That leaves the field open for you.¡±
Alex¡¯s eyes narrowed, his skepticism plain. ¡°And you¡¯re sure about this? Because I don¡¯t feel like ending up as a statistical anomaly.¡±
¡°It¡¯s science,¡± Jade said breezily.
I gave Alex a reassuring nod. ¡°You¡¯ll be fine. Worst case, we get in a fight end up in the hospital for a night.¡±
Alex squared his shoulders with a sigh, muttered something under his breath about questionable friends, and strode toward the store with all the confidence of someone marching to their doom.
Jade and I retreated to an inconspicuous spot behind a nearby pillar, keeping a clear view of the shop while avoiding any unnecessary attention. I took a deep breath, finally appreciating the foresight of bringing Alex along. If this trio of misfits decided to start trouble, Alex could flatten them. Reinforcements or not, it wouldn¡¯t even be a fair fight. Of course, there was another reason for involving Alex. Having him draw the winning ticket under his name added a layer of plausible deniability. Jade and I couldn¡¯t afford to leave fingerprints on this little operation¡ªnot if we wanted to keep flying under the radar. Alex was our perfect buffer: unlucky enough to be believable, strong enough to bail me out if this went south.
We watched, eyes glued to the shop like hawks on a hunt. Inside, the main goon smacked the lottery machine, his face a picture of frustration. He clearly hadn¡¯t noticed his luck taking a nosedive¡ªthough, judging by the way his accomplices were fidgeting uncomfortably, they might have sensed something wasn¡¯t right.
I allowed myself a small, satisfied grin. This might actually work better than expected without me putting my life in danger.
I glanced at Jade, who was peering intently into the store through the window. Her outfit today was its own mix of charm: a white high-neck crop top that hugged her slender figure, paired with a fluffy blue-and-navy argyle cardigan draped loosely over her narrow shoulders. Her high-waisted, vintage-style blue jeans added a relaxed, casual vibe, while the pink-tinted round glasses perched on her nose gave her an intellectual edge. Also, her hair was worn straight and loose, with soft bangs framing her face, enhancing the casual and natural appeal.
In the last two months, things had calmed down a lot between us. The storm of emotions, her parents¡¯ interference, and the fight had all seemed to settle, leaving us in a more peaceful place. And Jade had mostly returned to her usual cheerful and whimsical nature. As I watched her, I wished I could freeze this moment in time. Her smile, her presence¡ªit was a dream I wanted to hold onto, even if I knew dreams like this rarely stayed forever.
Eventually, I broke the silence. ¡°So, how does this whole luck manipulation thing work for you?¡±
She didn¡¯t look back, her eyes still locked on the store as she answered. ¡°It¡¯s nothing complicated. I¡¯m just affecting randomness in his surroundings. While doing that, I¡¯m taking away the chances and possibilities of anything good happening around him¡ªor to him¡ªand storing them for later use. That¡¯s how I increased your luck last time. I just borrowed it from someone else¡¯s pool of fortune.¡±
Her explanation left me a little surprised. It sounded like maintaining a universal balance, shifting fortune like currency from one person to another.
She finally turned to look at me, "I can''t just create good fortune from nothing. Well¡ª" A shadow crossed her face. "I could, technically. But there''s a ninety-eight percent chance that in the next second, you''d be reduced to strips of ribbons."
¡°Strips of ribbons?¡± I repeated, staring at her.
¡°Yes,¡± she said matter-of-factly, her lips twitching in amusement. ¡°Messing with randomness too much creates chaos. So I don¡¯t pull from nothing¡ªI just borrow luck and misfortune from the world around me, from what''s already out there. It''s like working with the current instead of against it."
It made sense in a twisted sort of way. Luck wasn''t some infinite resource you could tap into endlessly¡ªit wasn''t even something you could see or touch. It was subtle, elusive, and those rare few who could manipulate it were like master thieves working with an invisible treasure.
Moreover, there was rarely anyone at Jade¡¯s level. Just looking at the lucky goon, even though he had meta nature that allowed him to be extremely lucky, it wasn¡¯t much before her.
¡°Well,¡± I said lightly, trying to shake off the mental image of me as decorative ribbons, ¡°I¡¯d prefer not to be turned into confetti.¡±
¡°That¡¯s good,¡± she teased, her smile widening. ¡°Then don¡¯t push your luck.¡±
Meanwhile, the situation inside the store was heating up fast. The main goon¡ªa thin man with a permanent scowl and a leather jacket that looked two sizes too big¡ªslammed his fist against the lottery machine. His frustration boiled over as the screen displayed yet another losing ticket.
¡°Goddammit! This thing¡¯s rigged!¡± he snarled, his voice loud enough to draw uneasy glances from nearby customers.
One of his lackeys, a scruffy-bearded guy in a faded hoodie, crossed his arms and glared at him. ¡°Rigged, my ass! You¡¯re supposed to be the lucky one, huh? Said you¡¯d lead us to fortune. But ever since we started following you, it¡¯s been nothing but bad luck!¡±
¡°Yeah,¡± chimed in the other lackey, a burly man with a shaved head and a permanent scowl of his own. His voice was low and dripping with bitterness. ¡°First, we lost that stash to the cops because you wanted to ¡®test today¡¯s luck.¡¯ Now we¡¯re standing here watching you punch a damn machine like it¡¯s gonna spit out gold coins!¡±
The thin man¡ªthe so-called Lucky Rabbit¡ªwhirled around to face them, his scowl deepening. ¡°Shut it, both of you! I know what I¡¯m doing! Luck¡¯s just¡ outta sync today, that¡¯s all.¡±
Lucky Rabbit¡¯s scowl deepened, his jaw tightening as he turned to face his lackey. ¡°Shut your mouth,¡± he growled, his voice low and menacing.
The wiry one, undeterred, threw his hands up dramatically. ¡°Am I wrong? We lost the stash because you said, ¡®Don¡¯t worry, today¡¯s my lucky day!¡¯ We lost the car because, what? You had a hunch it could make it through the alley?¡± He gestured wildly at the machine. ¡°And now this? The machine doesn¡¯t even want to work with you!¡±
The burly lackey, who had been watching in uncomfortable silence, finally chimed in. ¡°He¡¯s got a point, boss. You said luck was your thing, but lately¡ it¡¯s not lookin¡¯ so good.¡±
Lucky Rabbit shot him a glare sharp enough to cut glass. ¡°You two idiots wanna do this without me? Be my guest. Go ahead¡ªshow me how much better you are.¡± He stepped back, gesturing at the stubborn machine like it was a challenge.
For a moment, the tension between them was thick enough to cut with a knife. The burly lackey held his ground, but he didn¡¯t move toward the machine. Instead, he muttered under his breath, ¡°I mean¡ I didn¡¯t say I could do better¡ª"
¡°Then shut up!¡± Lucky Rabbit barked, his voice loud enough to draw a few wary glances from nearby shoppers.
"You¡¯re gonna keep blaming the universe no matter what.¡± Wiry lackey rolled his eyes.
¡°Damn right I am!¡± Lucky Rabbit snapped, turning back to the machine. He gave it one last slap for good measure, then leaned against it, glaring at the flashing lights like they¡¯d personally insulted him.
From our vantage point behind the pillar, Jade smirked, her amusement barely contained. ¡°This is so much fun,¡± she whispered, her voice brimming with mischief.
Back inside the store, the wiry lackey folded his arms, clearly still annoyed. ¡°Whatever, man. I¡¯m just saying, maybe stop calling yourself the Lucky Rabbit until, you know, you actually get lucky.¡±
Lucky Rabbit growled, his fists clenching as he stepped closer to the machine, jabbing at the buttons with renewed frustration. ¡°Just watch. I¡¯ll prove it. You¡¯ll see.¡±
Meanwhile, Alex moved quietly to the other lottery machine, his posture casual and unassuming. His movements were almost too relaxed, but his sharp gaze darted over the screen and keypad like a predator sizing up its prey. Sliding the bank card I¡¯d given him through the machine with one hand, he hovered his other hand over the buttons, ready to strike.
Tickets began spitting out with rhythmic precision, each one folded neatly into his pocket. He kept his pace steady and deliberate, his ears tuned to the escalating chaos behind him.
"Man, I can¡¯t believe this!" the wiry lackey shouted, throwing his hands up. "Why the hell did I even stick with you? It¡¯s like everything you touch turns to crap!"
Lucky Rabbit whipped around, and barked. ¡°You think I¡¯m the problem? You think I¡¯m the reason things keep going south?¡± Slamming his fist against the machine one last time. This time, the machine responded with a loud, angry beep and an error message flashing across the screen.
The wiry lackey let out a sharp laugh, pointing at the uncooperative machine. "ha, even the machine¡¯s had enough of you, man!"
The burly lackey snorted, unable to hold back his own laugh. ¡°Hey, maybe you should change your name, boss. How about Unlucky Turtle? Way more fitting.¡±
Lucky Rabbit¡¯s jaw tightened, "You two wanna keep running your mouths, or do you actually have something useful to say?¡±
Alex, meanwhile, smirked subtly, his fingers deftly retrieving another ticket. He pocketed it without breaking stride, his calm, calculated movements making it look like he¡¯d been born for this.
The two goons¡¯ frustration hit a boiling point as they turned to vent their anger elsewhere. That¡¯s when they noticed Alex, standing at the other machine with an air of calm detachment, smoothly drawing tickets one after another.
Lucky Rabbit¡¯s eyes narrowed, his suspicion growing as he watched Alex casually pocket another ticket, his movements confident and unhurried, as if he owned the place.
¡°Hey, boss,¡± the wiry lackey muttered, nudging Lucky Rabbit. ¡°That guy over there¡¯s pulling tickets like it¡¯s no big deal.¡±
Lucky Rabbit¡¯s scowl deepened as he squinted at Alex. ¡°What the hell is he doing?¡±
The burly lackey folded his arms, tilting his head as he studied Alex. ¡°Looks like he¡¯s got it all figured out. That machine¡¯s spitting ¡®em out like candy for him.¡±
The wiry lackey snorted. ¡°Meanwhile, we¡¯ve got this busted junk heap that doesn¡¯t even want to look at us anymore.¡±
¡°Shut it,¡± Lucky Rabbit growled. His eyes stayed locked on Alex, who, oblivious¡ªor perhaps intentionally so¡ªcontinued to draw tickets with an enviable ease.
¡°Hey, you!¡± Lucky Rabbit barked, finally stepping toward Alex, his lackeys trailing behind him. ¡°Step away from that machine. We need it.¡±
Alex didn¡¯t flinch. He drew another ticket, slid it into his pocket, and pressed the button for the next one, all without so much as a glance in their direction. His air of complete indifference only seemed to enrage the goons further.
"You deaf?" the wiry lackey snapped, stepping in closer, his voice dripping with aggression.
"Boss said move," added the burly lackey, cracking his knuckles for emphasis.
"Yeah," the wiry lackey chimed in, cracking his knuckles for effect. "Don¡¯t make us get rough."
With perfect timing, Alex finally turned to them, his expression utterly bored. ¡°Oh, were you talking to me?¡± he asked, feigning ignorance.
Lucky Rabbit¡¯s eye twitched, ¡°Yeah. We were talking to you. Get lost before you make this worse for yourself.¡±
Alex casually pocketed another ticket, his smirk widening just a fraction. ¡°Don¡¯t mind me. I¡¯m just here for the jackpot. You guys seem busy¡ breaking machines.¡±
The wiry lackey stepped closer, his patience clearly running out. ¡°You¡¯ve got about five seconds to move, pal.¡±
Behind the pillar, I stifled a laugh. ¡°He¡¯s really pushing it.¡±
"You three look like you¡¯ve had a bad day," Alex said dryly, slipping another ticket into his pocket without a care in the world. "I¡¯d recommend you leave before it gets worse."
The burly goon leaned in, his scowl deepening into something he probably thought was menacing. "You think you¡¯re tough, huh? We¡¯re not asking. We¡¯re telling. Step away, or we¡¯ll make you regret it."
Alex let out a slow, deliberate sigh, straightening his posture. His calm eyes took on a steely glint, and the easygoing smirk on his face vanished, replaced by something cold and cutting. "Do you idiots even know who you¡¯re dealing with?" he asked, his voice low and dangerous.
The three goons exchanged uneasy glances, their bravado faltering.
Alex took a deliberate step toward them, his entire demeanor shifting. It was as though the air around him grew heavier, his presence swelling with an authority that seemed completely out of place in a mall lottery kiosk. "I¡¯m a student of Beyonder¡¯s Academy," he said, his words slicing through the tension like a knife. "If you¡¯ve got half a brain, you¡¯d know what that means."
The wiry lackey immediately paled, taking a hesitant step back. "B-Beyonder¡¯s Academy?" he stammered, his voice barely above a whisper. "He¡¯s gotta be bluffing¡ª"
"Shut up," Lucky Rabbit barked, though even his voice wavered.
It was a lose-lose situation, and they all knew it. If what Alex said was true, then picking a fight with him was about as smart as poking a sleeping bear. Lucky Rabbit tried to hold his ground, but Alex¡¯s piercing stare and effortless confidence made him falter.
Alex took another step forward, letting the silence stretch out just long enough to unsettle them further. "Let me spell it out for you," he said icily. "You mess with me, you¡¯re messing with my friends from the academy. You think you¡¯ve had bad luck today? Try crossing paths with a few of my seniors. They don¡¯t ask questions. They don¡¯t negotiate."
The wiry lackey swallowed hard, his earlier bravado evaporating like mist in the sun. "M-Maybe we should listen to him, boss," he muttered nervously, glancing at Lucky Rabbit.
The burly lackey nodded in agreement, his posture shrinking. Even Lucky Rabbit¡¯s hand twitched at his side, his confidence visibly crumbling.
"I¡ªI don¡¯t think it¡¯s worth it, boss," the wiry one added, a faint tremor in his voice. "Let¡¯s just go. He¡¯s not worth the trouble."
Alex smirked, folding his arms across his chest. His stance was unyielding, like a storm wall standing firm against the wind. "Smart choice," he said coolly. "Now, back off before I decide to teach you a lesson myself."
The wiry lackey didn¡¯t need to be told twice. He grabbed the burly goon by the sleeve, tugging him away with surprising urgency. "Come on, man. Let¡¯s go."
Lucky Rabbit lingered for a moment longer. As Alex threw one final glare over his shoulder, something shifted in Lucky Rabbit expression¡ªa flicker of genuine fear. Bad luck was one thing, but risking his life over a lottery ticket? No matter what that stranger had said, it wasn''t worth it. Besides, with his particular talent, there were always other tickets to scratch, other games to win. Alex waited until they vanished around the corner before turning back to the machine with practiced calm. The ticket that emerged had an unmistakable golden sheen in my vision. He caught our eye through the window, and his subtle smirk said everything.
¡°All clear,¡± he murmured, his tone smug yet calm, as if scaring off three grown men was just another mundane task on his to-do list.
Suddenly, I could feel Jade tense beside me, her hand gripping mine tightly. She turned to me, her eyes wide with barely contained energy. ¡°Should we take action?¡± she whispered urgently.
¡°And do what?¡± I asked, genuinely surprised.
She pressed closer, her eagerness palpable¡ªlike an overexcited puppy, albeit one with a penchant for violence. ¡°We could... you know... beat... no, teach them a lesson,¡± she mumbled, her cheeks tinged with redness as though she realized how absurd she sounded.
I blinked at her, caught between exasperation and amusement. This wasn¡¯t the first time she¡¯d suggested ¡°beating¡± someone as a solution, but it never failed to catch me off guard. Looking at her, I couldn¡¯t help but wonder about the peculiar upbringing that had shaped her. This strange mix of childlike need for approval and casual ruthlessness was as endearing as it was baffling. Maybe her parents had a very... unique approach to teaching problem-solving. Either way, her answer to most problems was always a decisive (if not entirely rational) ¡°beat them.¡±
I shook my head firmly. ¡°It¡¯s not worth getting into trouble. Besides,¡± I added, gesturing toward Alex, ¡°our mission here is already a success.¡±
Jade huffed, crossing her arms in a pout but relenting. ¡°Fine,¡± she grumbled, though the spark of annoyance in her eyes made it clear she wasn¡¯t thrilled with my decision.
Moments later, Alex strolled out of the shop, stretching leisurely like he¡¯d just wrapped up a satisfying workout. Reaching into his pocket, he pulled out a neat stack of tickets, handing them over to me with an exaggerated flourish. ¡°Here. Your fruits of hard work,¡± he said, grinning like he¡¯d just delivered a priceless treasure.
¡°More like your hard work,¡± I replied, taking the tickets and tucking them away. ¡°And don¡¯t get too cocky. That was only phase one.¡±
Alex arched an eyebrow. ¡°Phase one? Do I even want to know what phase two is?¡±
I smirked. ¡°No. But don¡¯t worry¡ªyou¡¯ll find out soon enough.¡±
Jade perked up at that, her earlier annoyance vanishing. ¡°Does phase two involve teaching lessons?¡± she asked hopefully.
¡°No,¡± I said firmly, shooting her a look.
She sighed dramatically.
I took the tickets, flipping through them briefly. Most of them appeared ordinary to the naked eye, but in my vision, the golden one stood out vividly. Its glow was almost blinding, a clear indicator that it was the winning ticket.
I pulled the golden-looking one out from the stack and held it up. ¡°This one stays with you.¡±
Alex arched an eyebrow, clearly curious. ¡°Is this phase two?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± I replied, handing the rest of the tickets back to him. ¡°I can¡¯t have more than one big winning ticket linked to me directly. You¡¯ll draw it online. Once the money comes in, we¡¯ll split it.¡±
He hesitated for a moment, glancing between the ticket and me, as if weighing the implications. Then, a sly smirk tugged at his lips. ¡°Smart move. It makes sense, considering we don¡¯t want anyone sniffing around for foul play.¡±
¡°Exactly,¡± I said with a nod, my tone serious. ¡°Better safe than sorry.¡±
Jade, who had been watching the exchange, finally chimed in with mischief., ¡°Just remember, Alex, if they trace anything back to you, we¡¯re not bailing you out.¡±
To be honest, Alex was the only one within our small friend group, whom she felt comfortable talking. They could even be called good friends.
Alex turned his head slightly, giving her an exaggerated look of mock betrayal. ¡°Wow, thanks for the vote of confidence, Jade. Good to know I can always count on you in a pinch.¡±
Jade shrugged nonchalantly, ¡°Oh, you can count on me¡ªfor moral support. From a safe distance.¡±
I chuckled, shaking my head. ¡°Don¡¯t let her fool you, Alex. If it gets bad, she¡¯d probably send flowers to your hospital room. Maybe even a card.¡±
¡°Handwritten or printed?¡± Alex asked, his voice dripping with sarcasm as he pocketed another ticket.
¡°Depends on how bad it is,¡± Jade quipped, leaning casually against the pillar. ¡°If it¡¯s just a minor scuffle, you¡¯re getting a printed one. But if it¡¯s a full-on fight?¡± She paused dramatically, her grin widening. ¡°I might break out the glitter pens.¡±
Alex let out a soft laugh, tucking the golden ticket safely into his pocket. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. I¡¯m not planning on getting caught. Besides, who¡¯d suspect someone as charming as me?¡±
Jade and I exchanged a glance, her expression skeptical, mine slightly amused. For all his smugness, Alex had proven reliable so far, and this arrangement really was the safest option.
¡°Alright,¡± Alex said, clapping his hands together with finality. ¡°I¡¯ll get this ticket submitted tonight. When the money comes in, I¡¯ll let you guys know.¡±
The tension of the day dissolved as we moved on, deciding to kill time browsing the mall¡¯s shops together. Alex, much to my surprise, turned out to have strong opinions about leather jackets, critiquing every one he tried on as though he were preparing for a biker fashion show. Jade, on the other hand, was drawn to every expensive clothing or accessory that caught her eye. By the time she tried on an oversized pair of rhinestone sunglasses and a neon pink scarf, she looked like she was starring in an avant-garde fashion show. ¡°What do you think?¡± she asked, striking a dramatic pose.
¡°Perfect,¡± Alex said without missing a beat. ¡°If you¡¯re planning to fight crime in Las Vegas.¡±
Even I couldn¡¯t hold back a laugh.
Eventually, evening rolled around, and we prepared to part ways. By this point, my hands were overflowing with Jade¡¯s shopping bags. There were at least four of them, all packed with everything from limited edition boots and jeans to a small stuffed animal she¡¯d insisted was ¡°too cute to leave behind.¡±
¡°Well,¡± Alex said, shooting me a knowing smirk. ¡°Looks like you¡¯ve got your hands full, North.¡±
¡°Literally,¡± I muttered, adjusting my grip on the bags.
¡°Good luck with that,¡± he added, waving us off as he disappeared into the crowd to ¡°handle business.¡±
As Jade and I walked toward the exit, the cool evening air brushing against us, she glanced up at me, her eyes soft and warm. ¡°Today was fun,¡± she said quietly.
¡°Yeah,¡± I replied, trying to shrug despite the awkward load in my arms.
She stopped just before the entrance, standing on her toes to press a light kiss to my cheek. Her smile turned slightly mischievous as she gestured to the bags in my hands. ¡°Consider it your reward for carrying all my treasures.¡±
I rolled my eyes but couldn¡¯t stop the smile spreading across my face. ¡°Oh, lucky me.¡±
Act 2.18 (Chrysalis)
The next day, instead of heading home after academy classes, I made a beeline for my personal lab.
Once there, I immediately set to work, carefully retrieving the newly arrived distortion rods from their case, setting them up in the room¡¯s corners. The rods were heavier than they looked, their polished surfaces catching the low light. As I adjusted their alignment, the faint vibration of their activation thrummed through the air, steady, rhythmic, and a little annoying.
¡°Can you reduce the margins for error?¡± I asked, glancing toward Jade. She was perched on the edge of the workbench, her legs swinging idly.
She didn¡¯t answer right away, her gaze fixed on me with a faint smile. I shook my head, she simply liked staring when I worked.
Finally, she leaned forward, resting her elbows on her knees. ¡°Yeah, sure,¡± she agreed, ¡°But seriously, what¡¯s these glowing sticks supposed to do, anyway?¡±
I didn¡¯t answer immediately, keeping my focus on the task at hand. Instead focused on fine-tuning the final alignment. Once the last adjustment clicked into place, I stepped back to inspect the setup. The containment field shimmered faintly, a subtle distortion at its edges, signaling that everything was functioning as intended. Satisfied, I let out a quiet breath and turned toward Jade, who was still perched on the table, her legs swinging idly. She was still looking at me with the kind of patient curiosity that wasn¡¯t entirely patient¡ªlike she was waiting for something interesting to happen and ready to pounce the moment it did.
¡°These glowing sticks are called Distortion Bars,¡± I explained. ¡°They¡¯re the cheapest tools available for detecting and recording any alterations in reality within a localized parameters. They work by creating a localized containment zone that¡¯s sensitive to reality altering changes.¡±
Jade¡¯s eyes lit up and she quickly drew a connection. ¡°So, these rods¡ they¡¯re basically budget versions of the academy¡¯s alarms? To catch students using their powers on campus?"
I chuckled, shrugging. ¡°Pretty much the same concept. But the academy alarms use a different version of this device. They use something called Meta Aspect. It¡¯s a type of radiation¡ªunique to metahumans¡ªthat gets released whenever we use our powers. Every meta nature leaves a distinct signature.¡±
Jade¡¯s eyes lit up with understanding, ¡°So, like a magical fingerprint.¡±
¡°Wait! Wait!¡± But suddenly, her expression shifted to one of surprise and skepticism. She narrowed her eyes slightly, her tone sharper. ¡°How do you know that? I¡¯ve never read anything like it in the books.¡±
I allowed myself a small smile, enjoying the rare moment of seeing her genuinely curious. To be honest, in certain topics related to her meta she was more knowledgeable than me.
¡°Of course, you haven¡¯t,¡± I replied, leaning back slightly. ¡°This exactly isn''t common knowledge. The government keeps this information classified for a reason. But here¡¯s the gist¡ªany cause that alters reality, no matter how subtle, leaves behind a signature. It could be radiation, a distortion field, or some other measurable disturbance like: false memories, how your own meta destabilize the reality for a long periods of time, causing other bad lucks, or even sudden habits appearing in a group of people. You¡¯ll cover it in your later years at the academy.¡±
Jade furrowed her brows, her expression thoughtful as she mulled over my words. I could almost see the gears turning in her head, connecting the dots and picking apart the implications.
¡°So,¡± she said slowly, her voice taking on a curious edge, ¡°how does the device differentiate genuine reality shifts from perceptual anomalies? What if the matter itself is inducing a localized truth, causing our observational framework to accept a false baseline reality as the correct temporal constant?
Her insight was impressive, but not surprising. I nodded, acknowledging her perceptiveness. ¡°That¡¯s a valid concern,¡± I said, meeting her gaze. ¡°The scientists who developed this had the same worry. So they came up with something clever. They discovered that reality itself has a kind of... weight to it. Not the kind you can measure on a regular scale, but more like a conceptual weight. Think of it as how solid and immovable the rules of the world are in any given spot.¡±
¡°The weight of reality?¡± Jade echoed, tilting her head in curiosity.
¡°Exactly,¡± I confirmed. ¡°It¡¯s a conceptual metric used to gauge the stability of reality in a defined space. When the rods are active, they measure this ¡®reality weight¡¯ within the containment field. Then¡ªand here''s the tricky part¡ªthe measured value is cross-referenced against what we call the Universal Reality Constant¡ªor URC¡ªwhich represents the standardized quantum-mass signature of undistorted space-time across all observable dimensions. Any deviation from this baseline indicates a manipulation of fundamental reality parameters, regardless of perceptual interference or localized reality distortion fields.¡±
I leaned forward slightly, shifting my tone to something lighter. ¡°Think of it like a bathtub full of water. You know exactly how much water should be in there. If someone splashes around, pulls some out, or pours more in, you¡¯ll notice because the water level changes.¡±
Jade¡¯s lips twitched into a faint smirk. ¡°So, reality has a ¡®water level,¡¯ and these rods are your measuring cup?¡±
I chuckled, shaking my head. ¡°Crude metaphor, but yeah, that¡¯s the gist. Any deviation from the constant is a clear indicator that something has happened¡ªwhether it¡¯s a minor disturbance or a major shift. The universe has its own normal ''water level'' of reality. When someone uses meta or changes things, it''s like they''re making waves in that reality-water or adding a color to it. These rods can spot those waves and colors, even if our eyes think everything looks normal. That''s how we know when something''s been messed with, even if the thing doing the messing is trying to hide it."
¡°Okay,¡± she said, tilting her head, ¡°but what if someone messes with the rods themselves? Like, what if their powers alter how the rods detect reality? Wouldn¡¯t that hide the changes?¡±
Her question caught me off guard, and I couldn¡¯t help but give her an approving nod. ¡°Smart,¡± I admitted. ¡°That¡¯s actually a big concern in labs where they rely on this tech. If someone can alter the rods¡¯ ability to measure reality, it makes it harder to detect manipulation.¡±
¡°So, it¡¯s possible?¡± she pressed.
¡°It is,¡± I admitted, ¡°but there¡¯s multiple safeguards. The rods are designed to self-calibrate against the URC at regular intervals. If their readings fall out of sync, they shut down to prevent corrupted data. It¡¯s not perfect, but it makes tampering a lot harder¡ªunless the person doing it knows exactly what they¡¯re doing.¡±
¡°Still, that¡¯s pretty cool,¡± Jade said, her lips quirking into a faint grin as she clapped her hands lightly. ¡°Can you measure how much weight I¡¯m pressing on reality?¡±
I shot her a look, half amused, half exasperated. ¡°We¡¯ll get to that later,¡± I promised, waving her off as I focused on the task at hand.
I handed her a few small items to position around the room. ¡°For now, just put these where I showed you.¡±
Jade took the items with a mock sigh of exaggerated effort, but she complied, moving to the other side of the room as I approached the center. Suspended in midair was the containment chamber.. It hung there, completely ignoring the pull of gravity, as though it existed in its own pocket of reality.
With careful precision, I reached into my pocket and extracted the spell cube. The smooth, iridescent surface caught the light as it left my fingers, drifting into the containment field as if guided by an unseen hand, pulling the cube into its center, where it began to hover and rotate, slow and deliberate. I didn¡¯t waste time lingering near it. I quickly stepped back, putting a safe distance between myself and the field. I had no desire to be caught in the feedback when the cube''s casing finally cracked.
"Which spell is this one?" Jade asked, eyeing the floating cube. She knew I carried several spells, but I didn¡¯t often discuss them.
¡°Leave a Face Behind,¡± I explained, keeping my eyes on the cube as it slowly rotated. ¡°It creates a thirty-second clone of someone from their recent past. Handy for making a quick escape, or...¡± I shrugged. ¡°Fighting alongside yourself for half a minute. Comes in useful more often than you¡¯d think.¡±
¡°Hard to believe magic has all these tricks,¡± Jade muttered, her expression carrying an edge of distrust that was impossible to miss.
I smirked faintly at the irony. ¡°Coming from someone who bends randomness and probability to her will, that¡¯s a bold take.¡±
Her head snapped toward me, eyes narrowing. ¡°That¡¯s not the same,¡± she said defensively, crossing her arms. ¡°My meta doesn''t entirely rewrite reality¡ªthey make adjustments to it. Subtly.¡±
¡°To most people,¡± I countered, meeting her gaze evenly, ¡°your adjustment might as well be magic. Subtle doesn¡¯t mean it¡¯s not incredible.¡±
She merely shrugged, not caring, but then her expression hardened. ¡°You still haven¡¯t told me what the first spell you assimilated was supposed to do. I know it¡¯s not just about making you ¡®think better.¡¯¡±
I sighed, running a hand down my face. Guilt prickled in my chest, but I stayed silent, unsure how to answer without cracking open a door I wasn¡¯t ready to face.
Jade¡¯s eyes flashed with frustration. ¡°You expect me to share my secrets with you,¡± she said, her voice rising, ¡°while you keep locking yourself away? Relationships don¡¯t work like that, North! It¡¯s not fair. You might think keeping me in the dark makes me safer. It doesn¡¯t. It just makes me feel... alone. Like you don¡¯t trust me. And that hurts more than anything else ever could."
She took a deep breath and continued as I listened in silence, "I don¡¯t need you to protect me from everything. I¡¯m not asking for perfect. I just need you to let me in. Give me a chance, to be there for you the way you¡¯ve been there for me.¡±
Her words struck like a hammer, harder than I expected, sharper than any argument we¡¯d had before. And the worst part was, she wasn¡¯t wrong. The secrets I kept¡ªabout my past, my meta, my choices¡ªwere a wall I¡¯d or we¡¯d built between us. Now, it was up to me whether I wanted to tear it down or let it grow taller.
I exhaled slowly, glancing at her. ¡°You¡¯re right,¡± I admitted quietly. ¡°It¡¯s not fair. You¡¯ve trusted me with so much, and I... haven¡¯t done the same. I¡¯ll tell you about the spell. But rest not here¡ªnot now. Just... give me some time.¡±
Her scowl softened, but only slightly. ¡°Time,¡± she echoed skeptically. ¡°You keep saying that, but it feels like you¡¯re just stalling.¡±
¡°I¡¯m not,¡± I promised, ¡°I mean it.¡±
She studied me for cracks in my sincerity. Finally, she let out a breath and looked away. ¡°Fine. But don¡¯t think I¡¯ll let this go.¡±
¡°I wouldn¡¯t expect you to,¡± I said, forcing a small smile.
I guided the still-fuming Jade to sit down, her resistance evident in the way she stiffened at first. Eventually, she relented, settling into the chair with a huff. It hit me then, as it always did in these quiet moments, how lucky I was to have her in my life. And how much I couldn''t afford to lose her. I settled into the chair across from her, taking a moment to straighten my thoughts. Should I make an excuse, or just tell her the truth? She deserved honesty, but the truth wasn¡¯t easy to share. It wasn¡¯t pretty, and it might scare her. After a moment of deliberation, I decided to be open.
¡°It was for my head,¡± I said quietly. ¡°The first spell I assimilated¡ªit was to fix my mind. I was¡ losing my memories. Slowly, but steadily. And it wasn¡¯t just memory¡ªI was becoming delusional.¡±
Jade¡¯s expression shifted instantly. Her irritation melted away, replaced by concern so fierce it almost made me flinch. She reached out, grabbing my hand with a firm grip. ¡°You are sick?¡± she asked, her voice tight with worry. ¡°We can find someone¡ªa healing meta nature or someone in the city who specializes in mental health! I have a friend back home who¡¯s amazing at editing problems like that. I¡¯ll send him a message. Or we could hire someone¡ª¡±Reading on this site? This novel is published elsewhere. Support the author by seeking out the original.
¡°Jade,¡± I interrupted gently, squeezing her hands to calm her. ¡°It¡¯s fixed now. The spell worked. You don¡¯t have to worry.¡±
But she shook her head, her jaw tightening in defiance. ¡°Have you even seen your eyes? Every time I look at them, I feel like¡ something¡¯s moving inside. Watching. There¡¯s this dark¡ mass. Strangeness. It shifts constantly when you¡¯re concentrating, like it¡¯s alive.¡±
This was news to me. Of course, I didn¡¯t have a habit of staring into mirrors while lost in thought. Her words sent a cold ripple through me. Was this strangeness growing? Was it a symptom of something worse?
¡°Is it growing?¡± I asked quietly.
She leaned closer, studying my eyes intently. Finally, she shook her head. ¡°I don¡¯t think so. Right now, it¡¯s the size of a drop. But it moves.¡±
I nodded, though her words unsettled me more than I let on. If the Arcane spell had fixed my mind, what was this¡ strangeness? A leftover fragment? Corruption? I still wasn¡¯t sure. Hopefully, the experiments would yield some answers soon, or I¡¯d be walking blindly into something I couldn¡¯t control.
Jade¡¯s grip tightened on my hands. ¡°I don¡¯t want to lose you,¡± she said, her voice soft but trembling with intensity. ¡°So, please¡ªdon¡¯t take any more risks like this.¡±
I opened my mouth to respond, to promise something reassuring, but before I could, her tone shifted. It was like a blade sliding free of its sheath, sharp and cold. ¡°And if you do,¡± she continued, her gaze locking onto mine, ¡°I¡¯ll make sure you stop. Myself, if I have to.¡±
The sheer conviction in her voice made it clear she wasn¡¯t making some empty threat. I blinked, momentarily speechless, my brain scrambling for a response.
She was downright scary when she got serious.
¡°I won¡¯t,¡± I promised, trying to reassure her.
Her grip on my hands loosened just slightly, but her eyes still searched mine, as if trying to gauge the sincerity of my words.
¡°And let¡¯s not forget,¡± I added with a sly smile, trying to lighten the mood, ¡°you¡¯re the one who likes to take risks, not me.¡±
¡°But I don¡¯t lose,¡± Jade shot back, her confidence unwavering. "Never."
I couldn¡¯t argue with that. Jade never lost¡ªat least, not in the ways that mattered.
¡°I promise,¡± I said again, softer this time, as I stepped closer. I cupped her face gently between my palms, as if holding something infinitely precious, "no unnecessary risks."
The effect was immediate¡ªJade''s tension melted away under my touch. It fascinated me how this simple gesture always seemed to calm her. Did she secretly like it when I cupped her face? I filed away that observation.
She let out a small, reluctant sigh, her lips pressing into a thin line. ¡°You¡¯d better mean it.¡±
¡°I do,¡± I replied, my thumbs brushing lightly against her cheeks. ¡°For you, I mean it.¡±
Thereafter, I turned my attention back to the Arcane spell suspended in the air, It had broken out of the shell. Its ever-morphing form mesmerizing in its stillness. It hung there, unaffected by the world around it.
After taking a final look, I turned to Jade. ¡°Let¡¯s go home.¡±
¡°That¡¯s it?¡± she asked, tilting her head slightly.
I nodded. ¡°Hmm. We¡¯ll come back tomorrow to review the observations,¡± I explained. ¡°The instruments need time to gather data.¡±
I turned toward the door, ready to leave the lab behind for the day. But before I could take more than a step, I felt her hand wrap around my arm, tugging gently.
¡°Wait,¡± she said softly, her voice low and hesitant.
I stopped, turning back to her, surprised by the sudden shift in her tone. ¡°What is it?¡±
She hesitated, her fingers tightening slightly on my sleeve. The sharp confidence she carried a moment ago seemed to falter, replaced by a quiet vulnerability. Her gaze dropped, and she clutched the hem of her skirt nervously, a soft redness creeping up her neck and cheeks. ¡°It¡¯s our space,¡± she murmured, her voice trailing off as she glanced away. ¡°There¡¯s no one else here¡ Do you think... I mean... we...¡±
For a moment I was unable to close my mouth. My lips curled into amused smiled as I stepped closer, Jade¡¯s breath hitched slightly, her silver eyes flickering upward to meet mine.
I took a moment to admire her effortlessly elegant appearance. She wore a strapless black corset-style bodice adorned with silver buttons and a statement bow at the neckline, paired with sheer, billowy white off-shoulder sleeves that gathered delicately at the wrists. From the bodice flowed a tiered white ruffled skirt and white pattern tights, giving her a dreamy presence. Her hair was styled into a messy updo, with a long, thin ribbon tied into a bow at the top, its ends cascading down softly for a whimsical touch and the soft strands framing her face like a masterpiece. A delicate choker necklace accentuated her neck, while the faint tattoo on her shoulder hinted at an edgy, mysterious side. She looked every bit like the graceful mystery she was.
We stood like that for a moment, staring at each other, neither of us blinking. Her nervousness was endearing, stirring something protective and tender inside me. I couldn¡¯t help but smile. My fingers trailed up her thighs slowly, feeling the delicate tension in her body as I leaned in, resting my forehead lightly against hers.
I was struck again by how delicate and fragile she felt beneath my touch; sometimes I feared she might break if I wasn¡¯t careful with my touch.
I slid my hands to her waist, lifting her effortlessly and placing her on the table behind us. She gasped softly, her hands gripping my shoulders for balance. Then her hands slid upward from my shoulder to my neck, her fingers tangling gently in my hair. She pulled me closer, erasing the last space between us. I leaned in, trailing soft kisses along her jawline, down to the sensitive spot just below her ear. She gasped, her grip on me tightening as her legs instinctively wrapped around my waist, holding me to her.
"..."
"..."
¡°Wait,¡± she whispered softly, stopping me.
¡°What?¡± I asked, breathless, my chest rising and falling as I tried to steady myself.
She leaned closer, her lips brushing against my ear as she whispered, ¡°I love you.¡±
The words hit me like a wave, crashing over everything else. I brushed end of ribbon off her face, letting my fingers linger against her cheek. ¡°I love you too,¡± I whispered, the words carrying every ounce of truth I felt in that moment. Her lips curved into a smile, soft and radiant. The tension in her body eased as she relaxed against me, her arms still wrapped around my neck. We stayed like that, the rest of the world fading into irrelevance.
Time blurred, and for the next hour, nothing else existed but the warmth of her touch and the steady rhythm of our hearts, beating as one.
From the moment Jade entered my life, my evenings had transformed into something tranquil and cherished. They had become my favorite part of the day¡ªquiet, uninterrupted moments spent in her presence, far more beautiful than any other mystery in the world.
With her, even silence felt full.
After we finished at the lab, we decided to take the train home. I didn¡¯t have my driver¡¯s license yet¡ªnot because I didn¡¯t want it, but because other things always seemed more urgent. The train didn¡¯t bother me, though. In fact, I kind of liked it. Tonight, it gave me more time to spend with her. As the evening train hummed along the tracks, I glanced down at Jade. Her head rested against my shoulder, fitting there like it was made to. Her hair had grown longer over the past few months, spilling down like black ink over my arm. I couldn¡¯t help but notice how seren she looked.
Outside, the sun was setting, bathing everything in warm, golden light. It poured through the windows, illuminating her face in a way that made her look almost unreal. Her lashes cast delicate shadows against her cheeks, her lips slightly parted as she dozed. She was always beautiful, but like this, she was... dreamy.
I didn¡¯t want to disturb her, but the moment was too perfect to let it slip by. Quietly, I opened my notebook and slipped a pencil from my pocket.
The train car was relatively quiet, a low murmur of conversations in the background blending with the hum of the iron wheels. A few passengers were reading; others were immersed in their phones. A group of teenagers in the corner shattered the calm with their animated chatter, but even their noise felt distant.
I began sketching, my strokes light and deliberate. I wasn¡¯t an artist, not really, but I liked to draw when it felt important¡ªand this felt important. I traced the curve of her jaw, the delicate arch of her brows, the way her hair fell like silk across her shoulders. A small, involuntary smile tugged at my lips as I worked, the drawing slowly taking shape.
The train jolted as it rounded a bend, but Jade didn¡¯t stir. I glanced down at her again, chuckling softly. She could sleep through anything when she felt safe. I liked to think it was because she was with me. She was a fiery storm in most aspects of life but had this uncanny ability to relax completely in moments like these. Maybe it was because she wore herself out so completely¡ªburning bright until she needed to retreat and recharge. Or maybe it was her impish habit of biting and scratching when she was impish or frustrated left its mark¡ªliterally. My shoulders and arms still had reminders of her mischief. Maybe she was a cat in her past life, picking fights for no reason and curling up with an air of contentment when she decided it was time.
I smiled at the thought, my pencil gliding across the page. The drawing was starting to mirror her.
The train slid into an underground tunnel, and the warm sunlight was replaced by the artificial glow of overhead lights. The world outside vanished into shadows.
I was just adding the finishing touches to her hair when a violent impact suddenly rocked the entire train.
It was sudden, violent, and deafening.
The train car lurched, throwing passengers forward in their seats.
The air filled with the horrific screech of grinding metal, a sound like nails dragging across the universe itself.
My pencil clattered to the floor, forgotten, as my instincts kicked in.
I grabbed the armrest with one hand and wrapped my other arm tightly around Jade. The train shuddered again, a second, harder impact sending more people tumbling from their seats. Cries of confusion and fear rose around us as the car rocked violently, the fluorescent lights flickering overhead.
Jade stirred, her head lifting abruptly from my shoulder. Her silver eyes were wide, her expression groggy but laced with concern. ¡°What¡¯s happening?¡± she asked, her voice slightly unsteady.
The screeching sound came again, this time sharper, closer. The train groaned against the rails as if something massive was forcing it off track. Passengers screamed. A backpack skidded across the aisle, and a man¡¯s phone slid under a seat, spinning to a stop. The lights blinked out again, plunging us into brief, suffocating darkness before they flickered back to life.
¡°Stay close to me,¡± I commanded, my voice steady despite the chaos. I tightened my grip on Jade¡¯s hand, scanning our surroundings for anything that might give me a clue as to what was happening¡ªor how we could escape if it got worse.
The train shook violently again, harder this time, throwing people sideways. Someone¡¯s luggage slammed into the wall with a dull thud. The air filled with the acrid scent of burning metal. My mind raced, adrenaline surging as I tried to assess the situation. The sound of crunching metal came again, this time so loud it felt as though the entire train might split in half. Whatever was out there, it wasn¡¯t just an accident. Something¡ªor someone¡ªwas interfering.
Supervillain attack, my mind supplied grimly. The scale of this chaos suggested nothing less.
The train¡¯s jerky motion slowed, the brakes screeching with an ear-piercing wail. Before we could catch our breath, a deep, guttural roar echoed through the tunnel. The sound was unnatural, vibrating through the metal walls like the growl of something massive. It sent chills down my spine.
¡°Did you hear that?¡± Jade asked, her grip on my hand tightening. Her silver eyes, wide with concern, flicked toward the darkened windows.
¡°Yeah,¡± I replied, my voice low, steady despite the storm of thoughts racing through my head.
My gaze swept the train car. Most passengers were frozen in fear, clutching seats or each other, but a few¡ªlike us¡ªwere scanning the surroundings, trying to make sense of what was happening.
Had anything like this ever happened in the last two cycles?
My memories, crystal-clear since assimilating the Splinter and Mindfield Arcane spells, told me no. I could recall buried fragments of my past, trivial details I hadn¡¯t thought about in years. Yet this? There was no precedent for this, no news stories, no media buzz. Nothing like it.
¡°Something¡¯s not right,¡± I murmured, my mind racing.
Was this an attack? Sabotage? Or something worse?
The train jolted again as it came to a final, jarring halt. The screech of metal-on-metal ended with an eerie silence. The lights flickered once, twice, and then failed completely, plunging the train into darkness. The faint, flickering glow of emergency exit lights along the floor was all that remained, casting long, eerie shadows across the car. Someone near the front of the car shouted, their voice cracking with fear. ¡°What¡¯s happening? Someone do something!¡± A ripple of nervous energy spread through the passengers as others chimed in, their voices overlapping in panicked confusion.
A sharp whoosh drew my attention to a man a few seats away who had conjured a small flame in the palm of his hand, likely hoping to illuminate the space. Instead, the light cast flickering, distorted shadows on the walls, making the already eerie atmosphere even more unnerving. Someone yelped and scrambled back, bumping into another passenger, who promptly retaliated with a defensive burst of static electricity that crackled ominously in the air.
¡°Stop! You¡¯re going to start a fire!¡± a woman yelled, trying to push past the flame conjurer. But her own attempts to form a barrier of water splashed wildly, drenching the nearby seats and sending people scrambling.
Another passenger, a wiry man near the center, closed his eyes tightly and began muttering under his breath. The air around him shimmered faintly, suggesting he was trying to locate something¡ªor someone¡ªthrough his meta. But whatever he was doing clearly wasn¡¯t helping. His muttering turned to frustrated groans as he stumbled forward, knocking into a younger woman who squeaked in alarm and reflexively released a puff of colored smoke from her hands. The smoke billowed out, spreading confusion and obscuring everyone¡¯s already limited visibility.
¡°Everyone, calm down!¡± a voice shouted from somewhere in the back, though it was drowned out almost immediately by the growing cacophony of fearful passengers wielding their often useless¡ªand now dangerous¡ªpowers in desperation.
¡°This is not helping!¡± I growled under my breath, scanning the car as panic threatened to spiral further out of control.
Jade¡¯s grip on my hand tightened, anchoring me. ¡°Idiots,¡± she muttered, her voice low but cutting. ¡°They¡¯re going to tear this place apart before anything actually happens.¡±
I nodded, my mind racing as I tried to tune out the chaos and focus. Whatever had stopped the train was still out there¡ªand from the distant, guttural roar that echoed through the tunnel again, it was closing in.
¡°Jade,¡± I said, keeping my voice calm but firm, ¡°we need to get out of here now. The longer we stay, the worse this is going to get.¡±
She nodded sharply, her expression hardening into her usual look of determination. ¡°Nearest exit?¡±
¡°Through there,¡± I said, pointing toward the end of the car. ¡°If we move quickly, we can¡ª¡±
My words were cut off by another sudden jolt. This time, the train car lurched sideways. Passengers screamed again, but the louder cries came from from the last car. The panic rose to a fever pitch as another burst of wild metas filled the space¡ªmore flashes of light, another gush of water, and the faint hum of an uncontrolled levitation attempt that sent a bag sailing across the aisle.
This wasn¡¯t just chaos anymore¡ªit was a powder keg ready to blow.
I cast my gaze around, scanning everything as my mind raced, analyzing and discarding possibilities at lightning speed.
FIrst and foremost, I didn¡¯t have a blaster or any kind of weapon on me¡ªa mistake. My powers were cerebral, not physical, and though I had a few tools at my disposal, they weren¡¯t exactly standard combat gear. If whatever was out there came for us, I¡¯d have to rely on ingenuity and quick thinking to get us through.
Jade¡¯s voice cut through the noise like a knife, steady and firm. ¡°Whatever it is, we need to stay sharp.¡±
I nodded, my free hand instinctively brushing against the notebook in my arms. I placed it in my bag.
From the sound and actions, I figured whatever it was not human. The thoughts in the back of my mind also flashed to the two spells I hadn¡¯t yet used. Those weren¡¯t for casual use, but if this turned life-or-death¡ªand it was certainly heading that way¡ªI¡¯d have to break them out.
¡°We need to figure out what¡¯s happening,¡± I said, keeping my voice steady, though the words felt hollow in the chaos around us. ¡°But first, let¡¯s get to the nearest exit.¡±
Jade nodded, her usual determination flashing back into her eyes as we both braced ourselves for whatever villain or monster had suddenly decided to attack.
Act 2.19 (Chrysalis)
The oppressive air of the underground subway was growing heavier with each passing second.
The dim, flickering lights added fear to the sense of unease that filled the cramped train compartments.
I jumped to my feet, instinctively scanning the surroundings. The train wasn¡¯t large¡ªonly eight compartments¡ªbut the slight bend in the tunnel hindered my line of sight to the far end.
My pulse quickened as I shifted into my meta perception, letting the mundane world peel away like a film. The world of intent and possibility erupted into view, soaked in colors that told their own sinister story. Above the train, the air swirled with fractured rainbows¡ªnot the kind that inspire awe but the kind that warned of something broken. The colors fractured violently, their jagged edges slicing through the space like a warning. Darkness hung like a thick, choking fog over everyone¡¯s heads, shadowing their fates. Woven into it were crimson ribbons that pulsed with malevolent intent, a clear indication of the malice fueling this attack. Dark green threads snaked through the chaos, coiling with manipulation and control¡ªa shadowy hand pulling the strings. And streaking across it all were orange flashes of chaos, growing brighter and more erratic with each passing heartbeat.
A piercing scream shattered the silence, snapping my perception back to the grim present.
Then came the stench¡ªsharp, metallic, and unmistakable. Blood.
The coppery tang filled my nose. My stomach churned as a wave of nausea rolled through me. I barely had time to process it before the first figures appeared.
They came from the far end of the train, frantic, stumbling, sobbing, and screaming¡ªa human tide of terror and desperation, trying to break windows and escape. Their clothes were soaked in blood, streaks of crimson painting their faces and arms. Some clutched at wounds, others at loved ones. Fear widened their eyes as they shoved and clawed their way forward, frantic to escape whatever nightmare was closing in behind them.
The coppery stench of blood grew thicker, suffocating, as more and more people with gruesome injuries pushed in. People screamed louder, the sound rising into an unbearable pandemonium. Someone near the front collapsed to their knees, vomiting violently, and the sickly retching only added to the frenzy. A child¡¯s cry pierced through the noise, high-pitched and wrenching, and I could feel the panic feeding on itself, spiraling out of control.
Beside me, Jade¡¯s hand tightened around mine. I glanced at her; her silver eyes were darting around. She wasn¡¯t panicking¡ªshe was calculating, ready to act.
But the train car wasn¡¯t filled with most people like Jade and me. Most of the passengers were caught in a storm of pure hysteria, their meta natures triggering in unpredictable, useless ways.
¡°Get it off me!¡± someone shrieked, clawing at their arms. A series of loud popping sounds followed as bubbles of translucent jelly formed all over their skin, oozing out and splattering across the floor. A nearby woman slipped on one of the bubbles and went crashing to the ground with a scream, her arms flailing as her skin turned momentarily translucent like glass¡ªher meta power activating in response to the impact.
¡°Stop pushing me, or I¡¯ll¡ª!¡± another voice shouted, but they were cut off as a loud hiss tore through the noise.
My head snapped toward the sound. An orange haze was spreading rapidly through the air¡ªa gas, citrine-colored and cloying, curling through the car with unnatural speed. Someone¡¯s meta nature, no doubt triggered by panic, had released it, either by accident or desperation.
The effect was immediate and brutal. People around us started coughing violently, their eyes red and streaming with tears.
The fear in the atmosphere was already palpable, and the gas amplified it, making people hysterical.
I rubbed at my own eyes as tears stung, my throat burning from the gas. I coughed, doubling over slightly as I struggled to think. Around me, metas were erupting chaotically.
A man stumbled forward, tripping over a fallen bag. As he hit the ground, his hair erupted into thick, tangled vines that shot out in all directions, wrapping around the legs of everyone near him. ¡°Help! I can¡¯t stop it!¡± he shouted, flailing helplessly as the vines continued to grow, tripping and tangling the crowd further.
¡°Get off me!¡± another voice screamed as a woman¡¯s skin shimmered and hardened into reflective patches of metallic sheen.
Someone bumped into her, and the contact sent a deafening clang reverberating through the car, momentarily silencing some of the screaming. But only for a second. The next moment, someone else yelped as sparks erupted from their body¡ªtiny, harmless flickers that grew more intense as people jostled against him. ¡°Don¡¯t touch me! I can¡¯t control it!¡± he shouted, but the panicked crowd paid no attention. Most of these people had no combat experience, and their meta natures, whatever they were, clearly weren¡¯t suited for fighting or controlling the situation.
Jade pulled her scarf over her nose and mouth, her other hand yanked me back against the wall to avoid the frenzied crowd. ¡°North!¡± she shouted, her voice muffled but urgent. ¡°Let''s move¡ªnow!¡±
I nodded as I wiped at my burning eyes again. The gas, the noise, the chaos¡ªit was all becoming too much.
¡°Stay close to me,¡± I managed to rasp, my voice barely audible over the screams.
Jade¡¯s gaze sharpened, her hand tightening on mine. ¡°This gas is going to push them over the edge,¡± she said, her tone low but fierce. ¡°If we don¡¯t act fast, someone¡¯s going to die.¡±
¡°I think many already are,¡± I muttered, glancing at the people soaked in blood, their faces painted with terror.
Many in the crowd had broke the side windows, shattering the glass into jagged edges. Passengers shoved and clawed their way toward the openings, crawling and climbing over one another to escape. A man tumbled through, landing outside in the darkness with a sickening thud.
I squeezed Jade''s hand to draw her attention and pointed toward the window. ¡°We¡¯ll use that to get out of here. If we can find the emergency exit in the tunnel, we¡¯ll stand a better chance.¡±
Jade agreed, following my finger.
Then, another scream rose from near the window. ¡°It¡¯s coming! It¡¯s coming!¡± a woman shrieked, pointing wildly into the tunnel.
Her meta nature triggered with her panic, and for a brief moment, her body split into two shadowy duplicates, flickering like unstable projections. ¡°We¡¯re all going to die!¡±
Finally, amidst the madness, I saw the cause of this nightmare¡ªa rat.
No, not just a rat.
A monstrous, dog-sized abomination, its body grotesque and raw. Its skin stripped away to reveal pulsing red and blue muscles and exposed veins glistening with blood hidden underskin. Bones jutted out at unnatural angles, and its movements were jerky and erratic. The creature looked like something torn from the depths of a horror novel. The sight was enough to churn my stomach. It wasn¡¯t just horrifying¡ªit was wrong, an abomination that looked like it had been forcibly mutated into a monstrous form.
Who the hell could¡¯ve done this?
The abomination¨C bloody demon rat wasn¡¯t alone.
Behind it, more rats poured in¡ªbloody, hairless, pulsating horrors with teeth as sharp as razors. Their claws gleamed like steel, effortlessly slicing through metal as they moved with unsettling speed and precision. It was as if someone had unleashed an entire horde of bio-engineered nightmares into the subway.
Fighting one or two of them might¡¯ve been manageable, but this? They were fast¡ªfaster than I¡¯d expected for creatures so deformed¡ªand their sheer number was overwhelming.
As I watched, one of the bloody rats leapt toward a fallen man, its gaping jaws dripping with a sickening mix of blood and saliva. The man¡¯s scream cut through the cramped space, raw and terrified.
¡°Get it off me! Please, someone! Help!" he shrieked, his voice cracking.
Before the creature could make contact, a man wearing an office suit stepped forward, wielding a jagged metal bar torn somewhere from the train compartment. With a grunt, he swung with brutal force. The improvised weapon connected with a sickening thwack, sending the bloody rat flying. The massive bloody rat hit the ground with a wet splat, its malformed body disintegrating into a pool of blood and flesh.
The man stood tall, his broad shoulders heaving as he scanned the advancing swarm of rats. For a moment, his sheer presence brought the crowd a shred of hope.
But it was false hope, a fleeting illusion.
¡°You want some of this? Come on!¡± the man bellowed, gripping the bar tightly as more rats surged toward him.
¡°Don¡¯t just stand there! Help him!¡± someone shouted, their voice trembling with desperation.
¡°I-I can¡¯t!¡± another stammered, holding their arms close to their chest as tiny, flickering images of themselves appeared and disappeared erratically.
In the next moment, the air was filled with a chorus of terrified voices.
¡°Run! Just run!¡± another woman screamed, clutching a child to her chest as she scrambled toward the far end of the car and jumped over the window.
¡°We¡¯re trapped! They¡¯re everywhere! We don''t have enough time to escape.¡±
My mind raced, grasping at options. Intangibility seemed like the best shot, but it came with its limits. Like holding my breath underwater, I could only maintain it for a couple of minutes before my body demanded stabilization. A misstep, and we¡¯d both be sitting ducks. Leaving Jade behind wasn¡¯t an option, even if I knew she was far more capable than she let on.
The swarm of bloody rats halted at the entrance, sniffing the air, drawn to the crowd¡¯s fear like predators to prey. Their companion¡¯s brutal death moments earlier didn¡¯t faze them in the slightest. If anything, it seemed to spur them on. With razor-sharp focus, they suddenly lunged forward like a living tide, their claws scraping against metal, their glowing eyes locked onto the panicking passengers.
But then, something strange happened.
An invisible force seemed to block their advance. The lead rat, mid-leap, suddenly dissolved into a wet splash of blood, its flesh melting into a puddle before it hit the ground. Another reared back, its body convulsing as it shrank, reverting to its original, non-mutated size. It barely had time to squeak before it was torn apart by its larger, bloodier kin.
¡°What the hell is happening?¡±
¡°Someone killed them,¡± a woman muttered, clutching her knees to her chest as she stared wide-eyed at the scene.
A third rat, larger than the others, collapsed mid-charge, vomiting chunks of metal. The others faltered, their frenzy giving way to chaotic spasms as they fell one by one. Within seconds, the overwhelming horde of hundreds was reduced to nothing¡ªbroken bodies, crimson puddles, and a stench that clawed at the back of my throat. The compartment fell into stunned silence.Only twenty or so passengers remained inside; the rest had already fled into the tunnels outside. The stench of blood and rot hung thick in the air, mingling with the sharp tang of panic and sweat.
¡°What the hell just happened?¡± a man croaked, his voice trembling. ¡°Are they¡ dead?¡±
¡°Gone,¡± a younger woman murmured, her face pale and streaked with tears. ¡°They¡¯re just¡ gone.¡±
¡°That doesn¡¯t mean it¡¯s over!¡± another voice barked. A wiry man, his hands trembling but his expression fierce, pointed toward the open window. ¡°There could be more out there. We can¡¯t just wait here!¡±
He wasn¡¯t wrong. From the silence outside, I could hear the faint scurrying of more rats in the subway tunnel. The threat wasn¡¯t over yet.
I turned toward Jade, who was leaning against the wall, taking deep, controlled breaths. Beads of sweat glistened on her forehead, and though her scowl was fierce, it carried a weariness I rarely saw.
¡°You okay?¡± I asked, wiping her forehead with my fingers.
Jade exhaled sharply, brushing a damp strand of hair from her face. ¡°I¡¯m fine,¡± she said, her tone clipped but steady.
"But whoever¡¯s behind this¡ their meta nature is strong and produces quite a lot of resistance.¡± She glanced at end of the carnage, her silver eyes narrowing. ¡°These rats are fast and mindless. It wasn¡¯t easy to stop them all at once.¡±
I nodded, understanding her caution. The bloody rats might be manageable for now, but the situation could escalate quickly. Jade¡¯s powers were formidable, but they needed time to take effect¡ªespecially on such a large scale. And what if one of them suddenly lunged at us in the darkness?
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± she said firmly, grabbing my hand. ¡°We don¡¯t have time to waste.¡±
Jade jumped out of the window first, her boots crunching against loose gravel as she hit the ground with practiced ease. I followed close behind, landing on the gritty tunnel floor.
The cool, damp air was a sharp contrast to the stifling, thick atmosphere inside the train.
At the far end of the compartment, the man in an office suit with the metal bar stood, his expression a mixture of confusion and suspicion. He was clearly trying to piece together why the rats had suddenly died, but he wasn¡¯t na?ve enough to not piece two and two together. Despite his bewilderment, his grip on the bar was tight, his knuckles white, and his stance was firm and ready¡ªalert, but not aggressive.
I walked up to him, studying the delicate silver threads that emanated from his head¡ªvisible only through my perception.
They stretched into the void like ghostly spider silk, marking him as someone with a Hive meta nature: Probably the System. That explained his resilience and quick adaptation. The System users like him had one notably useful trait: they could increase their strength through combat and rank by defeating other System meta users.
If my hunch was right, the man might have seen this chaos as an opportunity rather than a catastrophe. But there was no time to dig deeper into his motivations.
I approached the man, keeping my tone neutral. ¡°Thanks for what you did back there. You saved lives.¡±
His sharp eyes met mine, his grip on the metal bar firm. For a moment, I thought he might brush me off, but then he gave a short nod. ¡°What do you want?¡±
His tone was gruff, weary, and suspicious. I couldn¡¯t blame him. For all he knew, I might have been here to exploit the situation.
¡°Nothing,¡± I said evenly. ¡°Just wanted to say thanks. No one else had the chance.¡±
His expression softening slightly. ¡°You¡¯re welcome,¡± he muttered, glancing toward the tunnel. ¡°But you¡¯d better keep moving. This isn¡¯t over.¡±
¡°Understood,¡± I replied, turning back to Jade, who was waiting near the front of the derailed train. Her eyes flicked between me and the man as I approached.
¡°Let¡¯s go,¡± I said quietly.
We cautiously moved forward, the tunnel was cold, dark, and suffocating, the stale air carrying the stench of blood that clung to every breath. Flickering emergency lights painted eerie shadows along the walls, making it impossible to tell if the faint scuttling sounds came from rats or our imaginations. It felt as though everyone else who had escaped had vanished into thin air or fled so quickly they left no trace. Despite this, I could still sense the presence of people behind us, moving cautiously¡ªincluding the man with the metal bar.
One of our suspicions was soon answered when we stumbled upon a grim sight.
A young man¡¯s body lay sprawled across the tracks, brutally torn apart. His throat and stomach were shredded, intestines spilled onto the gravel. His chest was hollow, his heart ripped clean out. Bite marks marred the mangled flesh, unmistakably from the rats.
Personally, I had seen worse, but the state of the dead man¡¯s body still caused me to falter for a moment.
Beside me, Jade¡¯s reaction was immediate and visceral. She doubled over, her body trembling as she retched violently. The sound of it broke through the dark silence of the tunnel.
¡°Jade,¡± I said softly, stepping closer. I placed a steady hand on her back, feeling the tension in her muscles as her breaths came in ragged gasps. She waved me off weakly at first, but I stayed, holding her hair and purse.
¡°It¡¯s okay,¡± I murmured. ¡°Just breathe. Take your time.¡±
I searched through my bag and handed her a half filled water bottle. She took big gulps before spitting the water back onto the gravel and wiping her mouth with the back of her hand. Her silver eyes, glassy and unfocused, finally turned to me, a flicker of embarrassment mixed with her obvious distress.
¡°I¡¯m fine,¡± she rasped, though her voice betrayed her. ¡°I just¡ª¡± She gestured vaguely toward the mangled corpse of the young man, but couldn¡¯t bring herself to look at it again. ¡°That¡¯s... not something you just brush off.¡±
I crouched slightly to meet her gaze, keeping my voice gentle but firm. ¡°You don¡¯t have to explain. This is... awful. Anyone would react the same.¡±
She straightened slowly, her hand gripping mine tightly as if to anchor herself. ¡°Not you,¡± she said, her voice steadying but carrying an edge of frustration. ¡°You didn¡¯t even flinch.¡±
¡°I¡¯ve seen worse,¡± I admitted quietly, my eyes flicking briefly back to the torn body. ¡°Doesn¡¯t make it easier. though You okay to keep moving?¡±
Jade took a deep breath, wiping her hands on her jacket for final as she nodded. ¡°Yeah. Hopefully, no more dead bodies¡±
At this point, the man with the metal bar and three youngsters in his tow had rushed forward, their faces grim as they glanced at the body. They looked younger, likely in their late teens and were perhaps coming home after having fun. They vomited immediately, their bodies trembling in fear. But, the man knelt beside the corpse, his frown deepening as he examined the mangled corpse.
¡°Do you think the bloody rats are still nearby?¡± Jade asked, her silver eyes flicking toward the darkness ahead.
I let my perception guide me, my meta vision revealing a foreboding truth: everyone nearby was painted in pure red, a color that screamed imminent danger. The answer was obvious¡ªwe were still in extreme peril.
I nodded, my eyes scanning every shadow and crevice. ¡°The rat that killed him is still nearby, hiding.¡±
The man with the bar didn¡¯t look up, his tone grim. ¡°They don¡¯t run far after a kill like this. They¡¯re hunting.¡± His fingers curled tighter around the bar, his knuckles whitening. ¡°If they¡¯re not here now, they will be soon.¡±
One of the teens whimpered. ¡°We can¡¯t fight those things. Not like this.¡± His voice cracked, his hands gripping his knees as he tried¡ªand failed¡ªto stop shaking.
¡°Then don¡¯t fight,¡± the man barked, his tone sharp enough to cut through the rising panic. He rose to his feet, towering over them as he swung the bar over his shoulder. ¡°You survive. You keep moving.¡±
Jade¡¯s grip on my arm tightened. Her voice was quieter now, but firm. ¡°He¡¯s right. We should linger around here. The smell of blood might attract other rats.¡±
I agreed as I scanned the shadowed tunnel ahead. ¡°Let¡¯s move. The longer we stay, the worse this gets.¡±
However, the big problem was, I didn¡¯t have a proper weapon to defend myself. My fists would be next to useless against these unnaturally strong, steroidal creatures. They were more like demons than rats, with teeth and claws built to tear through flesh and bone. Desperation spurred me to improvise. I rummaged through my bag and pulled out a pencil and a pen¡ªthe only usable items I had. It wasn¡¯t much, but it was better than nothing. I handed the pen to Jade, who raised an eyebrow at it, her disbelief palpable.
¡°This is your plan?¡± she asked flatly, holding up the pen as if it might sprout wings and fly us out of the tunnel.
¡°Use it if they come close,¡± I said grimly, ignoring the dry humor in her tone. ¡°Aim for the eyes, throat, or anything, well¡ I don¡¯t think it¡¯d do much in useless hands to be honest.¡±
Jade stared at the pen for a moment, then back at me. Her lips pressed into a thin line, and with a curt nod, she adjusted her grip.
What surprised me wasn¡¯t the skepticism but how quickly her disbelief shifted into pure determination. She wasn¡¯t backing down, not after everything we¡¯d seen today. There was steel in her, hidden beneath the sharp remarks and biting wit.
¡°Got it,¡± she said simply, her voice steady.
She wasn''t the type to crumble under pressure, which gave me some comfort even as danger surrounded us.
I noticed her meta manifesting differently now¡ªshe wasn''t bleeding influence into reality like before. Instead, she''d become more like an oil droplet suspended in water, completely separate from her environment. Periodic ripples spread out from her form, but I couldn''t decipher what she was attempting. Her meta nature had always been mysterious, but this was something new entirely.
The group strode forward in uneasy silence, eyes darting in every direction. The stench of blood and rot was suffocating. The man with the metal bar glanced back at me and Jade, his brow furrowed. He must have sensed we weren¡¯t ordinary passengers, especially how calm we both acted despite our grim situation.
Jade leaned closer to me, ¡°If hundreds of them attack again, we¡¯re in no shape to fight them off. You¡¯ve got to have some other plan.¡±
I kept my eyes on the dark expanse of the tunnel ahead, the flickering lights making it impossible to tell where safety might lie. ¡°We need to keep moving,¡± I said quietly, ¡°If we¡¯re lucky, we¡¯ll find a maintenance shaft or another group of survivors.¡±
¡°Lucky,¡± she muttered under her breath, her tone edged with dry humor. ¡°I don¡¯t think luck¡¯s been on our side tonight.¡±
I shot her a glance. ¡°Then we make our own.¡±
The man with the bar, clearly overhearing, snorted softly but didn¡¯t comment. He turned his attention back to the blinding path ahead
Our steps were deliberate as the faint echoes of our footsteps bounced off the cold, damp tunnel walls. My perception flared faint red glimmers in the darkness, faint but unmistakable.
My perception flared again, revealing faint red glimmers flickering in the darkness. They were subtle, barely there, but undeniable. More and more of the bloody rats were stalking us. I didn¡¯t need to see them directly to feel it.
Fear had a taste¡ªmetallic and bitter¡ªand it lingered in the air like a thick fog.
¡°Does anyone hear that?¡± whispered one of the teenage girls. Her voice trembled, barely audible, but it was enough to make everyone freeze.
The question stopped us all in our tracks. The faint pattering of claws against the cold concrete floor was growing louder, more deliberate. The sound wasn¡¯t distant anymore; it was close. Too close. A sickening squelch joined the pattering, and then wet, guttural growls followed¡ªlow, primal, and suffused with malice. The dim emergency lighting did us no favors. As the bloody rats surged closer, shadows twisted and stretched unnaturally along the walls, jagged and monstrous. My breath halted, and the group collectively stiffened. The narrative has been taken without authorization; if you see it on Amazon, report the incident.
The metal bar man stepped forward, raising his makeshift weapon, his muscles taut and ready. "Stay behind me," he barked, his tone brooking no argument.
The group of teenagers huddled closer together, fear etched into their pale faces.
The boy beside him swallowed hard, his hand shaking as he clutched a broken pipe. ¡°How many?¡± he asked, his voice barely more than a croak.
¡°Too many,¡± Jade answered quietly, her eyes fixed on the shifting darkness.
Another one of them picked up a shard of stone, trembling but determined.
Soon I saw dozens of similar bloody demon like rats running on their four feats, almost as fast as a cat or dog. I couldn¡¯t help but feel a moment of stunned disbelief again. How were these things even alive? Their exposed insides should have left them crippled or dead, but they moved with the energy of predators who had just caught the scent of their next meal.
There was no clear way out. If we ran, they¡¯d catch us. If we stayed still, they¡¯d overwhelm us.
The walls of the tunnel felt like they were closing in and we were trapped in cramped space, unable to dodge.
I tightened my grip on the pencil in my hand. It was absurd to think this flimsy tool could defend me, but having something¡ªanything¡ªfelt better than nothing. My gaze flicked to the metal bar man. His strength had already proven invaluable, and right now, he was the closest thing we had to a real weapon.
The first rat burst into view, a monstrous blur of raw muscle and exposed sinew. Its glowing red eyes locked onto us, and it lunged forward with a guttural screech that made the hairs on our necks stand on end. The man with the metal bar moved instantly, no hesitation in his reaction. He swung with raw force, the improvised weapon connecting with the rat¡¯s head with a sickening crack. The creature was hurled sideways, slamming into the wall with a wet thud. It twitched violently for a moment before going still. But for every rat that fell, three more seemed to pour out of the shadows, their glowing red eyes multiplying like embers in the darkness. They were relentless, their movements fueled by an unnatural hunger that bordered on pure insanity.
Jade vision captured every movement of the bloody demon rats.
She didn¡¯t say a word. She didn¡¯t need to.
Her meta seemed to create a field of likely collapsing probabilities around us.
The first few rats lunged, sinewy and swift, their leaps coiling like a spring. Before they could land, their front legs crumpled under its weight, sending them skidding to a halt. A gurgling screech escaped as they body twisted violently, spine snapping with a sickening finality. they twitched once and went still, neck grotesquely askew. Another group darted in low and fast from the side. Mid-stride, their hind legs faltered, yanked back as though by unseen strings. They hit the ground hard, its momentum snuffed. A heartbeat later, their head wrenched upward unnaturally, and the creature went limp. Two more rushed headlong toward her. Jade tilted her head, a faint glimmer of curiosity in her gaze. One froze in place, claws scraping futilely at the earth as its body turned rigid as stone. The other barely made it halfway before its muscles seized, folding it inward with a sickening crunch, leaving a crumpled heap in its wake.
¡°What the¡ª¡± one of the teens stammered, his eyes wide as he clutched his rusted pipe. ¡°What¡¯s she¡ªhow¡ª?¡±
The man with the metal bar swung hard, sending another rat flying, ¡°Stay focused and keep moving, kid! She¡¯s buying us time¡ªdon¡¯t waste it!¡±
Another swarm of rats came, but their numbers in hundreds this time, scaling the walls and leaping toward us. But before they closed in, the small part of tunnel ceiling cracked and gave way. Concrete rained down, crushing them mid-air. The rest of us screeched and skittered back, the space filling with choking dust. More surged from behind, weaving through the rubble with chilling speed. One darted ahead, faster than the rest, lunging at a frozen teen clutching a rusted pipe. Its leap faltered as a nail pierced its paw, sending it sprawling into another rat. The two collided, limbs twisting, crushed under the momentum of the horde behind them.
Jade¡¯s gaze shifted upward. A frayed power line swung precariously, sparks trailing from its ends. As another wave of rats closed in, the cable dipped low. A flash of electricity lit the tunnel, and the swarm convulsed, collapsing into charred, smoking piles.
¡°They¡¯re endless!¡± the thin boy cried, stumbling back, his voice breaking. ¡°We¡¯re going to die here!¡±
¡°Not if you keep moving!¡± Jade snapped angrily. ¡°I can¡¯t hold this forever.¡±
Meanwhile, my perception showed the silver threads connected to each rat thickening. I realized they weren¡¯t just acting on instinct¡ªthey were being controlled.
My thoughts raced, piecing together the fragments of the nightmare we¡¯d been dragged into. After we had walked on the tracks, escaping the train. The passengers¡¯ bodies¡ªso many of them were missing. If they had been killed, why weren¡¯t they left behind like the others?
The rats weren¡¯t just killing.
They were taking.
The purpose behind it eluded me, but the thought sent a chill down my spine
All of this bloody chaos could have been avoided if I¡¯d just paid more attention¡ªtaken a second to check my own or someone else¡¯s Likeness before boarding the train. Only if I had used my meta nature more actively, but it was too late for regrets. What was done, was done. I¡¯d made my bed, and now I was lying in it. Unfortunately, it was covered in rats. I glanced at Jade. She stood ahead of me like a defiant shield, her stance firm despite the chaos. She knew my powers weren¡¯t meant for fighting, and she had stepped into the fray without hesitation.
As if sensing my gaze, she turned and offered a weary smile, her voice steady despite the madness around us. "Stay close to me. Don¡¯t run off."
Did she think I was some child in need of constant reminders? I frowned.
The arrogant dragon believed she could shield me from everything, as if her wings alone were enough to hold the world at bay for me. Her confidence, her sheer nerve¡ªit was infuriating, and yet oddly comforting simultaneously.
And yet¡ I couldn¡¯t just stand there, hiding in her shadow while she took all the risks.
Nearby, the tired, black suit man swung the metal rod like it was an extension of his arm, each blow landing with deadly precision. The rats scattered with every strike, but the bar itself was showing the strain¡ªbent, dented, and riddled with bite marks. It wouldn¡¯t last much longer.
We wouldn¡¯t last much longer unless something changed.
To be honest, most of the rats were being handled by Jade alone, and watching her meta-nature in action was nothing short of surreal. I couldn¡¯t fully wrap my head around how it worked¡ªor whether I wanted to.
Any rat that wandered into the invisible boundary around her, roughly a ten-foot radius, met a gruesome end. Some burst into flames without warning, disintegrating into piles of ash that scattered into the air. Others staggered and convulsed as sudden, bloody holes appeared in their bodies, as if invisible rods had skewered them. And then there were the unlucky few that outright exploded, showering the area with gore and bits of flesh.
But it was her eyes that unnerved me the most. Whenever her gaze locked onto a rat, it froze mid-sprint, its body trembling violently.
Moments later, it twisted and contorted in a silent scream of agony before collapsing in on itself, vanishing as if consumed by a miniature black hole.
Her meta-nature¡ªher primary side¡ªwas a riddle that refused to unravel. The mechanics of it were beyond comprehension, too strange and too alien for my mind to follow. I shoved the thought aside; it wasn¡¯t the time to ponder on the unknowable.
Jade was showing signs of flagging, her breath coming in uneven bursts as she carved through the unrelenting swarm. The rats just kept coming¡ªhundreds dead, yet hundreds more surged forward, undeterred, filling the already cramped tunnel with the stench of blood and decay. The sheer press of their numbers was suffocating, and still, they showed no signs of stopping. And we found it hard to move forward as their dead bodies had started to create a small mountain onward in small tunnel.
Suddenly, a flicker of satisfaction tugged at the back of my mind, sharp and almost petty. If Jade wanted to accuse me of withholding secrets later, I could turn this moment against her. How about your secrets, Jade? The thought of it almost coaxed a smirk to my lips. Almost.
Not far away, three teenagers huddled together, pale and trembling. One boy and the girl had wet themselves, the dark stains stark against their jeans. I didn¡¯t blame them; I might have done the same in their place. The girl seemed to possess some heightened senses¡ªnot extraordinary, but enough to make her jump before any rat neared her. If looked more closely, I noticed her meta nature seemed to be eveloing mid fight in the territory of danger sensing, a boon amidst the insanity.
The other boy was utterly frozen, his face locked in a grimace of pure terror, too paralyzed even to flinch as the rats skittered ever closer. Not that I could blame him. If I didn¡¯t have the experience I did¡ªor Jade by my side¡ªI¡¯d probably be in the same state, crying for a peaceful death than torn apart by mouths filled razors. The third one, however, was putting up a fight. He¡¯d stripped off his leather jacket, screaming incoherently as he used his minor telekinetic ability to whip it around like a weapon. The jacket wrapped around rats, slamming them into walls, grinding them against the floor, or flinging them into bloody pulp. It was crude, sure, but it worked¡ªbetter than my damn pencil, anyway.
For a moment, I almost felt proud of him, but the surge of rats pushed us back relentlessly. They didn¡¯t tire, didn¡¯t stop, didn¡¯t hesitate. The group was forced into a corner, the walls pressing in like a cage. I moved quickly, grabbing the shoulders of the boy and girl who were still frozen with fear. They flinched at my touch, their wide eyes filled with terror, but I tightened my grip to keep them steady.
¡°Hey, focus,¡± I snapped, leaning in close. My voice was firm, but not unkind. ¡°You¡¯re not dead yet. Scan the tunnel¡ªlook for an emergency hatch, a maintenance door, anything that can get us out of here.¡±
The girl blinked, her trembling slowing as my words cut through her panic. The boy nodded hesitantly, his breath still shaky but more controlled. They started scanning the walls, their desperation channeled into purpose, and for a moment, it felt like progress. I turned my attention back to the fight. The perimeter was breaking. Jade¡¯s meta was still wreaking havoc, rats disintegrating or crumpling within her radius, but the ones that slipped past her were pouring into our corner like a flood. The man with the metal bar swung wildly at the swarm, his movements frantic and uncoordinated now, his improvised weapon visibly bent under the relentless assault.
My jaw tightened as an idea struck me¡ªa brutal one, but the only one I had left. Intangibility. If I phased through the rats, I could disrupt them internally, rip apart their lungs or brains from the inside. It had to work. It had to.
I stepped forward to the edge of the fray, steeling myself as I activated my power. The first rat lunged at me, snarling, and I let it phase through my arm like a ghost. Its insides were exposed to my touch, raw and vulnerable. I reached for what I assumed was its brain, wrapping my fingers around the soft mass and yanking.
The result was... disappointing.
The rat didn¡¯t stop. It thrashed violently, biting and clawing as though nothing had happened. Its body flailed like a decapitated snake, undeterred by the absence of what should¡¯ve been vital organs. My breath caught in my throat as I stumbled back, momentarily speechless.
¡°What the hell?¡± I muttered, shaking my head as another rat lunged at me. I tried again, grabbing at what looked like its lungs. The same result. It kept moving, feral and unstoppable, as if its body didn¡¯t care about its missing parts.
Jade¡¯s voice cut through the chaos. ¡°North, what are you doing?!¡± she shouted, her filled with frustration as another cluster of rats collapsed on itself within our shrunken domain of ten feet.
¡°Experimenting!¡± I shouted back. ¡°Turns out these things don¡¯t care about biology!¡±
¡°STOP PLAYING! Figure something else out!¡± she snapped, her voice sharp and biting as another rat crumpled in front of her, its body folding like paper under her invisible force. Her exhaustion was written all over her¡ªragged breaths, a tremor in her voice.
¡°I¡¯ve got a few minutes, max!¡± she barked again, desperation edging her tone. ¡°My head¡¯s buzzing, I¡¯m feeling dizzy¡ªI can¡¯t keep this up much longer!¡±
Her words jolted me into action, forcing my thoughts to refocus. The rats didn¡¯t care about losing lungs or hearts. Their frenzied, unnatural existence defied everything I knew. If dismantling them piece by piece wouldn¡¯t work, I needed a new approach.
My eyes darted toward the nearest rats, their bloody and fleshly bodies lunging closer, claws and teeth gleaming in the flickering light. An idea sparked¡ªa terrible, desperate idea. I phased my hands through the backs of two of them, gripping their spines tightly. Their bodies twitched and spasmed in my grasp, their claws flailing wildly and jaws snapping with manic energy. The pain only seemed to drive them into a deeper frenzy. They were heavy, their weight pulling against me like dead anchors, but adrenaline burned away the strain. I gritted my teeth, my lips curling into a dark, wicked smile. These rats weren¡¯t just liabilities anymore¡ªthey were weapons.
As I swung them around, their claws and jaws tearing into the other rats nearby. The bloody rats screeched and writhed as other frenzied rats met their ends, ripped in half.
Once the rats in my hands expired, their broken bodies spent, I lunged to grab another two without missing a beat.
The relentless tide of bloody rats crashed against me from all sides, a writhing mass of fur, claws, and teeth. They clambered over each other in their frenzy to reach me, their shrill cries echoing through the tunnel, but instead their body passed through me straight, as I didn¡¯t exist in the same space as them.
I slammed them into the oncoming horde, feeling the sickening crunch of bone and the wet tear of flesh with each impact. The rats that were struck flew backwards, their broken bodies crashing into their kin in a domino effect of carnage. Despite being intangible, I felt my muscles tear in pain, but I didn¡¯t stop attacking. Not Yet. I pushed on, my arms burning with exertion, my lungs screaming for air.
In less than a minute, a small mountain of rat carcasses had formed around my feet.
All the pent-up anger and frustration from the last ten minutes poured out of me in a cathartic release. I had never advocated for killing, but these bloody rats had pushed me to my limits. Slaughtering them felt strangely satisfying, like lancing a festering wound. The violence was primal, instinctive¡ªa way to reclaim control in a situation that had spiraled into madness.
As the three-minute mark of my intangibility approached, I staggered back into the shrinking circle of safety created by Jade¡¯s meta-nature. The once-wide perimeter was now halved, its invisible boundary crackling with exhaustion. The rats still came, but their numbers had dwindled to less than half of the original swarm. Yet, the danger hadn¡¯t lessened. Not really.
The strain on our group was obvious. Now, Jade was visibly struggling, her silver eyes flickering with fatigue. She could even take breath properly as if she stopped the safe parameter would collapse. Her shoulders trembled slightly as she stood her ground. She didn¡¯t say anything, but I could see her exhaustion written on her face. Beside her was the man I¡¯d mentally dubbed ¡°One Hit Man,¡± though his metal bar¡ªonce his weapon of choice¡ªwas long gone, either discarded or consumed by the bloody rats. Now, he fought with his bare fists, smashing the creatures with brutal efficiency. Blood coated his hands, dripping onto the ground with each swing, and I could see jagged pieces of bone peeking through the torn skin of his knuckles. The sight was bloody horrifying, but the man seemed to feel no pain and he even grew stronger with each punch he landed and killed.
¡°Jade,¡± I said, stepping closer to her as I phased back into solidity. My voice was low, steady, but edged with concern. ¡°How much longer can you keep this up?¡±
She had killed thousands of bloody rats if not ten thousands as they continued to poured in from the both sides of the tunnel, drowning us.
She didn¡¯t look at me, her gaze locked on the swarm. Another rat froze mid-lunge, its body contorting before it exploded into bloody bits. ¡°As long as I need to,¡± she replied, her tone sharp but strained. ¡°What¡¯s the alternative? Let them eat us?¡±
Yet, Jade¡¯s powers weren¡¯t limitless.
No meta-nature was.
Every ability had a breaking point, a moment when it stopped working or, worse, started to backfire. My intangibility faded after overuse, like running out of breath underwater. Jade¡¯s, however, was far more dangerous. Her meta-nature didn¡¯t simply stop¡ªit bled. Dangerously. Her Likeness was seeping into reality, the barrier between her and the world dissolving like oil mixing into water, creating an iridescent, rainbow-like shimmer in the air. It was beautiful in a haunting, unnatural way¡ªbut also a dire warning. if this went on much longer, the damage to her¡ªand everything around her¡ªwould be irreversible.
My throat tightened as I glanced at her, eyes sharp but dimming, sweat dripping down her face. She could have escaped this hell. Easily. She could have left me and the rest of the group to fend for ourselves. I doubted she cared about the others enough to even look back. No¡ªshe was doing this for me. She was holding the line, draining her life away, for me.
And here I was, standing useless, wielding a pencil like it was some kind of meaningful weapon. But now, even that was lost somewhere in the belly of dead rat.
It had been almost over ten minutes since the rats first attacked the train. Where the hell were the Sups? My thoughts screamed.
These were supposed to be monitored tunnels¡ªhow could they not have responded by now? Heroes were supposed to appear in moments like this, larger than life, saving everyone. But the tunnel remained a vacuum of hope.
And why the hell, in an age of technological miracles, was there no damn signal in these tunnels? Was it too much to ask for telecom companies to penetrate a few meters of soil?
My uselessness clawed at me, pushing me to darker places. I could take someone''s meta. They wouldn¡¯t need them if they¡¯re just standing there shaking. My gaze flicked briefly to the cowering survivors. If I absorbed even one¡
I froze, my breath catching as the thought cut through me like a blade. What the hell is wrong with me? Taking someone¡¯s powers meant killing them. That wasn¡¯t just a line¡ªI didn¡¯t even want to look at it.
¡°North,¡± Jade¡¯s voice broke through my spiraling thoughts, sharp but trembling. ¡°Focus. I can¡¯t¡ª¡± She faltered for a moment, her legs wobbling before she steadied herself. ¡°I can¡¯t do this much longer. My head is about to burst.¡±
I stepped forward, gripping Jade¡¯s shoulder to steady her. The heat radiating off her was staggering, like standing next to an engine on the verge of meltdown. She was burning up, her body tearing itself apart to keep us alive. My chest tightened, every instinct screaming at me to do something¡ªanything¡ªbut my mind wrestled with the impossible choices.
Stop her? The swarm would engulf us in seconds. Let her keep going? She was killing herself, every pulse of her meta draining what little life she had left.
The thought of losing her made my stomach twist, the idea too cruel to bear. I loved her¡ªtoo much to let this be the end. Survival didn¡¯t matter if it meant watching her destroy herself. But then, instinct cut through the chaos. My arms moved before my mind could catch up, reaching to pick her up and run. Forget everyone else. If her meta could shield just the two of us for a few precious moments, I¡¯d find a way out. I¡¯d carry her through hell if that¡¯s what it took.
Just as my hands slid under her knees to lift her, a voice shattered the tension like glass breaking. ¡°There! There! I see a green light!¡± The teenage girl¡¯s cry rang out, sharp and clear, cutting through the oppressive noise of claws, and screeches.
We all turned toward her, startled. In the frenzy, we hadn¡¯t paid much attention to our surroundings, but I remembered telling them to keep an eye out for emergency exits. Sure enough, a faint green glow was visible in the distance¡ª It shone like a beacon of hope amid the carnage.
Jade staggered slightly beside me. Her aura flickered like a dying flame, the shimmering iridescence around her growing denser.
¡°Just a little longer,¡± I said, my tone firmer and I dashed toward it to make a hasty path.
I stomped on a rat that tried to skitter past me, its body crunching under my boot. ¡°We¡¯re almost there.¡±
I wore another pair of bloody rat gloves and my arms swung wide in vicious arcs, while my muscles burned with the strain. The darting, writhing bodies of the bloody rats flew through the air as my fists smashed into them. Flesh and bones splattered the tunnel walls and floor, painting everything a glistening crimson. I waded through the writhing horde, kicking and stomping. The dead ones still attached to my hands grew heavier with every swing, their limp bodies adding to the mangled weight.
Meanwhile, my mind churned with more questions as I pressed on.
Whoever was behind this¡ªit must have taken them an obscene amount of time and effort to transform entire city rats into a bloody army. Why target a random passenger train? It didn¡¯t make sense.
Unless¡ This wasn¡¯t just a random attack.
My thoughts crystallized even as I fought. A test. This was a test.
The attack definitely belonged to Tunnel Underground. Jade, Leo, and I had been collecting clues about them for the last three months from the shadows. We explored the tunnels and followed people around, but our discoveries didn''t lead to any significant breakthroughs. We didn''t push to search harder, as it was all for Leo''s portfolio, and I wasn''t keen on infiltrating a gang, so I was taking my time. However, the group was more hidden than they appeared on the surface. Today''s commotion and the deaths of hundreds of people would surely cause the police and sups organizations to take action. Still, I couldn¡¯t rely on them. They were too slow, too scattered, too useless. I had to approach this from a different angle. Our investigations had been limited to passive observation, but it was clear now that we had underestimated Tunnel Underground''s capabilities and the threat they posed. The scale and audacity of this attack indicated a level of organization and resources that went far beyond what we had initially suspected.
Fighting these rats with hands was a stupid idea. But I pushed on, pouring all my rage and desperation into the onslaught.
Rats claws scrabbled ineffectually against my intangible body as I plowed through the horde, leaving a trail of broken, twitching bodies in my wake. The stench of blood and offal was overwhelming, the coppery tang coating my tongue and invading my nostrils. I slammed the rat-gloves together, pulverizing the hapless creatures caught between them into a chunky paste as it was ripped to shreds by its two brothers in my hand. Bits of fur, bone shards and gobbets of flesh flew in all directions, phasing through my face and chest. I barely noticed, lost in the red haze of battle-lust.
Finally, the metal door came into view, just ten feet ahead. It felt impossibly far and tantalizingly close all at once.
Breathing felt painful due to exhaustion. But, I couldn''t give up now. Despite my legs feeling like lead, I dashed back to Jade¡¯s side.
She was slumped against the wall, her silver eyes dim and unfocused. A weary, strained smile curved her lips, but it barely masked the pain etched into her face. ¡°It hurts... very bad.¡± Her eyes pleaded with me to put an end to it.
Her pleading voice broke something inside me, splintering my resolve into shards. I turned to the trembling boy and girl, grabbing their shoulders in a grip that left no room for argument. My voice filled with exhaustion and desperation, came out like a bark.
¡°Help her. Now. Get her to that door.¡±
My glare sharpened, my tone a warning. ¡°If anything happens to her before we¡¯re up those stairs, I¡¯ll bury you both in this tunnel.¡±
The fear in their eyes was unmistakable, but it did the job. Without hesitation, they scrambled to Jade¡¯s side, each wrapping an arm around her to hold her upright. For a moment, her short breaths began to even out, and some of the strain seemed to lift from her face.
I¡¯d seen centuries of war, endured horrors that would break most men, but watching her like this¡ªher strength unraveling, her face ashen with pain¡ªhit me in a way no battle ever had. It was like a knife driven straight into my chest, twisting with a cruel precision.
But there was no time to make sense of it. Not now.
I forced myself to turn away, my eyes locking on the danger. The rats numbers had thinned significantly, but they were still a threat. My grip tightened on the dead rat carcasses clinging to my hands.
¡°Stop using your power,¡± My gaze flicked to her, and she met my eyes briefly, a flicker of defiance in her silver irises. ¡°I¡¯ll take it from here.¡±
She hesitated, her jaw tightening as if she wanted to argue. But the teenagers¡¯ trembling hands steadied her, and exhaustion won out. She gave me a faint nod, her affects of meta dissipating as her body slumped further against the teens. Though, the damage her meta caused her to the surroundings space remained. I didn''t think any train could ever run on these tracks again. This part of the tunnel would surely become a forbidden zone where luck came to die.
The One Hit man was already at the emergency door, his hands braced against the dented metal as he prepared to force it open. I moved to cover him, swinging the rat-gloves in wide arcs, smashing the few remaining rats that lunged at us.
¡°Go!¡± I shouted, nodding toward the open door. ¡°Get her inside!¡±
Jade and the teenagers slipped through first, their movements clumsy.
The One Hit man followed with a final nod, his expression grim but resolved. I stayed back, clearing the last few bloody rats, when suddenly I felt sharp claws latch onto my legs. I was forced out of intangibility due to time.
Three of them swarmed up my calves, their claws digging deep, shredding through my jean pants and into my skin. I stumbled, pain flaring as their weight dragged me down. I kicked violently. One rat¡¯s spine snapped under my heel, its body going limp. Another clawed higher, its jaws snapping at my thigh. I slammed it against the wall with force of my entire body, the crunch of flesh and bone sharp in my ears. The last one clung stubbornly, its claws raking my shin until I grabbed it with both hands and smashed its head against the ground.
The door groaned shut behind me, but the rats screeches continue to pierce the air as they clawed at the metal, tearing into it with savage determination.
I turned quickly, ignoring the pain in my legs as I hoisted Jade onto my back. Her arms wrapped weakly around my shoulders, her weight heavier than it should have been. ¡°Hold on,¡± I muttered, my voice strained. I glanced at the trembling duo, their third friend was already at the top. ¡°Run! Fast!¡±
The climb was punishing, every step a battle against the limits of my body. My legs screamed, each movement sending sharp stabs of pain through the open bite wounds. My heart hammered so hard it felt like it might burst. The weight of Jade on my back didn¡¯t help¡ªshe was light, but my exhaustion turned her into an anchor.
Behind us, the metallic screech of tearing metal continued to echo like a death knell. My blood ran cold as the sound grew louder, unmistakable¡ªthe rats had breached the door.
The thought of those relentless demons pouring into the stairwell sent adrenaline surging through my veins, pushing me onward.
The air subtly shifted as we neared the top. A faint, cool breeze slipped through cracks in the emergency exit. It wasn¡¯t much, but it was enough to spur me forward.
At the final landing, the One Hit man paused for a moment.
The side of his body blocked the heavy metal door as he gripped the handle. Both his suit and his skin was in tatters with blood continuously dripping onto the concrete floor. He glanced back at us, his face unreadable, but there was a glimmer of relief in his eyes.
With a grunt of effort, he shoved the heavy door open, the hinges groaning in protest.
And then, the night greeted us.
The cool night air rushed in, brushing against my sweat-soaked skin. Faint streetlights glowed in the distance, and the hum of the city¡¯s traffic was a strange comfort. We were somewhere near a highway.
For a moment, it felt unreal¡ªthis sudden return to normalcy after the bloody horrors of the subway.
But we didn¡¯t stop to admire it. There was no time for relief. We ran, stumbling onto the empty street, putting as much distance as we could between us and the exit. Behind us, the bloody rats scattered into the wild, their erratic movements fading into the shadows. They wouldn¡¯t last long, I reasoned. Their frenzy would drain them of energy soon enough, and without sustenance, they¡¯d likely die within a day or two. And those left would be killed and captured by Sups.
Finally, after crossing the road and reaching the edge of an abandoned parking lot, we stopped. My knees buckled slightly as I set Jade down gently, leaning against a rusted metal railing to catch my breath. Every muscle in my body felt like it had been stretched to its breaking point, but at least we were out. Alive.
Meanwhile, the trio of youngsters huddled together a few feet away, their faces pale and streaked with tears and grime. They hugged each other, trembling like leaves in a storm.
The girl, her voice still trembling, ¡°Oh my god,¡± she whispered, her words barely audible at first.
¡°Oh my god. We made it out. We¡¯re alive. I thought...¡± Her voice cracked, tears spilling freely down her cheeks. ¡°I thought we were going to die.¡±
The boy with the torn jacket dropped to his knees, his head in his hands. ¡°I can still hear them,¡± he muttered, his voice hollow. ¡°The screeches¡ those claws. I thought they were going to rip us apart.¡±
The girl eyes darting toward the subway entrance in the distance. ¡°They might still come after us,¡± she said, her voice quivering. ¡°What if they¡¯re still down there? What if¡ª¡±
I had no doubt¡ªthey would never be the same again. This experience would scar them, leaving behind a trauma they¡¯d carry for the rest of their lives.
¡°They won¡¯t,¡± One Hit Man interrupted, ¡°Not for now. They¡¯ll scatter without direction. But we¡¯re not hanging around to find out.¡±
¡°You alright?¡± I glanced at him.
He held up his mangled hands with a grimace. ¡°Good? I¡¯m alive. That counts, right?¡±
He looked like he¡¯d stumbled out of a slaughterhouse, not like someone returning from a day at the office. His tattered clothes clung to him, soaked with blood, and his hands¡ªGod, his hands. The skin and flesh were stripped away, exposing bone, torn muscle, and frayed ligaments. It was a grotesque sight, and I knew the adrenaline numbing his pain wouldn¡¯t last much longer. When it wore off, the agony would hit him like a freight train.
¡°It does,¡± Yet he¡¯d earned that smile¡ªmy gratitude. I nodded back at him, offering a small, tired smile of my own. ¡°For now, it counts.¡±
Out of six of us, only Jade and two timid teengaers were without any visible injuries,
But, Jade¡¯s exhaustion was more apparent than any wound. She leaned heavily in my arms, her once presence now impossibly fragile. Her body, which had burned with feverish heat, had cooled¡ªbut now the temperature was plummeting too quickly, making me more worried and panicked I already was. Her eyes stayed shut, her body limp, and her clothes were smeared with blood¡ªmine mixing with hers.
She stirred in my arms, her eyelids fluttering. ¡°North¡¡±
I looked down at her, a wave of emotion surging through me. ¡°I¡¯m here,¡± I said softly, my hand moving to rub her shoulder in reassurance. ¡°We¡¯re safe now. Just rest. It¡¯s over.¡±
Without her, we¡¯d all be dead.
Unlike One Hit Man, I wasn¡¯t gravely injured, though my pants were soaked with blood leaking from the bites on my thighs and legs. I hoped I wouldn¡¯t bleed out tonight or get rabies. As from that, exhaustion wracked my body. Blood and gore coated me from head to toe, an almost suffocating layer that seeped into my clothes and clung stubbornly to my skin. The sticky, sickly warmth was unbearable, leaving me acutely aware of every inch of myself. It wasn¡¯t just disgusting¡ªit felt like an invasion,
I felt the weight of it, not just physically but emotionally.
Yet, for now, survival was enough.
Moments later, the faint noise of distant sirens cut through the night. Within minutes, teams of Sups descended on the scene like a well-coordinated storm.Their flashy costumes crisp and glowing insignias marking their affiliations with multiple organizations, a few jumped from the sky, and a few hovering in the air on their hoverboards. The parking lot was quickly crowded. Police cars, fire trucks, and ambulances flooded the road, their flashing lights painting the surroundings in red and blue.
¡°Over here!¡± a voice shouted, and a team of Sups approached us.
We all lay sprawled on the ground, too exhausted to move. The adrenaline in my veins was fading, replaced by a bone-deep weariness that seeped into every inch of me. I glanced at the One Hit man, he seemed to be biting his lips and his face was ready to give up to pain.
The medic team scanned us for immediate injuries,.
A man in a navy-blue costume, his chest emblazoned with the emblem of the official City Protectors, crouched beside us. ¡°You two all right?¡±
¡°We¡¯re... alive,¡± Jade managed, her voice hoarse. She had woken up due to all the blaring light and voices.
¡°That¡¯s good enough,¡± he replied, signaling for another team of paramedics.
Moments later, the six of us were shuffled toward the waiting ambulances. The medics worked quickly as they ushered us inside, immediately patching us with dozen of machines to take readings.
Jade winced as the medic administered an injection into her arm, but the medical equipment around her was in chaos. Every reading went haywire, leaving the paramedics frustrated and overwhelmed. She was too unstable, her condition defying their understanding. They¡¯d wrapped her in four thick silver blankets designed to contain meta radiation leaks, but even those couldn¡¯t keep up. The blankets turned black within minutes, forcing them to replace them three times already. It was clear they wanted nothing more than to rush her to the hospital, sedate her heavily, and wait for her meta-nature to stabilize¡ªuntil she stopped warping and damaging reality around her.
I leaned in closer, two paramedics quietly worked on giving me one injection after another to stop the whatever infection they said was spreading through my legs and body. As my body below the hips was swollen like elephant legs, so I didn''t complain or stopped them.
I kept my voice low. ¡°You were amazing down there,¡± I said, trying to catch her gaze.
She looked at me, her lips quirked into the faintest smirk, though it didn¡¯t reach her eyes. ¡°You weren¡¯t so bad yourself,¡± she murmured.
Subsequently, the ambulance doors shut with a solid thunk, cutting off the loud wail of sirens and the hum of emergency crews. Jolting as it started moving, the sirens rising to a steady wail. I leaned back against the cool interior wall, letting the motion lull my thoughts. The ordeal was over, but the questions lingered.
What was the purpose of this attack? Was it really a test? What comes next?
Jade shifted slightly on the bed, ¡°Stop overthinking,¡± the faintest trace of exasperation in her voice.
I blinked, caught off guard. ¡°How do you always know when I¡¯m doing that?¡±
She gave a faint smile, her smirk returning despite the pain beneath. ¡°Because...we¡¯re connected. Like freaky mental Wi-Fi.¡±
I stared at her for a second, my mouth slightly open.
She wasn¡¯t wrong¡ªnot entirely.
Act 2.20 (Chrysalis)
One of the undeniable perks of being a student at Beyonder¡¯s Academy was access to the kind of medical care most people could only dream of. That night, we were rushed to a specialized hospital, a team of elite meta doctors were called specially as they worked tirelessly on Jade and me. Their meta-natures accelerated our recovery in ways that felt almost miraculous. Wounds sealed within minutes, fatigue ebbed like a distant memory, and the crushing weight of exhaustion lifted enough to breathe again¡ªat least physically.
The city, meanwhile, was ablaze with the news. Reports of the tunnel train attack spread like wildfire, flooding every channel and feed with speculation and outrage. The Sups had already mobilized, sweeping the tunnels to eliminate any remaining demon rats and scouring for survivors. But I knew the grim truth¡ªthey wouldn¡¯t find many.
Of the four hundred passengers on that train, only six of us had made it out alive.
I could see the horror replaying in my mind as I tried to grasp the scale of what had happened.
¡°This is insanity,¡± a nurse muttered under her breath as she passed, her tablet glowing with scrolling headlines. ¡®Largest civilian-targeted attack of the year: Who¡¯s responsible?¡¯ blared across the screen.
I caught her eye, and she hesitated. ¡°I¡¯m sorry,¡± she said quietly.
¡°Don¡¯t be,¡± I replied, my voice flat. ¡°Save it for someone else. We¡¯re alive¡ªthat¡¯s more than most can say.¡±
¡°...¡±
As the only survivors, we were whisked into secure hospital rooms, surrounded by layers of protection.
I slept for two full days after the ordeal, my body healed but my mind too worn out to even consider waking up. When I finally did, groggy and disoriented, I opened my eyes to find my parents and Aunt Grace sitting beside me. Relief and warmth spread through me at the sight of their familiar faces. Despite the weight of the last few days, it felt surprisingly good to have them near. I was lucky; my relationship with them was solid¡ªsomething not everyone could claim.
¡°Finally awake, huh?¡± Aunt Grace¡¯s sharp wit tinged with obvious worry.
¡°Grace,¡± my mother scolded softly, though the corners of her mouth twitched into a brief smile. Her hand found mine, her grip firm but trembling. ¡°We¡¯ve been so worried, sweetheart.¡±
¡°You¡¯ve no idea,¡± my father added, his voice gruff but cracking at the edges. He ran a hand through his graying hair, his usual calm exterior cracked wide open. ¡°When we saw the news¡ªGod, I thought¡ª¡± He stopped himself, clearing his throat. ¡°You¡¯re okay. That¡¯s all that matters.¡±
¡°I¡¯m sorry you had to see that. I didn¡¯t mean to¡ª¡±
¡°Stop,¡± my mom cut in, her voice firm but gentle. ¡°This isn¡¯t your fault. Don¡¯t even go there.¡±
¡°Listen to your mother,¡± Aunt Grace said, her eyes narrowing. ¡°For once.¡±
I chuckled weakly, the sound surprising even me. ¡°Thanks. You always know how to lighten the mood.¡±
¡°That¡¯s what I¡¯m here for.¡± She winked, ¡°But seriously, kid. Don¡¯t scare us like that again."
Then, after a pause, her brows knit together, and she tilted her head slightly. ¡°Why didn¡¯t you use your meta to notice something this big was coming?¡±
To which I could only stare in silence blaming my stupidity and the past for giving me unforgettable trauma.
Grace¡¯s gaze lingered on me, her lips pursed as if she wanted to say more. Before she could, my mom¡¯s hand found mine, giving it a gentle squeeze. ¡°It¡¯s okay,¡± she said softly, her tone calming but firm. Then she threw Grace a sharp side glance. ¡°Don¡¯t push him. You know how his meta is basically useless. He barely has any control over it.¡±
Her words sent a flush of embarrassment up my neck. I shifted awkwardly in the bed, feeling exposed even though she was defending me. It wasn¡¯t the first time she¡¯d tried to shield me like this, but it didn¡¯t sting any less.
Mom rubbed my forehead. ¡°You did everything you could,¡± she reassured again.
I swallowed hard, forcing a small nod. She wasn¡¯t wrong, not entirely. At this point in the first timeline, my meta was a mess. All I saw were confusing shapes and colors, fragments that I could barely interpret. More often than not, when I shared my so-called ¡°insights,¡± they were just guesses, half-truths stitched together to avoid humiliation¡ªor worse, being left out.
They stayed for hours, their voices filled with a mix of relief and worry as we talked. I could see the lines of tension in their faces, hear the unspoken fear laced beneath their words. But they were here, and that meant everything.
When they finally left, my mom kissed my forehead, whispering, ¡°We¡¯ll be back tomorrow, okay? Rest. Let them take care of you.¡±
As the door clicked shut behind them, the quiet returned, leaving me alone with my thoughts.
But the peace didn¡¯t last long.
A knock barely preceded the door swinging open, and suddenly my small hospital room was filled with investigator Sups and City Protectors, dressed in flashy uniforms. They moved in like a wave, notebooks in hand, devices glowing, their presence overwhelming in the confined room. Questions came at me rapid-fire, their words a blur at first until I forced myself to focus.
¡°What triggered the attack?¡±
¡°Did you see anything unusual before the swarm arrived?¡±
¡°How did you manage to survive when almost no one else did?¡±
Each question dragged me back into the bloodbath of the tunnel, forcing me to relive the sounds of screams, the littered dead bodies, the endless waves of bloody mutated rats. My answers came measured and deliberate, sparing no detail. I knew the importance of precision¡ªthey weren¡¯t just collecting facts; they were building a narrative.
One officer¡ªa tall man with sharp eyes that missed nothing¡ªfinally addressed it head-on. ¡°You¡¯re from Beyonder¡¯s Academy, right?¡±
¡°Yes,¡± I said evenly, meeting his gaze. ¡°First-year.¡±
That earned a subtle shift in the room. Eyebrows rose, glances were exchanged. Students from the beyonders¡¯ academy weren¡¯t ordinary. Everyone knew that. Surviving an attack of this scale wasn¡¯t just luck¡ªit was expected of someone with our training and abilities.
¡°You¡¯re saying you six fought off thousands of these things?¡± another officer pressed, skepticism bleeding into his tone.
¡°Yes,¡± I replied, my voice steady but cool. ¡°We did what we had to do.¡±
Still, I couldn¡¯t deny the truth. Ninety percent of the credit for our survival belonged to Jade. Without her, we wouldn¡¯t have lasted minutes. Unless someone had a meta-nature powerful enough to collapse the entire tunnel system¡ªand somehow survive the fallout¡ªthere was no way we could have fought off the sheer numbers of those monstrous mutated rats. Ten thousand. That was the approximate number of demon rats Jade had wiped out in the chaos. Ten. Thousand. The thought was staggering. Her meta-nature wasn¡¯t just powerful¡ªit operated on a level that defied logic. Watching her in action, I realized just how much I didn¡¯t understand about her true capabilities. Even now, the memory of her standing in the tunnel, her eyes shifting with impossible speed, sent a shiver through me. The rats had collapsed like dying stars, their existence snuffed out as though they¡¯d never been born. The image stayed with me, vivid and unsettling.
Another soft knock on the door pulled me out of my thoughts. It was getting tiring.
I straightened in bed as the door creaked open, revealing a group of familiar faces. Alex stepped in first, his usual confidence was somewhat subdued, followed by Lore, Gina, Vinico, and Henry. They crowded into the small hospital room.
¡°Look who¡¯s alive and kicking,¡± Alex quipped, flashing me a grin as he leaned casually against the wall beside my bed.
"Alex!¡± Lore scolded, giving him a sharp glare before turning to me with a softer expression. ¡°Don¡¯t mind him. How are you feeling? We heard about what happened¡ and, well, we had to come see for ourselves.¡±
I offered a small smile, ¡°I¡¯m better now. Just tired, I guess. They¡¯ve been keeping us under watch to see if everything was alright before the discharge.¡±
Gina perched herself on the foot of my bed, ¡°So, are they feeding you hospital mush, or do you actually get real food here? Because if it¡¯s the first, I¡¯ve sneaked in some snacks.¡±
I laughed lightly, shaking my head. ¡°It¡¯s not that bad, better than I had expected. But I¡¯ll gladly accept the snacks.¡±
¡°You know you scared the crap out of all of us, right? When the news broke, there was chaos everywhere in the city. We couldn¡¯t believe it when we found out it was you and Jade on that train.¡± Henry told, leaning against the wall.
I glanced away, the memories replaying themselves again in my mind like a movie. "It felt like a bad dream," I said, "Swarms of those bloody mutated rats coming at us from every direction, relentless. Like a nightmare made real. If it weren¡¯t for Jade¡ we wouldn¡¯t have made it out."
Lore shifted closer, her expression softening. "They¡¯re not letting any outsiders see her," she said quietly. ¡°Doctors said she¡¯s in one of those special meta-human containments rooms, you know, the ones for¡ when things get out of hand.¡±
I exhaled sharply, rubbing the back of my neck. ¡°Doesn¡¯t mean she¡¯s not okay,¡± I muttered, more to myself than anyone else. ¡°It¡¯s just¡ a precaution.¡±
In case something went wrong. The memory of her Likeness bleeding uncontrollably into reality before we were brought to the hospital was still fresh in my mind, thinking about it made me depressed and sad for pushing her like that.
Lore hesitated. ¡°Sure,¡± she said, but the way her brow furrowed told me she wasn¡¯t fully convinced. ¡°Still, people are talking. Weird things are happening around the hospital. Medical instruments breaking down for no reason, people tripping over nothing, stuff disappearing¡ªone nurse swore her sandwich vanished from her hand mid-bite."
She paused, her expression growing more serious. ¡°And it¡¯s not just inside the hospital. There¡¯ve been accidents outside too¡ªmore than usual. Traffic lights failing, random car pileups, freak weather patterns, you name it. It¡¯s gotten so bad that the Sups had to seal off the entire area and divert traffic to other hospitals. People are saying it¡¯s cursed.¡±
I blinked, ¡°Cursed? That¡¯s¡ dramatic.¡±
Lore crossed her arms, her eyes narrowing slightly. ¡°You tell me. Jade¡¯s in the epicenter of all of this, and I¡¯ve seen firsthand what her meta can do. "
¡°It¡¯s not her fault,¡± I cut in sharply, as if they were blaming her. How could they? ¡°She¡¯s not doing it on purpose. She¡¯s still recovering."
Lore raised a brow. ¡°I didn¡¯t say it was her fault."
¡°You know,¡± Gina said, tapping her chin as if in deep thought, ¡°maybe the nurse¡¯s sandwich just¡ gave up. Hospital food¡¯ll do that to you.¡±
Henry snorted from her spot by the window.
However, various rumors indeed had begun to circulate among the doctors and nurses or every patient. Yet amidst the growing sense of unease, there were also murmurs of miraculous occurrences.
¡°We also heard the other side of it,¡± Lore continued. ¡°Patients near Jade¡¯s room are practically walking miracles. Chronic conditions suddenly stabilizing, people recovering from injuries way faster than they should. One guy woke up from a ten-year coma after losing control of his meta. Ten years. And it happened hours after being moved closer to Jade¡¯s wing.¡±
¡°Someone also won a lottery on a scratcher,¡± Gina chimed in, her tone somewhere between disbelief. ¡°A literal, million-to-one shot.¡±
¡°Broken bones knitting overnight,¡± Lore added, "Even the long-term cases¡ªpatients doctors had given up on¡ªare bouncing back. Most of the hospital is already empty as a lot of patients had gone home healed. But, some also got worse and dead."
Henry, who had been quietly leaning against the wall, sniggered, shaking his head. ¡°People are nuts. I overheard a couple of rich patients talking about bribing staff to get rooms closer to her. Like she¡¯s some kind of healing beacon. One guy even offered triple the normal fee to switch wards.¡±
¡°Lucky for them,¡± I muttered, as a sudden wave of sadness hit me. ¡°Not so lucky for her.¡±
On one hand, it was easy to laugh at the absurdity of it all¡ªlottery tickets, rich patients scrambling for proximity like she was a magic charm. On the other hand... At what¡¯s the cost? I couldn¡¯t stop the thought from creeping in. If people were benefiting from her presence, who was paying the price? The image of Jade in the tunnel surged back¡ªher face pale, her body trembling in as her meta bled uncontrollably into the world around her. The way she held it all together, the pain etched into every movement, despite her body practically burning from the inside out. All of it just to keep me alive. To save us.
I clenched my fists, the guilt twisting like a knife in my gut. She deserved so much more than this.
¡°She¡¯s not alone in there, is she?¡± I asked. ¡°Tell me she¡¯s not just locked up like some science experiment.¡±
Alex shook his head ¡°No, no. I heard they got a full team monitoring her. It¡¯s just¡ after what¡¯s happening, they¡¯re being extra cautious.¡±
¡°Yeah, cautious,¡± Gina said with a snort. ¡°More like scared out of their minds.¡±
Vinico, who¡¯d been leaning against the wall in his usual silent way, finally spoke up. ¡°I mean, accidental or not, it¡¯s kinda impressive. Her powers don¡¯t stop, even when she does. Good, bad¡ªit all just happens around her. Reality bending just by existing? Not everyone can pull that off.¡±
¡°Yeah, and not everyone wants to,¡± Gina shot back, ¡°This isn¡¯t something she¡¯d ever ask for. You know that.¡±
As if picking up on my unease, Lore smoothly shifted gears. ¡°Do you have any idea what could¡¯ve caused this? People and news are talking¡ªvillains, conspiracies. Several super organizations have already launched full-scale investigations into the incident."
I exhaled slowly, running a hand through my hair. ¡°It¡¯s not concrete, but those rats clearly weren¡¯t natural. Someone engineered them. If I had to guess, Tunnel Underground is a good candidate. Twisted animal experiments are kind of their thing.¡±
¡°Figures,¡± Gina muttered, crossing her arms. ¡°Creeps. Can¡¯t even leave rats alone.¡±
¡°Well, whatever it was,¡± Alex chimed in, leaning against the wall with his usual air of confidence, ¡°you made it out. That¡¯s what matters. And you¡¯ve got us. You¡¯re not dealing with this alone.¡±
¡°Thanks for coming,¡± I said, my voice quieter but filled with sincerity.The story has been stolen; if detected on Amazon, report the violation.
¡°Don¡¯t get mushy on us,¡± Lore said with a small smile. ¡°That¡¯s what friends are for.¡±
The mood lightened after that, the conversation shifting to safer topics. Gina launched into a dramatic monologue about her newest hero crush. ¡°I¡¯m telling you, he¡¯s got the perfect jawline. And the voice? Like honey and thunder.¡±
¡°Don¡¯t let her fool you,¡± Vinico said dryly, adjusting his glasses. ¡°She only noticed him because he lifted a bus. It¡¯s always the show-offs.¡±
¡°Oh, please,¡± Gina shot back. ¡°Like you don¡¯t have a thing for brainy types who can calculate physics in their sleep.¡±
¡°Which reminds me,¡± Alex cut in, clearly relishing the attention. ¡°Did I tell you I have successfully infiltrated the BlackSun Gang."
For the next half hour, the room was filled with laughter, banter, and the kind of casual teasing that made everything feel, for a little while, normal. Eventually, they had to leave, promising to visit again soon.
The door clicked shut behind them, and the room fell quiet once more.
I leaned back against the pillows, sighing. Physically, I felt fine¡ªcompletely healed, even¡ªbut the hospital insisted on keeping me for another night. Their reasoning? Some nonsense about observation. I didn¡¯t argue, but in my head, I was already plotting my escape.
Then, out of nowhere, a sudden thought gripped me, a sharp and irresistible urge I couldn¡¯t shake. Before I could second-guess it, I swung my legs off the bed, my body shifting instinctively as I became intangible. I seeped through the door, stepping into the quiet hallway beyond. Alex had mentioned Jade¡¯s floor number earlier. I hadn¡¯t gone to see her yet, worried about running into her parents or someone else who might raise questions about our relationship. But now that visiting hours were over, the halls were quiet, and Jade was likely alone.
I made my way to the elevator and descended to the eighth floor underground¡ªthe section of the hospital designed specifically for patients with volatile or out-of-control meta-natures. The corridors here felt different, tougher and oppressive, as if even the walls themselves were bracing for the unexpected.
Exiting, the corridor stretched ahead, eerily quiet. Small windows dotted the heavy metal doors lining the hallway, I moved like a whisper, peering through them to look inside each room. Whenever a nurse or doctor passed by, I phased into the walls, waiting until their footsteps faded. It was slow going, but eventually, I found her. I peered cautiously through the window and saw Jade lying on her bed, propped up slightly. She wasn¡¯t asleep¡ªher eyes were half-lidded, weary but aware. A nurse stood by her side, handing over medicine in a small cup. I pressed into the wall, watching silently until the nurse finished her tasks and exited, disappearing down the corridor.
The moment the coast was clear, I slid through the door, stepping cautiously into the dimly lit room.
The soft shuffle of my shoes on the floor made Jade¡¯s head snap toward me, her eyes widening. She gasped softly, her breath catching as if she couldn¡¯t believe what she was seeing. But then her expression shifted¡ªsurprise melting into something warmer, her eyes sparkling even in the low light.
¡°North?¡± she whispered, her voice barely audible to not alert the nurses. ¡°What are you doing here?¡±
I stepped closer, unable to stop the smile forming on my lips. ¡°Breaking all the rules, apparently.¡±
Her brow furrowed, though the corners of her mouth twitched upward as she gripped her blanket. ¡°You¡¯re going to get in so much trouble,¡± she murmured, her voice tinged with exasperation but laced with something softer¡ªrelief, maybe.
¡°Worth it,¡± I said, moving to the edge of her bed. ¡°I couldn¡¯t just sit up there, knowing you¡¯re stuck down here.¡±
Jade pouted, shaking her head, ¡°You¡¯re so annoying,¡± she said, but her tone was light, almost fond.
Annoying? Really? What did she even mean? I was clearly here to check on half of my heart and make sure she was alright. That¡¯s not annoying¡ªit¡¯s heroic, if anything.
I shrugged casually, my lips curling into a mischievous smirk as I took a step closer. ¡°Annoying, huh?¡± I said, my voice teasing. ¡°Guess I¡¯ll just have to lean into it.¡± Without giving her a chance to respond, I reached down and lifted the edge of her blanket, ignoring her soft, half-hearted protests.
¡°North!¡± she hissed, though the brightness in her eyes betrayed her happiness.
¡°What?¡± I said, feigning innocence as I settled beside her.
¡°You can¡¯t just climb in here! What if someone walks in?¡± she whispered, her cheeks brightening.
¡°Then I¡¯ll say I¡¯m a new type of advanced thermal therapy,¡± I replied, wrapping an arm around her shoulders. ¡°It¡¯s freezing out there, and this is the only warm spot I see.¡±
She rolled her eyes even as she leaned into me.
¡°Besides, you missed me?¡± I said smugly.
She didn¡¯t respond at first, but then she nodded heavily, her head bobbing like it weighed too much to hold up.
¡°That¡¯s what I thought,¡± I whispered, pressing a light kiss to her temple.
The scholars always said actions spoke louder than words, and she was proving them right.
¡°Don¡¯t get cocky,¡± she murmured, though her tone lacked bite.
¡°Too late,¡± I said with a grin, before peppering her face with kisses.
One peck. Two pecks. Five. Ten. Twenty.
By the twentieth, she couldn¡¯t hold it in anymore. ¡°Hehehe, stop it,¡± she giggled, her laughter bubbling out uncontrollably as she tried to fend me off with her hands. But her attempts were as weak as her earlier protests. If anything, she seemed to be encouraging me, her cheeks glowing a brighter pink with each kiss. Her smile stretched impossibly wide, her laughter filling the small room. Beneath the blanket, I felt her legs coil around mine like a snake, locking me in place and making any escape impossible.
My eyes narrowed playfully as realization struck me. Was this her plan all along? Was the arrogant dragon always one step ahead?
It left me wondering¡ªbut only for a moment.
I finally paused, taking a deep breath as I leaned back slightly to look her in the eyes. My voice dropping to barely above a whisper. ¡°How are you feeling?¡±
Jade pouted, her lips curling into an exaggerated frown that only made her look more adorable. ¡°They said I¡¯m leaking high amounts of radiation. Probably from overusing my meta-nature.¡± She let out a dramatic huff, crossing her arms with a flair of indignation. ¡°Do they think I¡¯m some kind of atomic bomb or something?¡±
Her innocent frustration drew a chuckle from me. ¡°Well, you did practically obliterate ten thousand bloody rats in one go,¡± I replied thoughtfully. ¡°That¡¯s gotta earn you at least a small atomic bomb comparison.¡±
She glared at me, though the corners of her mouth twitched upward. ¡°You¡¯re not helping,¡± she grumbled, leaning back against the pillows. ¡°And, as if that wasn¡¯t enough, they banned me from using my meta-nature. Prohibited! Like I¡¯m gonna go nuclear in the middle of the hospital.¡±
¡°Probably a wise precaution,¡± I said, ¡°You are a bit¡ unpredictable right now.¡±
¡°Oh, please,¡± she pressed her hand on my lips, stopping me from speaking. ¡°I¡¯m perfectly stable. You¡¯re the unpredictable one.¡±
¡°Fair,¡± I conceded as I took her hand in mine. ¡°But listen to them, okay? No meta stuff until you¡¯re in safe territory?¡±
Jade hesitated, her lips pressing into a thin line, thinking. ¡°Okay,¡± she admitted reluctantly. ¡°Not like I have much of a choice. They¡¯d probably tackle me if I tried anything.¡±
¡°Well,¡± I said, squeezing her hand gently, ¡°if they do, make sure to call me.¡±
The moment the words left my lips, Jade smacked me on the shoulder, her narrowed eyes gleaming with mock anger. ¡°Rude!¡± she huffed.
I clutched my shoulder dramatically, feigning pain as I let out an exaggerated groan. ¡°Hey, let me finish! I meant so I could beat up the backroom doctors for touching my love,¡± I said, my tone dripping with mock indignation.
Jade froze for a moment, her cheeks instantly turning a deeper shade of red. Her hand flew to her neck, fingers brushing against the skin as if trying to cool the heat radiating from her face. ¡°Oh, well¡ in that case¡¡± she stammered, her voice barely above a whisper.
But then, something flipped¡ªlike her brain short-circuited from the overload. Her lips pressed into a pout, and her expression shifted, her voice sharper now. ¡°Still rude, though!¡±
How was it still rude? What logic was that? I blinked at her, my eyes wide for emphasis, hoping she¡¯d realize how absurd she sounded. But the look on her face told me there was no convincing her otherwise.
But inwardly, I wanted to thank her¡ªfor not leaving me to die in that tunnel. She could have escaped easily if she¡¯d wanted to, leaving the rest of us behind. But she hadn¡¯t. She¡¯d stayed, fought, and nearly pushed herself to the brink for my sake.
Yet as much as the words sat on the tip of my tongue, I couldn¡¯t bring myself to say them.
Between us, expressing thanks felt¡ wrong. Like it would build some invisible wall, something that would wedge itself between our bond and make it fragile. It wasn¡¯t just a feeling¡ªit was more than that. My meta-nature occasionally gave me premonitions, small glimpses of truth, and they were always right. This was one of them, I was sure of it. We both knew each other¡¯s secrets, yet we silently agreed not to address them. It wasn¡¯t the right time. There would be plenty of opportunities in the future, moments when the weight of those truths could be shared without fear or hesitation.
So, I held my tongue. Instead of words, I let my actions speak for me.
I stayed by her side, my hand brushing hers lightly under the blanket as if to say, I see you. I appreciate you. I¡¯m here.
¡°You¡¯re being quiet again,¡± Jade said after a moment, tilting her head to look at me. ¡°That¡¯s suspicious.¡±
¡°Me? Quiet? Impossible,¡± I pulled myself back into the moment. ¡°Just thinking about how lucky I am to be here, getting scolded by the most terrifyingly cute person I know.¡±
"Huh?" Jade blinked at me, clearly unprepared for that. But instead of replying, she gritted her teeth and grabbed the edge of the blanket, pulling it over her head to hide her face from all the embarrassment she felt in the moment. ¡°Stop! Please!" she mumbled. "You¡¯re going to make me die of secondhand embarrassment.¡±
I chuckled, leaning back against the pillows as I watched her burrow deeper into her makeshift cocoon. ¡°Embarrassment is just love trying to fight its way out,¡± I teased, letting my hand rest lightly on the edge of the blanket. ¡°And it¡¯s my job to make sure you smile¡ªwhether you like it or not.¡±
"You¡¯re so annoying." A muffled laugh escaped from under the covers, and I knew she was cracking despite herself. "Stop talking!¡±
I just shrugged again, completely unfazed. ¡°Nope. This is who you signed up for, Jade London. Might as well embrace it.¡±
As I spoke, my eyes drifted to her Likeness, the subtle shifts in her meta-nature that seemed to shift and ripple with her emotions. It was fascinating to watch¡ªwhen she was happy, truly at ease, her meta-nature seemed to stabilize on its own. The toxic colors that had been bleeding into surroundings, damaging the reality around her, were slowing down significantly, fading into something softer, more controlled.
It was as if her joy was pulling her back to balance, restoring the world around her as much as it was restoring her. I couldn¡¯t help but smile, the realization sinking in.
Jade let out a sigh, ¡°I signed up for this, huh? Is there a refund policy?¡±
¡°Refunds are non-existent,¡± I continued to see far I could push, ¡°But there is a lifetime warranty.¡±
¡°A warranty on you?¡± she raised a skeptical eyebrow. ¡°What does that cover? Overexposure to cringe?¡±
I tilted my head, pretending to consider. ¡°Unlimited hugs, infinite kisses, and unconditional love. It¡¯s a premium package. You won''t find it anywhere.¡±
Jade flipped the blanket off her head. ¡°Sounds like a scam,¡± Her face still red. ¡°Where¡¯s the fine print? What¡¯s the catch?¡±
¡°No catch, seriously¡± I said, shrugging casually. ¡°Lifetime guarantee. No! Future Proof.¡±
Jade opened her mouth, probably to shoot back some clever retort, but before she could get another word in, I leaned forward and wrapped my arms tightly around her, pulling her close before she could retreat under the blanket again. She was so warm in my arms, ¡°I don¡¯t want a future where you don¡¯t exist,¡± I murmured, the words spilling out before I could stop them. ¡°And not just that¡ªI don¡¯t want a future where you¡¯re not mine.¡±
Jade stiffened slightly at first, and I held my breath, wondering if I¡¯d said too much. Then she pulled back, just enough to meet my gaze, I saw a kaleidoscope of emotions swirling in the depths of her eyes¡ªsomething that looked suspiciously like love. Her eyes softened, her hands still cradling my face as if I might vanish if she let go. The gesture was so gentle it caught me off guard. In that moment, I felt cherished, treasured, as if I was the most precious thing in her world. My heart beat peacefully yet mixed with a powerful cocktail of emotions
¡°You don¡¯t get it, do you?¡± she murmured, her voice carrying an edge of emotion that made my breath hitch. ¡°It¡¯s not about futures or choices. You¡¯re already a part of me. Losing you isn¡¯t an option¡ªit¡¯s not even a possibility.¡±
¡°And before you start with your self-sacrificing nonsense,¡± she added, a faint smirk tugging at her lips, ¡°just know that if you try to cut yourself off or protect me by pushing me away, you won¡¯t be able to escape me. You¡¯d only coil around me back to back. I''ll make sure of that.¡±
¡°You¡¯re stuck with me,¡± she continued, a faint smile tugging at her lips. ¡°For better or worse. Forever. In this version of this life, or next.¡±
A laugh escaped me, shaky but real, ¡°You think you¡¯ve got me figured out, huh?¡±
¡°Completely.¡± She said resolutely.
I couldn¡¯t speak, couldn¡¯t move. All I could do was look into her eyes, filled with a fierce, unyielding love that left me breathless.
Love was the fastest and cruelest poison in the world. Yet here I was, willingly drowning in it.
Suddenly, the door handle twisted, and before I could react, Jade shoved me under the blanket with surprising force. ¡°Stay still!¡± she hissed, her voice a frantic whisper.
The door creaked open, and the nurse peeked inside, her eyes scanning the room with a polite but suspicious air. ¡°Is everything okay?¡± she asked, her gaze lingering on Jade. ¡°I thought I heard a voice. Do you need anything?¡±
Jade quickly pressed her hands to her cheeks, trying to smother the obvious blush spreading across her face. ¡°N-no, I¡¯m fine!¡± she stammered, her voice a little too high-pitched to sound natural. ¡°Just, uh¡ talking to myself. You know, trying to stay sane in here.¡±
The nurse raised an eyebrow, scanning the room.
Meanwhile, under the blanket, my face pressed against her stomach. Jade¡¯s hands held my head firmly, keeping me hidden. Her cozy clothes were warm against my cheek. I couldn¡¯t help the small grin tugging at my lips as I shifted slightly. Unable to resist, I tugged her shirt up just enough to feel the smoothness of her skin beneath. Her waist was impossibly soft, her skin warm to the touch, like the finest silk. Her stomach rose and fell with each breath, the faint sounds of her insides a quiet rhythm that I found oddly comforting. Without thinking, my lips brushed against her skin, immediately, her stomach tensed, and her breath caught as her hands froze, holding me in place. Encouraged by her reaction, I let my tongue slip out, gliding lightly over the warm, smooth surface of her skin.
Jade¡¯s breath hitched audibly, her hands tightening against my head as if to keep me from going any further.
¡°North,¡± she whispered, her voice trembling, ¡°Stop that,¡± half a warning and half something else entirely.
"I¡¯m not doing anything?" I chuckled, my breath tickling her skin. ¡°You''re holding my head.¡±
Her grip on my head tightened briefly in frustration, but I felt her stomach quivered, her muscles flexing involuntarily under my bites. ¡°If you get us caught, I swear I¡¯ll¡ª¡± She paused, probably realizing she didn¡¯t have a real threat ready. ¡°Just stay still!¡±
The nurse''s eyes flicked briefly to the blanket lump where I was hiding, and I held my breath, praying I didn¡¯t sneeze or do something equally incriminating. But, I wondered if Jade had already shifted the possibility of her finding me. Despite no meta warning.
¡°Alright,¡± the nurse said after a pause. ¡°Let me know if you need anything.¡±
As soon as the door clicked shut and the nurse¡¯s footsteps faded, Jade let out a shaky breath. ¡°Okay, coast is clear.¡±
I emerged from under the blanket, ¡°Well, that was cozy,¡± I suggested, brushing some hair out of my face. ¡°Should we make this a regular thing? Blanket hideouts and all?¡±
Jade glared at me, ¡°What if she had actually checked under the blanket?¡±
¡°She didn¡¯t,¡± I said, shrugging as if it had been no big deal. ¡°You handled it perfectly. Quick thinking and all.¡±
She groaned, ¡°You¡¯re lucky she didn¡¯t notice anything, or we¡¯d both be in trouble.¡±
¡°Hey, I¡¯m pretty sure I¡¯d take all the heat,¡± I pointed out, ¡°You¡¯d just have to sit there and look cute saying you don¡¯t know me, while they kick me out.¡±
Her hands were still tangled in my hair, and she tugged hard, making me yelp in surprise. "Ouch! Ouch! Sorry." She looked absolutely adorable like this¡ªher frustration and amusement blending into an expression that made her cheeks puff out slightly. It was so endearing I couldn¡¯t help but get lost, despite knowing it would earn me more grief.
Her squinted eyes said everything. ¡°I¡¯m calling the nurse,¡± she threatened, her finger already pointed at the door.
I laughed, holding up my hands in surrender. ¡°Alright, alright! No need to bring in reinforcements. I¡¯ll behave.¡±
She didn¡¯t look convinced, her finger still hovering mid-air. ¡°You? Behave? I¡¯ll believe it when I see it.¡±
I shrugged, letting the peace settle, ¡°By the way, have your parents visited?¡± I asked, steering the conversation to a different topic.
¡°No,¡± Jade¡¯s expression didn¡¯t change, remaining calm and composed. She gently shook her head, as if the question didn¡¯t carry much weight for her. ¡°My aunt and uncle visited me this morning,¡± she said softly. ¡°But my home is too far from here. Even with FTL or dimension hoping, it¡¯d still take them about a week to get here.¡±
¡°Is that so,¡± I murmured, more to myself than her, and I didn¡¯t press further. Actually, there wasn¡¯t much else to say, unless I started to judge her parents, which I already was internally.
Instead, noticing the subtle tension in her expression when I mentioned her parents, I decided to steer clear, ¡°At least someone got to visit the queen of the hospital.¡±
Jade retorted, ¡°Queen of the hospital? More like a lab specimen. I swear, they keep poking at me like I¡¯m about to explode.¡±
¡°Well,¡± I leaning back beside her, ¡°you did kind of save the day like an action hero. Maybe they¡¯re just in awe.¡±
She rolled her eyes. ¡°Yeah, right. More like they¡¯re terrified I¡¯ll cause another incident.¡±
¡°Hey,¡± I said firmly, squeezing her hand. ¡°You kept us alive. Don¡¯t downplay that. Don¡¯t even joke about it.¡±
She looked away, as if the weight of my words made her uncomfortable. ¡°I just¡ did what I had to,¡± she murmured. ¡°And now I''m locked here.¡±
I shook my head, ¡°You did more than that. Don¡¯t let others make you feel like that¡¯s nothing. If they can¡¯t see that, it¡¯s their problem¡ªnot yours. People are stupid anyway. While other might not care, I care. I¡¯ll always care.¡±
She looked like she wanted to argue, her lips parting as if to counter me, but then her shoulders sagged slightly. ¡°You make it sound so simple."
For a moment, I almost felt bad, but the faint quirk of her lips betrayed her frustration.
The arrogant dragon probably realized she couldn¡¯t win this one against me. Not today
Act 2.21 (Chrysalis)
Though I had just survived a massive villain attack, that didn¡¯t mean I was off the hook for long. As soon as I was discharged, my regular responsibilities returned¡ªchief among them, my weekly community service assignment from Beyonder¡¯s Academy. This wasn¡¯t the kind of service that felt particularly fulfilling, either. I was tasked with supervising teenagers who had yet to grasp the seriousness of their abilities. These weren¡¯t just any kids, though¡ªthey were the children of influential families, kids who had grown up with everything handed to them. For them, powers weren¡¯t a responsibility; they were a game.
Worse still, these teens weren¡¯t even enrolled in Beyonder¡¯s Academy yet. Their parents had paid exorbitant fees to get them into preparatory training¡ªa head start to boost their chances of eventual acceptance. It was a system that rewarded wealth over merit, and I was there to ensure their powers didn¡¯t cause any disasters while they played at being heroes.
And me? I was doing this as part of my academy responsibilities, unpaid and unnoticed, disguised as community service. Babysitting a group of entitled brats no younger than myself, forced to teach them skills their parents should¡¯ve instilled. The irony wasn¡¯t lost on me, and yet, here I was.
It was Friday, and after classes wrapped up early, I reluctantly hugged Jade goodbye. Her arms clung tightly around me, as though she didn¡¯t want to let go.
¡°Good luck,¡± she murmured, her voice soft. ¡°Call me when you¡¯re free.¡±
I nodded, a small smile tugging at my lips. ¡°I will.¡±
The hardest part wasn¡¯t the goodbye¡ªit was knowing we wouldn¡¯t see each other that evening. As I pulled away, her absence already settled in, lingering like an ache I couldn¡¯t quite shake.
Meanwhile, I had to pick up the youngsters I was assigned to mentor¡ªor, as I liked to call it, ¡°babysit.¡±
Jade, for her part, wasn¡¯t off the hook either; she had her own trio of rich, entitled prot¨¦g¨¦s to manage. Honestly, it was hard to imagine how someone like her¡ªquiet, focused, and not exactly the nurturing type¡ªdealt with those kids. I often joked to myself that maybe she kept them in line by Perhaps beating them everyday like the entire class at the academy until no one was willing to come near her. The thought amused me enough to keep me from grumbling too much about my own predicament.
I took the train to the North District, heading to pick up my first "student," a bratty seventeen-year-old named Louvel Delacour.
From what little I¡¯d gleaned about his family, it seemed his parents were often absent¡ªmuch like Jade¡¯s. That probably explained why Louvel was such a troubled kid. He wouldn¡¯t listen to anyone, and his wealth had only made him more insufferable. I wasn¡¯t a fan of his attitude, but I did the bare minimum required of me. It wasn¡¯t my job to teach him common sense or basic decency, just to guide him through his power training. Still, our dynamic had developed over the past two months, and we¡¯d reached a sort of understanding. Louvel knew I wouldn¡¯t tolerate too much nonsense, and I knew how to keep him engaged without sparking an argument.
When I arrived at the park where he was playing volleyball, he spotted me standing by the gate. True to form, Louvel ended the game early, fist-bumping his friends before strolling over with an easy smile.
¡°Hey, how¡¯s it going?¡± he greeted, his tone as relaxed as his posture.
I nodded politely. ¡°Not bad,¡± I replied. ¡°Looks like you¡¯re a regular MVP around here.¡±
He chuckled, running a hand through his perfectly tousled hair. ¡°Eh, not really. I just don¡¯t like losing, so I make sure we don¡¯t.¡±
¡°Modest,¡± I said, my voice laced with dry humor.
Louvel grinned, unfazed. ¡°Well, somebody¡¯s got to keep these guys in shape.¡± He gestured lazily toward the court, where his friends were already starting a new game without him. ¡°You play?¡±
¡°Not really,¡± I admitted, keeping pace with him as we started walking. ¡°Team sports were never my thing.¡±
¡°Shame,¡± he said, glancing down at me. ¡°You look like you could use some cardio.¡±
I shot him a sidelong look but decided not to rise to the bait. ¡°I think I¡¯ll manage.¡±
Louvel was taller than me¡ªeasily six-foot-six¡ªand his casual confidence matched his striking looks. Even in a simple tank top and shorts, he carried himself like he owned the place. It was hard to ignore how much he fit the image of a quintessential playboy: charm, good looks, and just enough arrogance to make him aggravatingly likable.
As we walked, his tone shifted, growing slightly more conversational. ¡°So, where to next?¡±
¡°Your place first,¡± I replied. ¡°We¡¯ll pick up my second assignment after you¡¯re done changing. Unless you¡¯re planning on showing up everywhere in your game gear.¡±
He smirked, unfazed. ¡°My place it is, then.¡±
His mansion¡ªor what most would call an estate¡ªwas just a few blocks away. Once inside, he disappeared for about fifteen minutes to freshen up. When he reappeared, dressed in a tailored shirt and jeans that somehow managed to look both effortless and expensive, he grinned. ¡°Alright. Let''s go.¡±
We headed to the nearby mall to pick up Placid.
Although her name, Placid, meant calm, she was anything but.
Louvel drove his sport car out from the underground garage and it didn¡¯t take us long to find her. She was near a fancy tea stand, surrounded by a group of friends, gesturing wildly as she spoke. Her voice carried over the noise of the food court, bright and full of energy, punctuated by bursts of laughter from the group around her.
¡°There she is,¡± Louvel said, nodding toward her. ¡°In her natural habitat.¡±
Placid spotted us almost immediately, her sharp eyes catching on Louvel first. She waved enthusiastically, practically bouncing off the bench as she called out, ¡°Hey! Over here!¡±
¡°Placid,¡± I greeted, my tone friendly. ¡°You ready to go?¡±
She turned toward me, her face lighting up with excitement. ¡°You kept me waiting!¡± she exclaimed, ignoring my question entirely. ¡°Oh, wait, hold on¡ªguys, this is the mentor I was telling you about.¡± She gestured dramatically to me, then to Louvel. ¡°And this is Louvel. He¡¯s, like, alright, I guess.¡±
¡°Charming,¡± Louvel muttered, shoving his hands into his pockets.
Placid ignored him, turning her attention back to me. ¡°So, what¡¯s the plan? Please tell me it¡¯s not boring. And did you see that store upstairs? They have the cutest shoes¡ª¡±
I cut in, giving her a look. ¡°We¡¯re on a schedule. No shopping detours.¡±
She pouted but grabbed her bag. ¡°Fine, fine.¡± Then, turning back to her friends, she waved dramatically. ¡°Catch you later, guys. Try not to miss me too much!¡±
The third person in my group, however, had a slightly different story. She was already eighteen and had taken the Beyonder¡¯s entrance test once¡ªbut failed. So, I wasn¡¯t sure what her family was getting out of the training, she couldn¡¯t take the exam a second time. Naturally, I wasn¡¯t in the position to ask and didn¡¯t care enough.
After picking up Louvel and Placid, we arrived at our third destination¡ªa mansion that dwarfed the previous two in grandeur and significance.This wasn¡¯t just any opulent estate; this was the Qi Mansion. Its very name carried weight, a symbol of power and influence that extended beyond just their wealth. The Qi family was one of the most powerful families in the world, and their reputation wasn¡¯t built on mere money or connections. It was their exclusive meta-nature that truly set them apart: ¡®The Logos.¡¯
The Logos was more than just a meta nature, it was a legacy. Each individual in the Qi family had their own unique manifestation of this meta-nature, said to be tied to a defining characteristic of their soul¡ªa "character" they were born with.
The family had a saying, one that resonated with me despite the complexity of their methods:
¡°Every person in the world is born with a character, and it is the essence of their story.¡±
The Qi family lived and breathed this mantra, monopolizing the Logos to such an extent that it became a symbol of their identity and influence. Of course, no one could predict with certainty what meta-nature a child would develop, but the Qi family had perfected ways to stack the odds in their favor, they employed methods that straddled the line between inspiration and morally questionable. The first involved paying an exorbitant price to the so-called Lord of Changes¡ªthat what he liked to call himself ¡ªhe could exchange a person¡¯s inherent meta nature with someone else. The second method was equally ambitious: divining the birth of a child with the highest probability of developing The Logos and then offering to "adopt"¡ªor outright purchase¡ªthe child from their parents. It was also the most employed method.
Then there were other, more extreme measures as well. For example, reading a person¡¯s fate to pinpoint their potential meta-nature or even looking decades into the future to confirm the birth of a Logos-compatible individual. But these methods came with steep costs¡ªcosts so enormous that even the wealthiest families rarely considered them worthwhile.
After all, unless the meta-nature in question was truly heaven-defying, no one was willing to pay such a hefty price for a guarantee.
Naturally, the Qi family wasn¡¯t alone in monopolizing a specific meta-nature or perfecting methods to cultivate it. Many powerful families and organizations did the same, ensuring rare and potent meta remained tied to their bloodlines or controlled through other means.
As for The Logos meta-nature, it was a Hive-type meta with extraordinary potential for growth. Users of The Logos were born with at least one character, a core building block of their power.
Through significant milestones or personal breakthroughs, they could gain additional characters. These characters could then combine to form a phrase, which granted even greater abilities. A phrase could evolve further into a personal Quote, a unique and powerful manifestation of their will. The strongest and most disciplined users could eventually craft a Poem, the pinnacle of The Logos, capable of shaping reality itself.
The most powerful member of the Qi family, known as The Weave, was rumored to have transcended all known limits of this meta-nature. In my past cycles, I¡¯d heard whispers that she could rival beings like The Crown, Limitless, or even Cheat Engine, individuals considered untouchable by most standards. It was said that The Weave had transformed her characters into a literal essay¡ªa feat so extraordinary it bordered on legend. However, no one knew how many secret hands she had in the background to achieve this feat, or how many fates she was calculating at any given time.
As for Aria, the person I was here to mentor, I found her character and demeanor pleasant, perhaps shaped by her upbringing in such a large and influential family. She had many siblings, which likely tempered the ego often associated with the privileged. Still, her story was not without its shadows.
She had once mentioned, almost casually, that she was "bought" by the Qi family when she was just two years old. Twenty years ago, the Qi family¡¯s patriarch had paid an astronomical price to divine the births of children with extraordinary potential¡ªthose who might manifest phrases or even Quotes at a young age. Seven of Aria¡¯s siblings had lived up to these high expectations, each earning their place in the family¡¯s legacy.
Aria, however, was considered a disappointment.
Which I couldn¡¯t really understand. Because Aria wasn¡¯t someone born with a single or double character. Instead, she also had a phrase like rest of her siblings¡ªa rare and beautiful one that should have been celebrated:
"Ink flows where thought cannot reach."
To me, it was a breathtaking expression of potential, but in the Qi family, beauty and artistry weren¡¯t always enough. What mattered most was living up to the relentless weight of expectation.
Louvel was driving his car, as he refused to travel in what he called "dirty" buses and trains. Placid and I sat in the passenger seats, and honestly, I didn¡¯t mind. If it saved us time, I wasn¡¯t about to complain. By the time we pulled up to the gates of the Qi Mansion, Aria was already waiting outside. She stood casually, dressed in black tights, shorts, and a matching top. The back door of the car opened automatically as we rolled to a stop, and Aria slipped in smoothly, nodding a quick greeting.
¡°Hey, Aria!¡± Placid greeted.
Aria didn¡¯t even have time to respond before Louvel slammed the accelerator, and the car lurched forward like a rocket. All of us were thrown back into our seats as the engine roared.
¡°Seriously, Louvel,¡± Placid muttered, her tone a mix of annoyance and unease. ¡°Can¡¯t you drive a little slower, like a normal human being?¡±
¡°Slow is boring,¡± Louvel replied, grinning. ¡°Besides, this car was built for speed.¡±
¡°It¡¯s also built for not killing your passengers,¡± I added dryly, gripping the door handle for support. ¡°Might want to keep that in mind.¡±
Aria, remarkably calm despite the turbulence, adjusted her seatbelt. ¡°If we crash, Louvel, I¡¯m taking it out of your hide.¡±
Louvel glanced at her through the rearview mirror, smirking. ¡°Relax, I¡¯ve got this under control.¡±
Placid huffed, crossing her arms. ¡°Control? You¡¯re one sharp turn away from us flying out the windows.¡±
¡°Then buckle up,¡± Louvel shot back, clearly enjoying himself.
¡°Already did!¡± Placid snapped, leaning her head back against the seat. ¡°And if you wreck this car, I¡¯m not helping you explain it to your parents.¡±
¡°I wouldn¡¯t expect you to,¡± Louvel said breezily, his grin widening. ¡°I¡¯d just pin it on North.¡±
¡°Why am I suddenly involved?¡± I asked, glaring at him.
Louvel¡¯s grin didn¡¯t falter as he steered us onto the highway, ¡°Because you¡¯re our mentor. Aren¡¯t you supposed to take responsibility for your students?¡±
There was no need to bicker with them. I stayed quiet, squinting out the window, though the scenery blurred by the speed of the car didn¡¯t really give me anything to focus on.
Placid, her attention now shifting, glanced at Aria. ¡°Where were you? I couldn¡¯t get through to you for two days. You just disappeared.¡±
Aria replied calmly, glazing at Louvel, feeling slightly irritated. ¡°I was in Japan. My cousin¡¯s birthday party. It was a last minute plan and I barely had time to grab my luggage before heading here. I just got back late last night.¡±
Placid raised an eyebrow. ¡°You couldn¡¯t have given me a heads-up? I was starting to think you ghosted me.¡±
Aria shrugged, unfazed. ¡°I was busy,¡± she said casually. ¡°You know how it is when you¡¯ve got six cousins scattered across the world. Plans get... complicated.¡±
Placid huffed, leaning back in her seat. ¡°Fine, fine. Just don¡¯t do that again. It was hard to survive my own boredom without you.¡±
¡°Anyway, ¡ Japan? It¡¯s been two months since I was last there. How was it?¡± Placid paused, curious. ¡°Did you visit Tokyo?¡±
Aria nodded casually, ¡°I was in Tokyo. It was my cousin¡¯s twenty-first birthday. We rented out a rooftop venue. The view was breathtaking¡ªthe whole city lit up like something out of a dream.¡±
Placid¡¯s eyes widened with envy. ¡°That sounds amazing,¡± she said, practically sighing. ¡°And here I am, stuck being grounded last week because I accidentally destroyed one of Dad¡¯s tennis courts.¡±
Louvel snorted, glancing at her in the rearview mirror. ¡°How do you accidentally destroy a tennis court? Hit the ball too hard?¡±
¡°No,¡± Placid shot back, her tone defensive. ¡°I was practicing with my meta, and I might have misjudged my energy calculation. The court¡¯s surface was no match for the blast.¡±
Aria raised an eyebrow, unimpressed. ¡°You mean you got carried away showing off.¡±
Placid crossed her arms, pouting. ¡°That¡¯s not true. It was an accident.¡±
¡°Sure,¡± Louvel teased, grinning. ¡°And I bet your dad was thrilled.¡±
Placid groaned, flopping back in her seat. ¡°He lectured me for an hour. Then he had me help oversee the repair crew for ¡®educational purposes.¡¯ Honestly, I think he just wanted to make an example of me.¡±
I shook my head at Placid¡¯s chatter. She had a remarkable talent for proving all my thoughts about her right in real time. The girl could go from gushing about rooftop parties in Tokyo to recounting her tennis-court demolition saga without missing a beat.
Meanwhile, the car zigzagged through the North District streets at breakneck speed, and I clung to the door handle like a lifeline. Still, the smooth growl of the sports car¡¯s engine was oddly satisfying, almost enough to make up for Louvel¡¯s reckless driving. Eventually, we entered an older part of the district. The architecture here stood in stark contrast to the sleek modernity we¡¯d left behind, with its preserved facades and a distinct sense of history. Thankfully, the car slowed down and finally came to a complete stop in front of a corner building. I glanced outside. There, tucked into the corner, was a fighting gym¡ªowned by Louvel¡¯s family.
Over the next twenty minutes, we got ready. I swapped out my sweater and jeans for sweatpants and a T-shirt. Louvel wore athletic shorts and a fitted tank top. Placid changed into a simple black sports bra with matching leggings, tying her hair back into a no-nonsense ponytail. Aria, meanwhile, took her time and finally emerged in a headband, workout skirt and a cropped top.
The gym was well-equipped, its space filled with weights, punching bags, and state-of-the-art training gear. A few people were scattered around, working out, but we headed straight to the back, where a private arena awaited us.
Once ready, we started with the basics: light stretches and a jog around the ring to warm up.
I didn¡¯t waste time with one-on-one guidance or any sort of hand-holding nonsense. I wasn¡¯t their trainer; I was just here to make sure they understood what it meant to fight before an overwhelming opponent. Louvel, Aria, and Placid each claimed a corner of the arena, their eyes tracking my movements like predators sizing up prey.
Louvel was the first to step forward, flipping a couple of gold coins between his fingers with practiced ease. His Hive meta-nature was the GhostWriter,
And then there was his title: The Rich Guy. Yes, that was his actual title. I wish I were joking.
However, Louvel was still a rookie with his title. I knew of someone in the future who could literally bribe reality itself with their meta-nature, and do a lot more unthinkable.
Besides, I didn¡¯t expect much more from The GhostWriter in the first place. After all, it wasn¡¯t the kind of meta-nature that turned everyone into the Protagonist or the Savior. But that didn¡¯t mean Louvel¡¯s powers were weak¡ªfar from it. In fact, they were more practical than most flashy abilities, rooted in the raw, unyielding power of wealth itself. Simply put, The more money he carried, the stronger he became¡ªhis offense and defense tied directly to his fortune, making his riches his ultimate weapon. Of course, there was a catch: every loss came at a literal cost. Each defeat chipped away at his wealth, and in Louvel¡¯s world, losing money wasn¡¯t just a blow to his ego¡ªit was a threat to his very power.
¡°Alright, team meeting,¡± Louvel said smoothly, jerking his chin toward the edge of the ring.
Aria raised an eyebrow but didn¡¯t argue, jogging over to join him. Placid, on the other hand, sighed dramatically. ¡°You¡¯re really doing this? I thought we were just supposed to hit stuff.¡±
¡°Keep that attitude, and you¡¯ll get wiped first,¡± Louvel shot back.
¡°I won¡¯t go easy,¡± I called out, leaning casually against the ropes, watching them. ¡°Better make this good.¡±
After breaking, Louvel clenched the gold coins tightly in his fist, the metal shimmering as it began to melt. The liquid gold flowed seamlessly over his hand, solidifying into an out of game, golden gauntlet. The more money he used, the heavier the force behind his punches became.
Without missing a beat, he charged forward, his steps purposeful. With each stride, his fist swelled, growing impossibly large until it filled my field of vision. He was good¡ªbetter than most, with a natural aptitude for fighting that paired well with his Hive meta-nature. But good wasn¡¯t enough. Not against someone like me. I could read his movements as easily as flipping through a book. Instead of dodging, I adjusted my posture, locking his arm mid-swing. With a swift, deliberate motion, I slammed my elbow into his face. The impact was solid, and one of the gold coins in his hand slipped free, clattering to the floor.Love what you''re reading? Discover and support the author on the platform they originally published on.
The coin spun in a wide arc before vanishing into thin air, as if it had never existed¡ªdispersed to wherever The GhostWriter sent it when wealth was lost.
Louvel staggered back, his gauntlet cracking slightly. He gritted his teeth and steadied himself. He adjusted his stance, but his golden fists had lost some of their luster.
¡°You¡¯re not going to win just by chipping away at me,¡± Louvel said, his voice laced with irritation but underpinned by confidence. ¡°Money¡¯s the only thing I never run out of.¡±
¡°Is that so?¡± I smirked, cracking my knuckles.
Louvel responded with a sharp whistle, and three more coins materialized between his fingers, each glinting brilliantly in the dim light. With a flick of his wrist, the coins spun rapidly before launching toward me like bullets, slicing through the air with a piercing whistle. I sidestepped the first, leaning back to dodge the second, but the third coin curved midair, its trajectory shifting toward my chest.
Clever.
I ducked low, letting the coin skim past with inches to spare, though it took every ounce of focus to pull it off. Louvel wasn¡¯t just hurling coins recklessly¡ªeach projectile moved with precision, an extension of his will. The gold coins weren¡¯t just weapons; they were guided by intent, their strength amplified by the wealth they represented.
Like the saying goes, money moves.
The split-second distraction was all Louvel needed. By the time I regained my footing, he was already closing in, his fist glowing brighter as it absorbed another coin. The golden gauntlet swelled in size, its surface hardening as he brought it down in a crushing arc aimed at my shoulder. I planted my feet and twisted my body, catching the strike on my forearm. Pain shot up my arm as the force reverberated through me, but I held firm. My counterattack was immediate¡ªI swept his legs out from under him with a quick low kick, sending him crashing to the ground.
One, two and three¡
The coins fell off his body almost magically, clinking as they scattered across the mat like a cascade of golden rain. It was comical¡ªlike watching a game character lose a life and drop their loot.
It almost made me chuckle. I always liked fighting him because every time I would land a hit, money would consequently fall off his body, making a sound that was pleasant to my ears. He was the best fighting partner anyone could ask for. Louvel grunted but recovered quickly, rolling to his feet with an agility that belied his size. Without missing a beat, another coin appeared between his fingers. This time, with a flick of his wrist, it disintegrated into a fine golden mist that swirled around him like a protective aura. The air shimmered faintly, bending the light in subtle ripples as though he¡¯d summoned an invisible barrier.
¡°Not bad,¡± I said, adjusting my stance, keeping my focus locked on him. ¡°But I¡¯m not paying for damages if this place turns into Fort Aria.¡±
Louvel smirked, his confidence undeterred. ¡°Don¡¯t worry. You¡¯re not getting past this one.¡±
Suddenly, out of the corner of my eye, Placid¡¯s leg appeared, swinging toward my face. She had launched herself into the air, her leggings and skin-tight top emphasizing her short yet athletic frame. Despite being only five-foot-two, every muscle in her body was meticulously defined. She moved with precision and agility, her knee descending toward my head like a hammer.
Did she really think my meta was just for show?
Ever since the bloody mutated rat incident, I¡¯d started relying on my meta perception a lot more, to not become a prey to the same accident again.
At the moment, my field of perception was alive with vibrant rainbow colors, like swirling clouds of multi-colored patches floating through the air. While it didn¡¯t reveal exactly what kind of attack was coming, it allowed me to anticipate where the next strike would land. Without it, I wouldn¡¯t have stood a chance against the three of them at once. As her knee came closer, I didn¡¯t flinch. My hand shot up, grabbing her ankle mid-air. My smile shifted into a smirk as I tightened my grip. With a swift, decisive motion, I slammed her into the floor as hard as I could
My strength wasn¡¯t superhuman, but it was very well at the peak of human capability through relentless practice. Against someone like Placid, who relied on her speed and agility, I knew exactly how to counter. But before I could fully relish the moment, Placid vanished into the floor in a flash of light, reappearing ten meters away.
She landed awkwardly, her body tumbling forward before she collapsed heavily onto the mat. Even with her teleportation, the space didn¡¯t magically erase the momentum from my throw. Gritting her teeth, she pushed herself back to her feet, her arms trembling slightly from the impact.
Placid¡¯s teleportation had its limits. Each jump required a recharge, drawing energy directly from her body. Her meta-nature converted calories into the power she needed to leap across space. It made me wonder¡ªif she ever decided to bulk up, could she teleport more than a few meters? But teleportation wasn¡¯t her only trick. Placid could channel the same energy that fueled her jumps into objects, charging them until they detonated like miniature energy bombs. This made her far more dangerous than she looked. Her petite frame and cheerful demeanor might fool most people, but her abilities marked her as the only Unique-type meta in the group¡ªand one of the most versatile.
Not wanting to give her time to recover, I charged forward.
But Louvel wasn¡¯t going to let me have it easy. Taking advantage of my distraction, he sneaked upon me and swung another golden fist. I ducked under the punch, driving my palm into his chest. His golden aura absorbed the blow, but faint ripples spread across its surface, signaling the strain. He tried to counter with a sharp knee strike, but I spun to the side, driving my elbow into his ribs.
Another ripple spread across his golden aura, and one more gold coin fell free off his body, clinking against the floor before rolling away.
I couldn¡¯t help but chuckle again at the satisfying sound.
Before I could press my advantage, Aria finally made her move. She ran in a wide circle, building momentum. I noticed the subtle glance she exchanged with Louvel and Placid. Their eyes connected for just a moment, and it was enough. They¡¯d decided to cooperate.
From her shadow, Aria pulled out what looked like a heavy club.
Meanwhile, Placid rummaged in her pockets, producing small coat buttons that began to glow ominously as she charged them with energy. The buttons emitted a faint whine, growing brighter as they filled with destructive power.
Placid hurled the glowing buttons toward me with deadly precision.
They whistled through the air, aimed directly at my head. I could feel the heat radiating from them, knowing full well they¡¯d explode on impact.
My perception was filled with blood red, there was no escape.
My gaze hardened as the fight turned serious as I waited for the right moment to take action.
¡°Are you sure you can handle this, North?¡± Aria baited, her smirk barely visible beneath the shadows cast by the overhead lights.
The practice arena was a huge, open space designed to contain even the most chaotic powers, with reinforced walls, and adaptive barriers.
¡°Don¡¯t hold back,¡± I replied, my tone calm but challenging. ¡°I¡¯d hate for this to be over too quickly.¡±
The glowing buttons came hurtling toward me, their whine escalating to a sharp, high-pitched scream. The faint shimmer of energy around them distorted the air like a heatwave, and every instinct screamed at me to move. I had to act.
Placid couldn¡¯t control the object''s direction as well as Louvel could with his mind. I took advantage of the fact.
With a deep breath, I jumped right in the air at the last possible second, doing a backflip. The buttons missed their target, embedding themselves in the wall behind with a deafening boom. The force of the explosion sent shockwaves through the arena, causing loose debris to scatter and a thick plume of smoke to rise. Aria was already on me before the smoke cleared, her shadow-forged club swinging down with crushing force. I pivoted sharply, narrowly dodging the first strike. The weapon slammed into the ground, creating a spider web of damage where I¡¯d been standing.
¡°Impressive teamwork,¡± I muttered, catching my breath as I darted back.
Aria¡¯s darted to catch my movements, as she swung the heavy club again, this time faster.
I sidestepped and countered with a quick jab to her shoulder, throwing her off balance.
Placid was relentless. While Aria pressed her close-quarters assault, Placid unleashed another barrage of glowing buttons, focusing her energy on blasts, their high-pitched whine growing louder with each throw. This time, they exploded mid-air, creating a dazzling display of destruction that boxed me in.
I had no choice. I used intangibility, letting the concussive force of the explosions pass harmlessly through me.
As the explosion cleared, Louvel seized the opportunity, he seemed to know I wouldn''t be affected by the explosion and charged straight at me, his golden fists glowing with power. His punches were quick, calculated, but predictable. I ducked under the first swing and sidestepped the second, planting a quick jab to his ribs. The impact rippled through his golden armor but didn¡¯t faze him. He grinned, the glow intensifying as his strength increased.
¡°Not bad,¡± I muttered, darting back as Placid suddenly hurled another charged button in my direction.
It took her a couple of seconds to prepare another set. The charged button exploded against the ground where I¡¯d been standing, sending up a wave of searing air. Before I could react, she was already moving, launching a rapid barrage of smaller, precise bursts of attacks to cut off my escape routes. I spun through the flames, narrowly avoiding them, and closed the gap between us. Placid¡¯s grin faltered as I grabbed her wrist, twisting it just enough to disrupt her concentration. The flames fizzled out, and I used the momentum to toss her in the air toward Louvel, both crashed down, heavily.
¡°Focus, Placid!¡± Louvel snapped, pushing her aside.
Placid grunted angrily, trying to jump back up. But before I could capitalize on their misstep, Aria struck from sideways. The baseball bat in her hand whipped toward my side in a blur, forcing me to twist and block with my forearm. The impact sent a sharp jolt through my arm, and her follow-up strike came too fast for me to dodge completely. The bat caught my shoulder, pins and needles spread through my entire body, forcing me to stagger back.
Aria smirked. Her ability to pull items from her and other¡¯s shadows made her unpredictable¡ªher arsenal was only limited by what she and her opponents had ever used.
Pain was fleeting. As I retreated, she reached into the shadow behind herself again, this time withdrawing a pair of chains with the proficiency of someone who had used them hundreds of times. She hurled them at my legs, the dark metal glowing with an eerie luster. I leapt into the air, the chains snapping shut on empty ground, and retaliated with a sharp kick aimed at her wrist. The chains flew from her grip, clattering across the floor. Aria growled, diving into a shadow to retrieve another weapon, but Louvel was already upon me again. This time, his gauntlets had morphed into a massive golden hammer, its weight causing the floor to groan as he dragged them. He swung with a roar, forcing me to roll to the side. The hammer struck the ground with a deafening crash, leaving a crater where I¡¯d been standing.
¡°You¡¯re persistent,¡± I said, darting behind him and delivering a sharp kick to his back.
Louvel stumbled forward, but Placid was ready, she teleported almost behind my back and was about to hit me with another recharged button.
I had no time to evade the incoming flames. In a split-second decision, I again shifted into being intangible.
As the fire passed harmlessly through my incorporeal form, I felt a fleeting sensation of warmth before the flames dissipated against the far wall behind me. Using my intangibility was typically reserved for emergencies, but in this situation, I had no qualms about employing it. The people here already knew nothing about me, and they always assumed intangibility was my primary meta-nature. There was no need to hide my abilities in front of this small crowd.
Shifting back to my tangible state, I took a moment to assess my opponent. The surprise on their face was evident.
Placid gaped. ¡°That¡¯s cheating!¡±
I sniggered back. ¡°No such thing in a fight.¡±
This was no ordinary sparring session¡ªit was an all-out brawl.
As the three of them pressed their attack, I shifted tactics. Using my meta perception, I timed my movements perfectly, weaving through their combined strikes with precision. Louvel¡¯s fist grazed my shoulder, Aria¡¯s spear missed by inches, and Placid¡¯s buttons exploded harmlessly behind me.
I finally saw my opening.
With a swift, calculated move, I grabbed Aria¡¯s bat mid-strike and yanked her forward, using her momentum to send her sprawling into Louvel. The two collided, tumbling to the ground in a heap. While Placid was recharging her teleport, I closed the distance between us. She stumbled back, throwing another button and almost disappearing, but I deflected it with a sharp kick, sending it careening into the far wall where it exploded harmlessly.
I pulled her half disappeared body out of the portal by her leg before delivering a kick to her side, sending her sprawling across the floor. I showed no mercy while fighting to any.
Only when the three were beaten up good and I had emptied my frustration did I raise my hand to stop.
¡°Let¡¯s end this for today,¡± I said, taking a deep breath.
My gaze swept over the three of them as they picked themselves up, their breaths ragged and their expressions a mix of frustration and grudging respect.
Louvel dusted off his clothes, and all the gold covering his hands and pockets disappeared into nothingness as agreed to defeat. ¡°You¡¯re a real pain.¡±
I agreed, he had lost a lot of gold coins in the fight.
Aria wiped sweat from her brow, her shadow weapon dissolving back into the floor. ¡°I hate how good you are at this,¡± she muttered.
Finally, Placid stumbled back up, ¡°Okay, fine. You win¡ªthis time.¡±
I took another deep breath, feeling the exhaustion in every part of my body, though I tried not to let it show. My arms and shoulders ached, numb from all the hits I¡¯d taken. The soreness was biting, but I dragged myself over to the cooler and grabbed a drink. The cold water felt like a small relief in my stomach. I was thoroughly exhausted.
Placid appeared beside me with a sudden pop, reaching for an energy drink. She cracked it open and glared at me. ¡°You don¡¯t have to kick me so hard, you know,¡± she grumbled, her voice laced with irritation. ¡°It hurts! And it leaves red and blue bruises all over my skin. How many times do I have to tell you that?¡±
I raised an eyebrow, crossing my arms. ¡°It¡¯s a sparring match, not a tea party. Did you expect me to pull my punches?¡±
¡°Yes!¡± she shot, ¡°At least a little! I¡¯m not a punching bag.¡±
She glanced back at Louvel and Aria, who were still catching their breath and wiping off sweat on the other side of the gym. ¡°Why don¡¯t you hit Aria like you hit me and Louvel? What? You got a soft spot for her or something?¡±
I rolled my eyes, leaning against the wall. ¡°It¡¯s not about a soft spot. Aria actually blocks my hits instead of whining about them.¡±
Placid gasped dramatically, clutching her chest. ¡°Wow, the audacity! So now I¡¯m whiny?¡±
¡°I¡¯m just saying,¡± I replied, shrugging. ¡°You spend more time complaining about bruises than focusing on the fight.¡±
¡°To be honest,¡± I crossed my arms and leveling a look at Placid, ¡°I¡¯ve fought a lot of people who can teleport or disappear. Your ability is one of the strongest out there, but honestly? You¡¯re the worst at using it.¡±
Her grin faltered, blinking.
¡°You don¡¯t play to your strengths,¡± I continued, ¡°Today, instead of rushing in to fight me up close, you could¡¯ve grabbed me and teleported somewhere I couldn¡¯t fight back¡ªlike the roof or halfway across the gym. Hell, you could¡¯ve stayed at a distance and hit me from a block away if you¡¯d thought it through.¡±
Placid¡¯s gaze dropped slightly, her hands tightening around the now-empty energy drink can.
¡°But no. You keep rushing in like it¡¯s a boxing match. You¡¯re making things harder for yourself, not me. I can¡¯t teach you how to use your power creatively. That¡¯s on you. Start thinking like someone who¡¯s got an edge, not like someone trying to prove something.¡±
Her expression stiffened, and I caught the faint sheen in her eyes before she vanished with a sharp pop, leaving the air around me tense and heavy. The empty energy drink can was still in my hand, and I sighed, glancing at the spot she¡¯d been moments before. Maybe I¡¯d pushed too hard, but she needed to hear it. Didn¡¯t she? We called off training for the day. In my eyes, it had been enough. The three of them were improving quickly, and besides, they already had personal coaches to train them daily. Even though we had five more hours left of the eight I¡¯d set aside for today, I didn¡¯t see the point in dragging it out further.
After the fight, we cleaned up, changed into casual clothes, and headed to a nearby caf¨¦. We found a small table by the window and sat down, the energy much more relaxed.
I took a sip of my coffee and glanced at Louvel. ¡°How much money did you lose today?¡±
Louvel shrugged, swirling his drink. ¡°Pocket change.¡±
I rolled my eyes inwardly. Then why don¡¯t you give me some of your money as compensation? I¡¯d be eternally grateful.
Placid leaned forward, ¡°Pocket change? Like enough to buy a bike or enough to buy a house?¡±
¡°Does it matter?¡± Louvel replied, raising an eyebrow. ¡°I¡¯m still richer than all of you combined.¡±
Aria stirred her tea, her tone flat. ¡°Maybe if you fought smarter, you wouldn¡¯t lose so much.¡±
Louvel smirked. ¡°Smarter? I¡¯m pretty sure I was the MVP today.¡±
¡°You landed hits,¡± I said, deadpan, ¡°and then landed on the mat. Many times in fact. Big difference.¡±
Laughter rippled through the table, Louvel shaking his head.
I glanced at Aria, the question that had been nagging at me finally surfacing. ¡°What¡¯s your plan for the future, Aria?¡±
She lifted her gaze, her tone flat a little defensive. ¡°Why?¡±
My God, did I ask you to give up your dog or something? I thought, but kept my expression neutral. ¡°Just curious.¡±
Louvel and Placid, sensing the shift in conversation, turned their attention to her as well, their curiosity matching mine.
Aria hesitated, her fingers lightly tapping the side of her cup. ¡°I don¡¯t know,¡± Her eyes drifted toward the window, as if the answer might be out there somewhere. ¡°The great-grandmother hasn¡¯t decided anything for me yet.¡±
Louvel raised an eyebrow, leaning forward slightly. ¡°Decided? Sounds like you¡¯re not the one making the call.¡±
Aria shrugged, her tone indifferent but with a flicker of something deeper beneath. ¡°That¡¯s how it works in my family. She decides where I¡¯m needed. Lately, there¡¯s talk of me overseeing a branch¡ probably in the far outer systems.¡±
Placid blinked, sitting up straighter. ¡°The far outer systems? That sounds... intense. What, like some mining operation or shipping hub?¡±
¡°Something like that,¡± Aria replied, her tone noncommittal as her gaze returned to the table.
The Weave. Aria¡¯s great-grandmother meticulously controlled her family and their futures. The Weave likely already had a plan for Aria, one that could either maximize Aria potential or polish her ability out whatever made her special. It was just a matter of time before Aria was folded into it.
Placid leaned forward, her elbows resting on the table, her expression caught between sympathy and curiosity. ¡°Honestly it sounds lonely. Do you at least know anyone out there? Friend? Boyfriend?¡±
Aria shrugged, ¡°Not really. You know how it is¡ªpeople who leave to settle in other systems don¡¯t exactly look back fondly on Earth. Most of them think we¡¯re a backward society and make it a point to distance themselves.¡±
Placid frowned at the topic. ¡°Seriously! I mean Earth was, like, the cradle of civilization or whatever. Don¡¯t they have any pride in that?¡±
Aria let out a dry laugh, shaking her head. ¡°Pride? Sure, until they¡¯re a few light-years away. Then it¡¯s all about proving they¡¯re ¡®better¡¯ than the planet they came from. Nobody wants to be tied to what they see as the past.¡±
Louvel leaned back in his chair, smirking. ¡°Makes sense. It¡¯s always easier to talk trash about home when you¡¯re not there to deal with it.¡±
We all nodded silently, understanding Aria¡¯s sentiment. She suddenly became quite pitiful in my eyes. Luckily, I didn¡¯t have to deal with those kinds of expectations. Coming from a humble background with an equally modest meta-nature had its perks. I chuckled to myself at the thought.
Our light moment was interrupted by the sudden buzz of Louvel¡¯s phone. He pulled it out, frowning as he glanced at the screen. ¡°It¡¯s Adam,¡± he muttered, swiping to answer. Bringing the phone to his ear, he leaned back slightly. ¡°Hey, man, what¡¯s up?¡±
For a moment, the light-hearted atmosphere around the table dimmed as we watched his expression change. His usual laid-back demeanor suddenly stiffened, his brows furrowing as his lips tightened into a grim line.
¡°Wait, slow down,¡± he said sharply, sitting upright. ¡°What do you mean someone stole your girlfriend?¡±
Placid nearly spat out her drink. ¡°Excuse me, what?¡±
Louvel held up a finger to silence her, his focus still on the call. ¡°No, no, start from the beginning. What exactly happened?¡±
Aria and I exchanged a glance, both unsure whether to laugh at the absurdity of the situation or feel bad.
¡°What does that even mean¡ª¡®stole¡¯?¡± Placid whispered, her voice tinged with disbelief. ¡°Is she a wallet?¡±
Perhaps she¡¯d been kidnapped¡ªsome people really don¡¯t know how to communicate clearly, and words like ¡°stole¡± could be taken the wrong way.
"Where are you now?" Louvel''s voice had dropped into something serious, his carefree tone replaced with sharp urgency. "I''m coming now. Don''t do anything stupid, Adam."
He hung up, his jaw clenched as he stood abruptly, shoving his phone back into his pocket.
"What happened?" Placid asked with genuine concern, at least from what I could tell.
Louvel ran a hand through his hair, clearly trying to stay composed. ¡°Adam¡¯s girlfriend was kidnapped,¡± he said, his voice clipped. ¡°Some gang grabbed her right off the street. He¡¯s hiding nearby and has no idea what to do.¡±
Aria raised an eyebrow, her tone calm and direct. "And he called you because...?"
Louvel turned to Aria, frustration flashing in his eyes. ¡°Because he trusts me to help him! I can¡¯t just leave him hanging.¡±
Aria¡¯s expression didn¡¯t waver. ¡°I didn¡¯t mean to question his choice. I¡¯m asking if you have a plan.¡±
Placid immediately stood up, ¡°You¡¯re not going alone, are you?¡±
Louvel hesitated, his gaze shifting between her and the rest of us. Finally, he said, ¡°I could use some backup.¡± His voice softened as he looked at each of us. ¡°Look, I know it¡¯s asking a lot, but he¡¯s a good friend. I can¡¯t handle this alone. North, Aria, Placid¡ªwill you come with me?¡±
Aria leaned back in her chair, crossing her arms as she eyed him skeptically. ¡°Running into a situation blind doesn¡¯t sound like the smartest move,¡± she said flatly.
¡°I¡¯m not asking for a full-scale battle,¡± Louvel replied quickly. ¡°Just help me assess the situation. We won¡¯t fight unless we have to.¡±
Placid glanced at me, then back at Louvel, a mischievous glint in her eye. ¡°If North¡¯s in, I¡¯m in. We need someone to take the blame if this all goes sideways.¡± She winked at me.
I rolled my eyes, also leaning back in my chair.
But then Aria turned her attention to me too, her stare weighing on me like a silent demand.
Why is everyone looking at me? I thought. Honestly, if they wanted to go off without me, I¡¯d be perfectly fine with that. They could handle this, right? I could go home, catch up on some much-needed sleep, maybe even spend some time with Jade. That plan sounded infinitely better than diving into whatever mess Louvel had found.
¡°North?¡± Louvel eyes practically begged for my agreement.
I sighed, rubbing the back of my neck. ¡°Fine,¡± I muttered. ¡°But if this turns into a disaster, we¡¯re taking a U-turn.¡±
Louvel¡¯s face lit up with relief, a grin spreading across his face. ¡°As you say.¡±
Rich people are weird, I concluded silently. They even manage to get their girlfriends stolen¡ªor kidnapped, depending on their vocabulary. Like, how does that even happen? Do they put up a sign? ¡°Priceless Girlfriend, Handle With Care.¡±
And here I was, dragged into their drama like some kind of discount hero-for-hire.
At least Placid seemed to be enjoying this. She was practically bouncing on her heels, probably already imagining herself as the star of some high-octane rescue mission.
Aria, on the other hand, looked as unflappable as ever
We left our half-drunk coffees behind, and Louvel¡¯s car once again tore down the road at a speed that made my stomach churn. With his daddy¡¯s money, he could probably buy off the police¡ªor, hell, the entire department. The guy didn¡¯t even pretend to care about breaking every traffic law in existence. Honestly, if he ran someone over, I half-expected him to shrug it off with a ¡°They¡¯ll send the bill.¡± I stared out the window, watching the world blur by, the chaotic energy of the group settling uncomfortably in my gut. They weren¡¯t the best company¡ªtoo reckless, too self-centered. Yet here I was, riding shotgun in a rich kid¡¯s car, dragged into another mess I hadn¡¯t asked for.
The realization hit me like a sucker punch: every time I stepped out of the house, trouble found me.
Whether it was a minor inconvenience or some catastrophic disaster, chaos seemed to have me on speed dial. It was almost funny in a dark, ironic way. Almost.
Did I somehow become the protagonist of some ridiculous story? The thought sent a shiver down my spine. No, no, that can¡¯t be right.
But what if it was?
¡°Fuck,¡± I muttered under my breath, the weight of realization settling in. ¡°I need to stop sticking my nose into other people¡¯s problems.¡±
It wasn¡¯t just a passing thought¡ªit was a decision.Right there and then, I vowed to change. To stay out of the drama. To stay alive. I¡¯d seen enough disasters to know that being the center of chaos was a terrible survival strategy. But as I mulled it over, doubt crept in. Would my words hold any weight? Or was trouble already lurking around the corner, ready to pull me in again?
With one hand on the wheel, Louvel used the other to dial a number. The call connected, and Adam¡¯s voice came through the car¡¯s speakers.
¡°Where are you?¡± Louvel asked.
¡°I¡¯m on Sr. Jones Street,¡± Adam replied quickly. ¡°Hiding behind a tree. I see them. It¡¯s the college rowdy student gang¡ªit has to be. They deliberately kidnapped her to draw us out. I¡¯m watching their movements, but hurry the hell up.¡±
The car surged forward, Louvel slamming his foot on the accelerator. My grip tightened on the door handle as the engine roared, the tires screeching against the asphalt. The sharp turn into a residential area sent a jolt through the car, nearly throwing us against the doors. The rich neighborhood blurred past the windows. The houses here were modest, far smaller than the grand estates we¡¯d passed earlier in the North District. This area looked like it belonged to people who were only rich in name¡ªenough to maintain appearances but not much else.
The car screeched to a halt near a small park, the tires kicking up a thin layer of dust. Before the engine had fully settled, we stepped out.
In the park nearby, Adam was standing under the shadow of a tree. He was a young man around our age, wearing a red hoodie and jeans. A cap pulled low over his face didn¡¯t hide the unmistakable relief that washed over him as Louvel emerged from the car.
¡°Thank God you¡¯re here,¡± Adam said, hurrying over.
I took a moment to size Adam up as he moved closer. He didn¡¯t have the polished, arrogant air of Louvel¡¯s usual crowd. His clothes were simple, worn but clean, his posture unassuming. He looked like just a regular guy. So, Louvel has normal friends too? The thought caught me off guard. It was unexpected, to say the least.
Louvel didn¡¯t waste time with pleasantries. ¡°Where are they? Take me there.¡± he said, his tone curt and impatient.
Adam nodded briskly. ¡°Follow me.¡±
Act 2.22 (Chrysalis)
Adam led us toward what looked like a frat house¡ªI couldn¡¯t think of a better way to describe it. The bass was thumping so hard I could feel it in my teeth from a block away.
"Please tell me we''re not going in there," Placid groaned, eyeing the building like it might be contagious. "I just got these shoes, and I can smell the cheap beer from here."
"Your shoes will survive," Temple deadpanned. "Your faith in humanity, however..."
"Bold of you to assume I had any left," Placid shot back.
"Could be worse," I offered, trying to be optimistic. "Remember that warehouse party last month?"
"Oh god," Placid shuddered. "The one with the guy who thought he could breakdance?"
"And somehow managed to break everything except dance," Temple finished.
Adam turned back to us, his expression a mix of anxiety and irritation. "Can we focus? My girlfriend''s in there!"
"Right, sorry," I said. "Rescue mission. Got it."
We cut through a small park, following Adam around a corner that desperately needed a streetlight. The house loomed ahead¡ªa two-story testament to poor life choices. Music poured out of every window, and the whole place reeked of what I generously decided to call "college experience."
"You know," Louvel spoke up for the first time, his voice carrying that dangerous calm, "I''m starting to think these guys need a lesson in hospitality."
"And basic human decency," Temple added.
"And interior design," Placid muttered, squinting at the neon beer signs in the windows. "This place looks like a sports bar had a midlife crisis."
"Ten bucks says someone''s already thrown up in the garden," Temple muttered, stepping carefully around a suspicious puddle.
"Twenty says it was the garden''s owner," I countered.
"Fifty says it was multiple someones," Placid chimed in, then paused. "Wait, is that a... is that a LAWN CHAIR in the TREE?"
We all looked up. Indeed, there was a lawn chair tangled in the branches.
"Now that''s just impressive," Temple mused.
"Focus, people," Adam hissed, but I caught him doing a double-take at the chair.
The front door was hanging wide open like a mouth mid-yawn, spilling out noise and rgb lights. Inside, it looked like someone had crammed an entire nightclub into a space meant for family dinners. Bodies were everywhere¡ªdancing, stumbling, probably questioning their life choices.
"Hey!" A clearly drunk guy stumbled up to Temple, caught in her pretty looks. "You look like... like someone who can solve a really important debate. Is a hotdog a sandwich?"
Temple stared at him. "Is this really the time¡ª"
"PHILOSOPHICALLY speaking," he insisted, swaying slightly in his attempts to flirt.
"Move," Louvel said quietly, and something in his tone made the guy practically teleport out of our way.
Adam pushed through the crowd like a man on a mission, completely ignoring the chaos around us. The floor made concerning sticky noises with every step. "They''re on the second floor," he called back over the music.
"What?" Placid shouted.
"He said second floor!" Temple yelled back.
"WHAT?"
"OH MY GOD, JUST FOLLOW HIM!"
The living room was pure mayhem. Some guy was attempting to juggle empty beer cans and failing spectacularly. A group on the couch was having what appeared to be a very intense philosophical debate about pizza toppings. Someone had drawn a mustache on their passed-out friend and was now adding a monocle.
"Ah yes," Placid narrated in her best documentary voice, "here we observe the college student in its natural habitat. Note the remarkable lack of survival instincts."
"And basic coordination," Temple added as the would-be juggler dropped another can.
"This," Placid announced, dodging a wildly gesturing arm, "is why I don''t do house parties. Give me a nice, quiet rooftop bar any day."
Temple snorted. "Last month we went to a ''nice, quiet bar'' you started a karaoke riot."
"That was ONE time¡ª"
"You got three different couples to break up during ''Sweet Caroline.''"
"They were weak! Their relationships couldn''t handle my raw emotional delivery!"
"You made the bartender cry."
"He said my rendition of ''Total Eclipse of the Heart'' brought up repressed memories!"
"Guys," Adam interrupted, "can we save the greatest hits for AFTER we rescue my girlfriend?"
A guy nearby overheard and perked up. "Ohhh, you''re here for the hostage situation!" He immediately wilted under our collective glares. "I mean... what hostage situation? I know nothing. I am but a humble drunk person."
"Ladies," I interrupted, "maybe we can reminisce about Placid''s greatest hits later?"
We pushed through the crowd, getting way too many stares for comfort. A group playing cards looked up as we passed, and their expressions made me wish I''d brought pepper spray. Or a hazmat suit.
"Up here," Adam whispered when we reached the stairs, suddenly moving like he was in a stealth video game.
The stairs protested under our weight, making sounds that suggested they''d really rather be lying down.
"Christ," Temple muttered, looking around. "What a mess. I wonder what their parents think of them."
Adam stopped outside a door, his hand hovering over the handle. "They''re in here," he said, voice tight with worry.
Louvel didn''t waste time with subtlety. He shouldered past Adam and threw the door open like he was making an entrance in his own movie.
The scene inside was like a bad crime drama. Six guys around a card table, whiskey bottle center stage, and enough weed smoke to hotbox a cathedral. Adam''s girlfriend sat in the corner, tied up with what looked like a Designer scarf. The ringleader looked up with the kind of grin that made you want to introduce his face to a brick. "Well, well," he drawled, leaning back like he was auditioning for a villain role. "If it isn''t the rescue squad. And you brought friends!" He looked us over like we were items on a menu. "How thoughtful."
"Wow," Placid stage-whispered. "Someone''s been practicing their bad guy lines in the mirror."
Louvel stepped forward, and the temperature in the room seemed to drop. "What do you want?" Each word came out sharp enough to cut.
The guy''s smirk widened as he watched Adam rush to untie his girlfriend. "Chill out, man. We were just having some fun."
"Fun?" Adam whirled around, looking ready to commit murder. "You kidnapped my girlfriend for FUN?"
"Calm down, bro. No one¡¯s hurt. You¡¯re so dramatic. And kidnapped is such an ugly word," the guy chuckled. "We prefer... surprise social gathering."
Adam started toward the table, but Louvel¡¯s hand shot out, stopping him in his tracks. ¡°I¡¯ll handle this,¡± he said coldly.
The leader''s ¡®Darren¡¯ smirk faltered slightly at Louvel''s composure, but he recovered quickly. "Alright, alright," he said, raising his hands in mock surrender. "You want her back? Sure. Let''s make it interesting." He gestured to the cards on the table with exaggerated hospitality. "Have a seat. Play a few hands. Win, and she walks. Lose..." His grin widened. "Well, let''s cross that bridge when we get there."
Placid rolled her eyes from the corner, muttering just loud enough to be heard. ¡°This guy¡¯s watched too many bad gangster movies.¡±
We stayed silent by the door, scanning the room. I noticed Temple''s hands resting at her sides, her fingers dancing lightly over the shadows cast by the table lamp. Always ready, that one.
Louvel stepped forward, and suddenly the room felt different¡ªheavier, like the air itself was holding its breath. He pulled out a chair with deliberate slowness. "Poker, then?" His voice was casual, but there was steel underneath. "Fine by me. But let''s make it worth our time."
"Oh?" Darren leaned forward, intrigued. "What did you have in mind?"
"Simple enough. I win, we walk out of here¡ªall of us. And you leave her alone. Actually, you leave everyone alone." Louvel''s eyes flickered to the other students in the room. "I''ve heard about your little... recruitment tactics."
"Wow, throwing shade and making deals," Placid whispered. "I''m getting emotional whiplash here."
Darren''s eyebrow arched up. "And if you lose?"
Louvel''s smile was sharp enough to cut glass. "I don''t lose."
"Everyone loses eventually," Darren shot back, but something in Louvel''s confidence made him shift in his chair.
That''s when I saw it¡ªa golden number materializing above Darren''s head like a Vegas marquee. Another Ghost Writer meta-user. Well, this just got a whole lot more interesting.
"Hold up," one of Darren''s friends called out. "Are we really letting this rich boy¡ª"
"Shut up, Mark," Darren snapped.
He picked up the deck, shuffling it with smooth, practiced motions. The golden number above his head gleamed faintly as it pulsed in rhythm with his movements. The number held steady at 100, its presence imposing. Everyone in the room noticed it. Immediately, the casual banter from earlier evaporated, replaced by an almost reverent silence as the room shifted focus to the match
"Five-card draw," he announced, his voice carrying that fake-casual tone of someone trying too hard to sound in control. "Winner takes all."
Louvel nodded, his posture deceptively relaxed, but his eyes locked onto Darren like a hawk circling its prey. Around him, a faint golden shimmer rippled through the air, subtle yet heavy. It was his wealth aura¡ªbarely visible but suffocating if you paid attention. At the moment, the all the gold coins he carried, and more he brought along with himself had transformed into a tangible force that seemed to crush the air from the room.Unauthorized duplication: this tale has been taken without consent. Report sightings.
Then things got wild.
The pressure in the room suddenly doubled, then tripled. One by one, people started dropping to their knees like they were being crushed by invisible weights. It was like gravity had decided to play favorites, and anyone without a solid bank account was getting the short end of the stick.
"Jesus," someone wheezed from the floor. "What the hell is this?"
"That would be the weight of compound interest," Placid commented, standing perfectly fine alongside Temple.
Rich kids and their immunity to wealth-based attacks, I swear.
I was barely staying upright myself. Thank god for that lottery win last month¡ªwithout it, I''d be kissing the floor like everyone else. Still, my knees were shaking like I was doing squats with a truck on my shoulders. Finally, I simply squat down, saving myself from the torture.
"Cute party trick," Darren said, still sitting comfortably. Either he was loaded too, or his meta-nature was giving him some serious perks. He dealt the first hand with a flourish that screamed ''I watched too many card-shark movies.'' "So, what are we betting here? Besides pride, of course."
"Pride''s enough for now," Louvel replied. "Unless you''re scared to put that golden number of yours on the line?"
A chorus of "Ooohs" rose from the floor, followed by several groans as the wealth pressure reminded everyone of their current predicament.
The first hand started with Darren''s usual flair. He snapped his cards up with practiced showmanship, his golden number glowing strong at 100. "Watch and learn, rich boy."
One of his lackeys tried to peek at Louvel''s cards. Suddenly, a golden coin materialized and flicked itself at the guy''s forehead. "Ow!"
"Keep your distance," Placid warned, examining her nails. "Unless you want to find out what good beating feels like."
Darren revealed three of a kind, kings. The smile on his face screamed victory¡ªuntil Louvel quietly laid down a pair of aces. The room temperature seemed to drop ten degrees.
The golden 100 above Darren''s head flickered and dropped to 93. For a split second, I saw him flinch as Louvel''s wealth pressure found its first crack in his armor.
"That''s impossible," one of Darren''s friends muttered. "He never loses the first hand."
"First time for everything," Temple commented softly from the shadows. "Including humility."
The second hand raised the stakes. Darren''s leg was bouncing under the table now, and I noticed beads of sweat on his forehead. The wealth pressure that had been bouncing off him was starting to stick.
"Having trouble breathing?" Louvel asked casually, adjusting his cards. "The air gets a bit thin up here in the one percent."
Darren slapped down a straight, diamonds from 4 to 8. "Read ''em and¡ª"
Louvel''s flush hit the table like a guillotine blade. The number plummeted to 84, and Darren''s chair creaked as he suddenly found himself supporting what felt like double his body weight.
"Anyone else feel like gravity''s playing favorites?" Placid mused, watching Darren struggle. "Or is it just the crushing weight of inevitable defeat?"
"Just deal," Darren growled, but his voice had lost its edge. He glanced nervously at his dwindling number, then at his cards, then back at the number.
The third hand was where it all fell apart. Darren''s full house¡ªqueens over tens¡ªwould have been the talk of any normal poker night. But when Louvel revealed a royal flush, even Temple let out a low whistle.
The number crashed to 71, and this time Darren physically buckled. His shoulders hunched as if someone had draped a lead blanket over them. The wealth pressure that had been keeping his followers pinned was finally breaking through his defenses.
¡°You¡¯ve got to be kidding me,¡± Darren muttered, his voice shaking. He stared at the cards as if willing them to change.
Louvel leaned forward, ¡°One more loss like that,¡± he said, his tone sharp enough to cut, ¡°and you won¡¯t just lose this game.¡±
The number above Darren¡¯s head flickered again, dipping erratically between 71 and 65 as if struggling to stay stable. Sweat beaded on his forehead, and his fingers twitched as he gathered the cards for the next hand. The once cocky leader now looked like a cornered animal.
"All in," he declared suddenly, desperation clear in his eyes. His hands shook as he pushed his chips forward, and not just from anger this time¡ªLouvel''s wealth aura was really bearing down on him now.
"You sure?" Louvel asked mildly. He let the implication hang in the air.
"Just. Play. The. Hand." Each word seemed to cost Darren more energy than the last.
The final hand played out like a slow-motion car crash. Darren''s four of a kind¡ªaces, no less¡ªearned an appreciative murmur from the crowd. For a moment, his number stabilized, the crushing pressure easing slightly.
Then Louvel''s straight flush appeared, and everything came crashing down. Literally, in Darren''s case¡ªhe slumped forward, finally feeling the full weight of Louvel''s power as the golden number above Darren¡¯s head plummeted to 53, its glow flickering like a dying bulb.
Immediately, his face went ghostly pale. The room seemed to hold its breath. Darren¡¯s mask of composure shattered as his humiliation hit him like a freight train. The game had spiraled out of his control from the very beginning, and now it was utterly lost. He¡¯d never even considered this outcome, never once thought he could be outmatched.
"That," Temple observed with clinical detachment, "is what rock bottom looks like."
"I think," Louvel said softly, gathering up the cards, "we should talk about that deal we made."
"This can''t be!" Darren roared, his voice cracking with frustration.
In a fit of rage, he flipped the table, sending cards, chips, and a half-empty whiskey bottle crashing to the floor. The sound rang out like a gunshot, and the students around him scattered, flattening themselves against the walls in fear.
"Darren, chill!" one of his friends shouted, but Darren was beyond reason. His eyes locked on Louvel, wild with fury.
"You smug little bastard!" he snarled, lunging forward like a cornered animal.
Louvel didn''t just sidestep¡ªhe emanated a sudden pulse of golden light that made Darren''s movement stutter mid-lunge.
The Golden Aura of Influence shimmered around Louvel like a second skin, and for a split second, doubt flickered across Darren''s face. The room seemed to move in slow motion as Darren, fighting against his own body''s sudden hesitation, careened past Louvel and through the second-floor railing.
A beat of silence passed before Placid let out a low whistle. "Well, that''s one way to make an exit."
Temple folded her arms, glancing over the shattered railing. "He''s alive. Unfortunately."
With a guttural growl, Darren shoved himself upright. The golden number above his head flickered to 49, but something else was happening¡ªhis power truly manifested as ribbons of Golden light erupted from his body, bathing him in a brilliant glow that made him look like a vengeful god.
Then, the very air around him began to ripple with the collective energy of every person who''d ever believed in him. He stormed back up the stairs.
"I''m not done with you!" he bellowed.
My focus was split between the fight and the realization that had just hit me. The pieces finally clicked, and a grin tugged at my lips.
I¡¯d figured it out.
Darren was a Popularity-Powered Hero.
His title was likely something along the lines of Hero of the Crowd. The stronger his audience, the stronger he gets. How fitting¡ªand how foolish.
At the moment, he was running on fumes because he had lost the popularity contest.
Darren had such a strong meta-nature, yet instead of using it for something meaningful, he squandered it. Fighting people he could befriend to gain power? How shortsighted could someone be? I sighed, shaking my head at the sheer stupidity of Darren¡¯s strategy.
Louvel''s response was immediate and spectacular. Golden light erupted from his body, but instead of dispersing, it began to take shape. First came the armor, liquid gold flowing over his form like a living stream. Then, the very air around him began to shimmer with what looked like falling golden coins, each one catching the light and reflecting his influence throughout the room.
"Good," Louvel replied coolly, his voice carrying an otherworldly weight that made several onlookers change their sides immediately from Darren to Louvel. "I didn''t think you would give up so easily."
The lights flickered, and the sound was deafening¡ªlike thunder cracking indoors.
Darren charged, but this time he wasn''t just running in rage. He unleashed his Mob Mentality Strike¡ªa technique that amplified his strength based on how many people were watching the fight. The air around his fists began to crystallize with the solidified faith of his followers. Louvel met the charge with a new strategy. As Darren''s fist approached, a shimming golden vault materialized between them, its surface etched with intricate patterns of wealth and power. Darren''s punch connected with the vault''s door, and the impact sent shockwaves through the building¡ªbut the vault held.
"Is that all?" Louvel taunted, his golden aura intensifying. "Let''s see how your popularity holds up against true power."
The vault suddenly dissolved into a swarm of golden particles that surrounded Darren like a glittering tornado. Each particle began to pulse with Louvel''s Bankruptcy Strike, attempting to drain away the accumulated power of Darren''s popularity. But Darren countered with his Fanbase Shield¡ªa defensive technique that let him draw on his followers'' unwavering loyalty to resist power-draining effects. The number above his head fluctuated wildly with each exchange, dropping to 45 before surging back to 47.
Louvel''s eyes narrowed. His Bank Vault Fortress reformed, but this time it appeared in segments around the room, mirrors of wealth that began reflecting and amplifying his Golden Aura of Influence.
"You''re strong," Louvel acknowledged, "but popularity is fickle. Money? Money endures."
¡°I¡¯m the strongest here!¡± Darren''s Viral Velocity kicked in, letting him move at speeds proportional to his trending popularity. He became a blur of motion, landing hits that would have pulverized ordinary opponents. But Louvel''s Money Shield held firm, each impact sending ripples of golden energy across its surface.
"You''re not the only one who can play with perception," Louvel taunted, intensifying his Golden Aura of Influence. The aura began to affect the spectators, making them question their loyalty to Darren. With each seed of doubt planted, Darren''s number ticked down¡ª46, 44, 41.
Realizing his power was waning, Darren activated his ultimate technique: Popularity Singularity. His body began to glow with an intense light as he channeled every ounce of fame, every moment of recognition, every scrap of admiration he''d ever received into a single point. The number above his head surged dramatically to 55, the highest it had ever been.
"This ends now!" Darren roared, his voice carrying the weight of thousands.
Louvel responded by combining all three of his abilities. The Bank Vault Fortress condensed into gauntlets around his fists, each one pulsing with the Bankruptcy Strike and amplified by his Golden Aura of Influence. "You''re right about that."
Their final exchange was devastating. Darren''s Popularity Singularity collided with Louvel''s combined assault in a blast that shook the entire house. For a moment, pure white light from Darren''s attack wrestled with Louvel''s golden energy, neither seeming to gain the upper hand. But Louvel had planned for this. While Darren had poured everything into one massive attack, Louvel''s Bankruptcy Strike had been quietly working throughout the entire exchange. Like a leak in a dam, it had been steadily draining away the foundation of Darren''s power base.
The number above Darren''s head began to plummet. 40, 35, 28¡ªeach drop more rapid than the last. His Popularity Singularity began to flicker and fade as his power reserve depleted. Darren tried to maintain the attack, but his Celebrity Armor was cracking, his Fame Flames dimming.
"No," Darren gasped, watching his power literally fade away. "This isn''t possible!"
But it was. The number continued its freefall¡ª15, 8, 3, 1... When it finally hit zero, the counter above Darren¡¯s head vanished completely. With them, every manifestation of Darren''s power¡ªthe armor, the flames, the shimmering aura of charisma¡ªvanished like smoke in the wind.
Just like that, his title was gone. And with the title gone, so was his Ghost Writer meta-nature¡ªpermanently.
¡°No¡¡± he muttered, swaying on his feet. ¡°That¡¯s¡ impossible¡¡±
I watched Darren collapse to his knees, his earlier rage replaced by a hollow emptiness.
It was a strict and unforgiving rule of the GhostWriter Hive meta-nature: titles were everything. These users could steal meta-natures from one another, growing stronger in the process. But losing their title? That meant losing their powers entirely. It was a gamble every user with the Ghost Writer ¨C Hive meta nature lived with¡ªand Darren had just paid the ultimate price.
I glanced at Louvel, wondering if his title would upgrade now that he¡¯d won the match. It was unlikely he¡¯d inherit Hero of the Crowd. Titles like that didn¡¯t transfer to the victor; they passed on to someone else deemed worthy of carrying the metaphorical lantern. But perhaps Louvel¡¯s title might evolve into something new, reflecting his growing strength and reputation.
Louvel didn¡¯t waste any time. With a final, decisive step forward, he drove a powerful punch into Darren¡¯s chest. The golden armor on Louvel shimmered brightly for a moment before dispersing into a faint mist, coagulating back into coins as the impact landed.
Darren¡¯s body crumpled to the ground like a marionette with its strings cut. His head hit the floor with a dull thud, and his limbs sprawled out awkwardly. He was out cold.
The room seemed to exhale collectively. Meanwhile, the remaining students, his taunt followers, who had been watching from the corners with bated breath, shrank back, their bravado vanishing along with Darren¡¯s consciousness. They exchanged nervous glances, unsure of what to do without their leader.
Louvel stood over Darren¡¯s unconscious body, breathing heavily but otherwise composed.
¡°Well,¡± he rolled his shoulders and straightened, ¡°I guess that settles it. Popularity buys you power," he said, his voice cutting through the silence like a blade, coins tinkling softly as they fell around him, "but in the end, Money Reigns.¡±
He adjusted his cuffs with elegant precision. "And I always ensure my accounts are clear."
Act 2.23 (Chrysalis)
I strode to Adam, who had already rushed to his girlfriend''s side. His hands trembled as he fumbled with the silk scarf binding her wrists, the fabric knotted tightly against her pale skin. Her face was a mask of fear, streaked with dried tears that stood out starkly against her ashen complexion.
"Let me help," I said softly, kneeling beside them. The silk came loose with a gentle tug, and Adam immediately pulled her into his arms, "Emma."
He whispered something into her hair ¨C probably apologies, probably promises.
Louvel approached with unusually quiet steps, "She okay?"
"Yeah," Adam managed, "Yeah, I think so. Just..." He didn''t finish, but he didn''t need to. The word ''shaken'' hung in the air unspoken.
Knox moved through the room like a shadow, pausing to study Darren''s unconscious form.
Meanwhile, the remaining students scrambled to collect their fallen leader, their earlier bravado replaced by something closer to fear. They struggled under Darren''s weight, their movements clumsy with panic as they dragged him toward the door. The rest followed in silence, their footsteps hurried on the stairs.
As the last of them disappeared, the room seemed to exhale.
Louvel clapped his hands, breaking the lingering silence. ¡°Well, that was fun,¡± he said, his trademark grin slipping back into place. His swagger was fully restored now that the fight was over.
My phone buzzed against my leg. I pulled it out, and my heart skipped a beat. It was Jade. She¡¯d sent a selfie, standing in front of a mirror, her expression adorably pouty. Beneath it, she¡¯d written Miss You, followed by a bright red heart.
My heart swelled with happiness. A smile tugged at my lips. How could she be this effortlessly cute? It defied all logic, a mystery I didn¡¯t want to solve.
I typed back quickly: Miss you too with three hearts, because sometimes more is more. After a moment''s consideration, I added a crying face: Too bad I won''t have time to see you today. I''m stuck!!!
Sent!
Even from afar, Jade had a way of making everything better.
With Adam¡¯s problem resolved, we stepped out of the house, the high tension from earlier finally washed.
"Well, that''s my cue to leave," I said, already thinking about my bed and how good it would feel to finally crash.
Louvel walked forward with a smile, extending his hand. ¡°Thanks for your help, North.¡±
I took his hand, finding myself reassessing my opinion of him. Maybe I''d been too quick to judge ¨C sure, he was richer than most small countries, but money wasn''t everything. Well, except when he literally used it as a weapon. "No problem. While you''re under my care, I''ve got to make sure you all stay out of trouble." I meant it too. Despite my initial reluctance about this whole community service thing, I''d actually step in to protect these three if things went south.
I glanced at all three of them, meaning every word. If things had taken a turn for the worse during the fight, I wouldn¡¯t have hesitated to step in and protect them.
I still had three hours left on my community service shift, but honestly, who was counting? The academy might check in, but I had a feeling these three would back me up if anyone started asking questions. Not that I particularly cared ¨C my conscience was clear, and that was what mattered. Sometimes doing the right thing meant bending a few rules.
By the time I got home, the day was already turning dark. December was creeping in, bringing with it that distinct pre-snow chill that never failed to lift my spirits. I''d always loved snow ¨C the crisp cold, the perfect conditions for snowboarding, the way it made everything feel fresh and new. I found myself wondering if Jade had ever seen snow, if she''d want to learn how to snowboard. The thought made me smile despite my exhaustion. It was strange how often my thoughts drifted to her lately, how natural it felt to include her in my future plans.
I was still lost in that daydream when I pushed open my front door, already imagining the comfort of my bed. My body felt like it was ready to give out ¨C playing mentor to three meta-powered students was apparently more exhausting than I''d anticipated. I hadn''t even made it to Jade''s place, too drained to properly enjoy spending time with her.
"North?" Aunt Grace''s voice cut through my plans of immediate unconsciousness. "Perfect timing. We need groceries."
I turned to find her in the kitchen doorway, empty milk carton in hand. Great. Just great.
"Aunt Grace," I started, gesturing vaguely at myself, "I''ve been running around all day. I''m pretty sure my legs are about to go on strike."
She softened slightly, coming over to pat my cheek in that way that always made me feel like I was still ten years old. "I know you''re tired, sweetheart. But we need actual food in this house, and I''ve got a deadline in..." she checked her watch, "three hours. I''ll make it up to you with pancakes tomorrow?"
Aunt Grace pressed the shopping list into my hand and nudged me toward the door, planting a quick kiss on my cheek. I almost told her that unlike Jade''s kisses, hers didn''t come with magical energy-restoring properties ¨C but I valued my life too much to voice that particular thought.
The night air had gotten cooler, and I found myself staring at the long list with growing dread. No way was I hauling all this stuff alone. Then I remembered ¨C Leo''s place was on the way to the store. The kid wanted to be a hero, right? Well, here was his chance for some good old-fashioned heroic grocery carrying.
I walked the short distance to his house, rehearsing my pitch about the noble art of helping others. The porch light flickered as I knocked, and what opened the door wasn''t Leo ¨C it was a mountain that had somehow learned to wear clothes.
My neck actually hurt from looking up at the man.
Oh¡ Leo¡¯s father, I recognized him. Though I had never met him before, Leo had shown me his picture.
He filled the doorframe like someone had built the house around him, his shoulders practically brushing both sides. The shirt he wore looked like it was fighting a losing battle against his biceps, and his expression suggested the shirt wasn''t the only thing that should be worried.
"Can I help you?" His voice rumbled out like an avalanche deciding to be polite.
"Uh, is Leo home?" I aimed for casual and landed somewhere between squeaky and terrified. Great job, North. Very smooth.
The human mountain studied me with the kind of look usually reserved for analyzing particularly suspicious insects. After what felt like several years, he turned his head slightly and called out, "Leo! Some kid''s here for you!"
Kid? I bit back the urge to point out that I was practically ancient compared to most people in the entire world. Something told me correcting the man who could probably bench press my car wasn''t the wisest move.
A familiar face appeared behind Mount Dad, peering around what little doorframe space remained. Leo''s eyes widened in recognition.
"North?" He slipped past his father with the practiced ease of someone used to navigating around giants. "What are you doing here?"
"Dad," Leo hissed in a stage whisper, mortification written all over his face. "He''s North, from Beyonder''s Academy."
The transformation in Mr. Conrad was instant and almost comical ¨C like watching a grizzly bear turn into an excited puppy. His stern expression melted into a grin that threatened to take over his entire face.
"North!" His hand came down on my shoulder with enough force to make my knees buckle. "The famous North! Leo here won''t shut up about you. It''s always ''North showed me this technique'' or ''North says that''s not how you do it.''"
I shot Leo a surprised look, and he seemed to be trying very hard to disappear into the wallpaper. "Dad..." he groaned, his face turning the color of a fire truck.
"What? It''s true!" Mr. Conrad was already ushering me inside with the unstoppable force of an enthusiastic bulldozer. "Come in, come in! Can''t have Leo''s friend standing out in the cold. What''s your poison ¨C tea? Coffee? Coke?"
"Dad, please," Leo looked like he was contemplating if his meta nature could help him sink through the floor. "He probably just needed something¡ª"
"Nonsense!" Mr. Conrad''s voice boomed through the house. "Your friend''s taking time out of his busy schedule to visit, and you want to rush him off? That¡¯s not how we do things in this house.¡±
Leo shot me a desperate look that clearly said save me, but I just shrugged helplessly. When a man built like a friendly mountain wants you to stay for a drink, you stay for a drink.
The living room was exactly what you''d expect from a family home ¨C well-worn furniture that invited you to sink into it, family photos covering the walls in cheerful disarray. A glass-fronted cabinet caught my eye, displaying an impressive collection of police awards. It seemed Leo¡¯s dad liked to show his accomplishments. Overall, It was the kind of house that felt lived-in, warm, and inviting.
Mr. Conrad returned with two cans of Coke, handing one to me with a broad smile that seemed permanently etched onto his face. "So, North," he said, settling into a chair and motioning for me to do the same. "Leo''s told me you''ve been helping him prepare for the academy."
I accepted the can and popped it open. "It''s nothing, really. He''s already very capable. I just teach him a thing or two when I have the time."
The smile stayed, but something in his presence shifted ¨C the friendly giant replaced by the authority figure. "Just make sure Leo doesn''t get himself tangled up with the wrong people¡ªor the wrong things," he said, his voice firm but not harsh.
I nodded, choosing my words carefully. "Don''t worry, Mr. Conrad. I''ll make sure Leo knows what he''s doing," I said earnestly.
His expression softened at my response. "Good," he said firmly, his deep voice resonating in the cozy living room. "Leo''s a good kid, but sometimes he''s a little... impulsive."
I glanced at Leo, who sat stiffly on the couch, avoiding his dad''s gaze. "I''ll keep an eye on him," I said with a small smile. "But honestly, he''s got a good head on his shoulders. I don''t think you need to worry too much."
Mr. Conrad leaned back in his chair,and let out a short laugh ¡°You¡¯ve got the kind of steadiness I like to see in young people. Just make sure you keep him out of trouble¡ªand don¡¯t let him drag you into any, either.¡±
¡°Dad!¡± Leo groaned, slumping further into the couch. ¡°I¡¯m not some reckless kid.¡±
Mr. Conrad raised an eyebrow. ¡°Oh really? What about that time you tried to climb the water tower just to prove you could?¡±
¡°That was years ago!¡± Leo shot back, his face turning red.
I couldn¡¯t help but chuckle. ¡°Sounds like you¡¯ve got some stories to tell, Mr. Conrad.¡±
¡°Oh, I¡¯ve got plenty,¡± Mr. Conrad said, grinning. ¡°But I won¡¯t embarrass him too much today.¡±
Leo rolled his eyes and muttered, ¡°Too late.¡±
The tension eased as Mr. Conrad¡¯s laughter filled the room, and for a moment, I saw where Leo got his good nature. Despite his stern exterior, Mr. Conrad clearly cared deeply for his son, and that warmth was hard to miss.
¡°Well,¡± I said, finishing the last sip of my Coke, ¡°I should probably get going if we¡¯re going to tackle that shopping list. Aunt Grace doesn¡¯t tolerate delays.¡±
¡°Smart woman,¡± Mr. Conrad said, standing up. ¡°All right, you two get going before it gets too dark. And North?¡± He met my gaze, his expression turning serious again. ¡°Thanks for looking out for Leo. It means a lot.¡±
I nodded, meeting his gaze. ¡°Of course. I¡¯ve got his back.¡±
With that, Leo and I stepped outside. As the door closed behind us, Leo let out a long sigh, running a hand through his hair. ¡°Why does he always have to do this?¡±
I chuckled, shoving my hands in my pockets. "Because he''s your dad. It''s literally in the job description."
Late at night, Jade and I made plans to go on a hike the next day.
The following morning was weekend so, we booked a ride to Central Park. Unlike most cities where the central area was a financial hub, a superhero headquarters, or home to some wealthy elite, the heart of Wyster State was a massive, artificially created park simply known as Central Park.
On the map, it appeared as a small dot, but in reality, it was sprawling and vast, almost too huge to map out in one day. There were rumors about its origin¡ªstories suggesting that two centuries ago, it was nothing more than a small patch of forest. During a battle between superheroes and villains, however, a time-warping supervillain organization had been defeated and buried there by the heroes. The clash caused immense changes in the area, isolating it from the rest of the world in ways no one fully understood. Some even claimed that if the conditions were just right, you might catch a glimpse of dinosaurs from eras long past. I couldn¡¯t completely dismiss the idea¡ªthere was some truth to it. I¡¯d read an old news story about dinosaurs suddenly appearing decades before I was born. It had reportedly taken the city quite some time to contain the situation.
Interestingly enough, there was a dinosaur park in the country, and I wondered if it housed the very same creatures.
To be honest, before the creatures that existed on the earth now, they were nothing but ants.
Jade was effortlessly striding through a muddy path surrounded by dense plants and weeds. While I found the overgrowth irritating, Jade didn¡¯t seem to mind much. She moved with ease, her athletic body navigating the uneven terrain with practiced confidence. She jumped here and then there. She wore a white collared shirt layered under a brown diamond-patterned sweater vest, paired with a high-waisted plaid mini skirt and knee-high white socks. Her chunky boots, now thoroughly coated in mud, didn¡¯t slow her down. A brown baseball cap rested snugly on her head, shielding her face from stray branches, while a small brown leather crossbody purse hung securely across her chest. She had grumbled once about her blazer slipping off her shoulders and her shoes getting dirty, but after that, she stayed quiet, as if deciding it wasn¡¯t worth the fuss and she could buy new ones from lottery winnings. I had joked initially that what she was wearing wasn''t exactly an outing outfit, to which she had replied what I know about fashion. So, I shut my mouth, not willing to argue.
The constant walking was exhausting. Worse still, Jade kept stopping whenever she found a spot she deemed perfect for a photo.
When she did, I had to step up as her designated cameraman. She would rattle off a list of complaints: the lighting wasn¡¯t right, I didn¡¯t know how to focus, or, her favorite, ¡°You¡¯re the worst¡ªI¡¯ve never seen anyone take pictures this bad.¡± But then, once I managed to take one she liked, her face would light up with a satisfied smile. If she was feeling particularly generous, I might even get a kiss on the cheek as a reward.
Fifteen minutes later, the path wound upward through a patch of dense forest, where sunlight filtered through the canopy in scattered beams. The air was thick with the scent of wet earth and pine, and somewhere nearby, a stream gurgled over rocks.
Ahead of me, Jade effortlessly balanced along a fallen log, arms outstretched like she was on a balance beam.
"Show off," I called out, watching her cartwheel off the end.
She landed perfectly, turning to bow with a flourish. "Thank you, thank you. I''ll be here all week."
"Where''d you learn to move like that anyway?"
"Competitive gymnastics." She fell into step beside me, nudging my shoulder. "I did it for a few years. Parents'' idea ¨C they thought it would help with discipline. I definitely did not enjoy it."
I raised an eyebrow, watching her easily hop over a muddy patch. "That explains why you''re so..." I gestured vaguely at her.
"So what?" Her eyes sparkled with mischief. "Graceful? Athletic? Amazing?"
"I was going to say flexible, but sure, let''s go with amazing."
A slight blush colored her cheeks. "Careful there," she teased. "Comments like that might make me think you''ve been paying attention to how flexible I am."
"Maybe I have been," I admitted, feeling my own face warm.
"Oh my god, North!" She suddenly stopped, making me almost bump into her. "Look at that view!"
Through a break in the trees, the city sprawled out below us like a living map. Sunlight caught the glass buildings, turning them into mirrors that reflected the clouds. The whole city seemed to shimmer, modern towers rising between patches of green parks.
"We have to get a picture here," she declared, eyes lighting up with that familiar spark that usually meant I was about to become her personal photographer.
"Jade, wait¡ª" I started, eyeing the ground warily. Recent rain had turned the hillside treacherous, mud barely held in place by sparse grass. Water still trickled down in tiny rivulets. "That slope doesn''t look stable."
"You worry too much," she called back, already picking her way up the incline. Her former gymnast''s grace was on full display as she navigated the slippery terrain. "It''s totally fine! This is going to be perfect ¨C look, you can see the whole skyline!"
"There are probably safer spots¡ª"
"Just take the picture!" She positioned herself at the edge, the city spread out behind her like a postcard. The wind caught her silky straight hair under the cap, making them dance. "Quick, before we lose this light! It''s perfect!"
"Jade¡ª"
Her triumphant pose turned into a startled yelp as the mud gave way. I lunged forward, heart in my throat, managing to catch her before she hit the ground. But her ankle twisted with a sound that made my stomach lurch.Love this novel? Read it on Royal Road to ensure the author gets credit.
"Ow, it hurts" she muttered, face pressed against my chest. Her fingers gripped my jacket tightly.
"Don''t you dare say it," she added quickly, but I could hear the pain beneath her attempted bravado.
"Say what?" I kept my voice light despite my racing heart. "That maybe you should listen when I say something''s not safe? That this could have been avoided? That¡ª"
"Okay, okay!" She tried to put weight on her foot and immediately paled. "You were right. Happy now?"
"Can you still climb?" I asked, watching her wobble.
She attempted another step and winced, biting her lip. Then she looked up at me, eyes wide and pleading, arms stretched out like a child asking to be picked up. The expression was so deliberately pitiful it was almost comical.
I narrowed my eyes, suddenly suspicious. For someone who''d just hurt herself, that pose looked awfully well-practiced. "You know, for an ex-gymnast, that was a pretty amateur fall."
Her innocent expression cracked slightly, a hint of mischief showing through. "Are you suggesting I''d hurt myself on purpose just to get you to carry me?"
"Would you?"
She batted her eyelashes. "Maybe? Is it working?"
I shook my head, already kneeling in front of her. "You could have just asked, you know."
"What? No, I can walk! I''m not some damsel in distress."
I gave her a look. "Really? Show me."
She took one defiant step and nearly collapsed. I caught her again, and this time she didn''t protest. "Okay, fine," she grumbled. "But just because I''m letting you carry me doesn''t mean you were right."
"Of course not," I said, helping her onto my back. Her arms wrapped around my neck. Her warmth pressed against my back, her breath tickling my ear.
"It''s good to have a boyfriend," she murmured, the words only half sincere. "Coming to my rescue again."
"More like your personal ambulance service." But I was smiling as I adjusted her weight. "Next time, maybe we find a spot with actual solid ground?"
She hummed, resting her chin on my shoulder. Her hair brushed against my cheek, carrying the faint scent of lavender. "But then what excuse would I have to make you carry me?"
"You could just ask," I said before I could stop myself.
Her surprised laugh was warm against my neck. "Really?" Her arms tightened slightly around me. "Just ask?"
"Sure. Though maybe with less dramatic build-up next time."
"Where''s the fun in that?" She shifted slightly, getting more comfortable. "Besides, I like that you''re always there to catch me."
The sincerity in her voice made my heart skip. "Always will be," I promised, meaning it more than she could know.
"Even when I''m being stubborn?"
"Especially then." I started carefully picking our way back down the slope. "Though maybe we could work on your self-preservation instincts?"
She laughed again, the sound echoing through the trees. "But then what would you do with all your free time?"
"I don''t know, maybe actually enjoy a hike without having a heart attack?"
"Boring," she declared, but her voice was soft with affection. We fell into comfortable silence as I carried her back to the main path, her head resting against my shoulder, the city view forgotten behind us.
Somewhere on the way, she started pressing tiny kisses along my neck and jaw, each one deliberate and feather-light, making me nearly lose my footing. My skin tingled where her lips touched, sending shivers down my spine.
"Jade," I warned, trying to keep my balance on the uneven ground. "I''m going to drop you."
"No, you won''t," she murmured against my skin, continuing her assault. "You''re too careful with me."
"I''m trying to walk here," I protested weakly, already tilting my head despite myself.
She giggled but didn''t stop, peppering more kisses up to my ear. "Can''t help it. You''re too cute when you''re being all responsible." Another kiss. "Makes me want to eat you up."
"I''m not food," I grumbled.
"Mmm, but you''re delicious." She nuzzled against my neck, making me stumble slightly. Her arms tightened around me, secure and possessive. "My favorite food. My perfect, grumpy, handsome snack."
I sighed, but adjusted my grip to give her better access. She knew exactly how to push my buttons¡ªand how to reel me back in.
After what felt like an eternity of walking, the dense foliage finally opened up to reveal our destination. The spot was like something out of a fairy tale ¨C a small clearing nestled between old, tall trees, with a natural pond fed by a modest waterfall that tumbled down moss-covered rocks. The water caught the filtered sunlight, scattering it in tiny rainbows.
"Oh wow. This is perfect," Jade said against my neck. "How is this even real?"
"Wait till you hear how I found it," I said, picking my way carefully toward a thick tree trunk. "Got completely lost on a tour first time. Ended up here by accident."
"Best getting-lost story ever."
She grabbed onto the tree trunk while I helped her down, both of us wobbling a bit. My back was killing me, though I tried not to show it as I rolled my shoulders.
"Stop pretending you''re not tired," she said, catching my grimace. "I''m not that light, you know."
"Are you calling yourself heavy?"
"Try it and die," she threatened, but she was grinning.
"Sit," she ordered, already lowering herself to the grass. "I''ll set up. Just hand me the stuff."
I started to protest,
"You can barely walk¡ª"
"Which is why I''ll crawl. Just sit quietly." she fixed me with a look that brooked no argument.
I knew that tone. Fighting her would be pointless, so I dropped down onto the grass, pulling off the backpack. "Blanket''s in the side pocket."
She started rummaging through the bag, then began the entertaining process of trying to spread out a blanket while scooting around on her butt. The whole thing kept bunching up under her.
"This is harder than it looks," she muttered, blowing hair out of her face as she wrestled with a corner.
"Want help?"
"Nope." She determinedly crawled to the next corner. "You carried me all the way here. I can handle a blanket."
I leaned back on my hands, watching her wage war with the blanket. Her nose scrunched up in concentration, reminding me of when she was taking photos. Even with a bum ankle, she was determined to do her part. The waterfall made this peaceful background noise, not too loud but enough to make it feel private. A few birds called from somewhere nearby, and the air smelled like wet stone and forest.
"Food time," she announced once she''d finally won the blanket battle. She dragged the backpack closer, then started pulling everything out.
"The fruit might have gotten squished when I was carrying you¡ª"
She began arranging everything with the same intensity she brought to her photography ¨C the fruit salad placed just so, sandwiches arranged at the perfect angle, the tea thermos lined up like soldier. Her injured leg was stretched out carefully, but she worked around it like it was merely an inconvenience rather than a real hindrance.
The late afternoon sun filtering through the leaves cast dappled shadows that danced across our makeshift dining area. It was peaceful, secluded ¨C the kind of place that felt removed from the rest of the world.
"Ta-da!" She sat back, gesturing at her setup. "Not too shabby for someone with a war injury, right?"
I reached over to pick a leaf out of her hair. "Pretty impressive. Though you really didn''t have to¡ª"
She clapped a hand over my mouth. "Yes, I did. You can''t be the hero all the time, you know." Her hand dropped, and her expression went soft. "Let me take care of you sometimes too."
"Even with a sprained ankle?"
"Especially with a sprained ankle. Now shut up and appreciate my amazing picnic skills."
A dragonfly zipped past us, skimming over the pond''s surface.
"This really is perfect," she said quietly, scooting closer until she could lean against my shoulder. "Even if I had to nearly break my ankle to get here."
"You didn''t have to do that either."
She bumped me with her shoulder. "Maybe I just wanted an excuse to be close to you."
"You never need an excuse for that."
"Aww," she cooed, turning to press a kiss to my cheek. "Look who''s being sweet."
"I take it back. Stay on your side of the blanket."
Her laugh echoed off the rocks, mixing with the sound of falling water. "Too late. You''re stuck with me now."
"Alright," I said, shifting to face her. "Let me see your ankle."
Jade narrowed her eyes, already wary. "I told you, it''s fine."
"Yeah, and I don¡¯t believe you." I reached for her leg, gently pulling it across my lap. She huffed but didn¡¯t resist, though her pout was a little too exaggerated to be genuine.
"Do you always manhandle injured people?" she grumbled as I started unlacing her knee high boots. They were really a struggle to pull.
"Only the stubborn ones who think they''re invincible," I shot back, sliding the shoe off carefully. Her sock followed, and I was met with the sight of her bare foot and slightly swollen ankle. It wasn¡¯t too bad¡ªnothing a little care wouldn¡¯t fix. "Does this hurt?" I asked, pressing lightly around the area.
"A bit," she admitted, wincing slightly.
"You know, for someone with superpowers to shift all odds in her favor, you¡¯ve managed to sprain your ankle twice in the last two months. Impressive track record."
She rolled her eyes, a grin tugging at her lips. "Maybe I like giving you something to fuss over. Ever think of that?"
"Looks like a mild sprain." I dug into my backpack for the small can of spray I always carried. "Lucky for you, I come prepared."
"Of course you do," she said.
As I pulled out the spray, she fidgeted, her other foot brushing against my thigh. "Uh, just saying, my feet are probably sweaty. Sorry if they smell."
I replied without thinking, "They never smell bad."
Her eyebrows shot up. "Oh? And how do you know that? Have you been sniffing them when I¡¯m not looking?"
I froze for a second too long, trying to process her words, and she burst into laughter, clearly delighted at catching me off guard. "Seriously. If you¡¯ve got a thing for my feet, just say so. I won¡¯t judge."
With a sigh, I reached over, grabbed her discarded sock, and tossed it square at her face. It landed perfectly, covering her nose and mouth.
"Gross!" she shrieked, yanking it off and throwing it aside. "That¡¯s foul play!¡±
¡°¡®Wow, her pretty feet are the highlight of my day.¡¯ Is that what you think is going through my head right now?¡± I stared at her, deadpan.
"See, you¡¯re not denying it," she pointed, and then leaned forward to whisper in my ear, "Just saying, you could just share your deep secrets with me. I won¡¯t judge. Much."
I shook my head, as I started applying the spray. The cool mist made her flinch slightly, but I held her foot steady. "Hold still. This¡¯ll soon fix it."
"Sure thing, Doc," she said, settling back onto her elbows. I could feel her eyes on me as I worked, my fingers careful around the tender area. "There. Should be good as new by dinner."
She flexed her toes experimentally, ¡°Thanks. I don¡¯t feel any pain anymore.¡±
"You don¡¯t have to thank me for this," I said, returning her foot and shoes. "Just try not to fall off any cliffs or something for the rest of the day."
She grinned, her teasing edge returning. "No promises."
I groaned, "I can¡¯t win against you. Can I?"
She tucked her foot protectively under her leg as if I¡¯d make another move. "That¡¯s because I¡¯m smarter, faster, and better looking. It¡¯s science."
¡°Sure.¡±
"Oh!" Then she suddenly sat up straight, nearly knocking over her tea. "I almost forgot!" She scrambled through her bag, movements excited but careful with her injured ankle.
I watched her rummaging around, wondering what she''d forgotten that could make her this animated. Then she pulled out her camera with a triumphant "Aha!"
"What are you doing?" I asked, though I had a pretty good idea.
She spun around, hobbling those few steps back to me with an eagerness that made me worry about her ankle. "I''m going to record our picnic!" she announced, her voice going soft and cute like it did when she was trying to be extra convincing. She held up her camera like it was a trophy.
Looking at her face, all lit up with enthusiasm, any thought of protesting died in my throat. "Sure," I managed, smoothing out the blanket to give my hands something to do.
Meanwhile, I focused on unpacking our food ¨C the fruit salad and sandwiches, the thermos of green tea she''d insisted on because it had "better picnic vibes" than my suggested soda. She''d been very specific about the whole aesthetic, vetoing half my snack choices with dramatic eye rolls. She fiddled with the camera settings, tongue poking out slightly in concentration. "Perfect," she murmured, adjusting the angle one last time before flopping down next to me. Her knee brushed against mine as she settled.
"Here, try this combination," she said after we''d settled in, carefully balancing a piece of mango with a blueberry on her fork. "It''s life-changing."
"You said that about the last three combinations."
"Because they were! Now open up." She held the fork to my lips, her other hand cupped underneath to catch any drips. "Trust me."
Her face lit up as I took the bite.
"Well?" She leaned in closer, eyes sparkling.
"Life-changing," I admitted, and her triumphant smile was worth the admission.
"See? I told you!" She was already preparing another combination. "Okay, now try strawberry with¡ª"
"My turn," I interrupted, picking up my own fork.
Jade blinked in surprise, "Feeding me now?"
"Fair''s fair." I carefully selected a perfect strawberry. "Plus, you look cute when you''re excited about food."
A light blush colored her cheeks, but she opened her mouth obediently, eyes never leaving mine.
"Now," she said after swallowing, scooting even closer until she was practically in my lap. "Tell the camera something special. It doesn''t have to be dark-dark. Just something future-us would want to know."
"Future-us knows everything current-us knows," I pointed out. "That''s how time works."
"Ugh, stop being logical!" She poked my side. "Fine, then... tell me when you first realized you liked me."
That caught me off guard. What should I tell? "Well..."
"Oh?" She perked up, sensing a story. "This should be good."
I thought carefully about how to answer. Honestly, there were too many instances, she had grown in my heart from a drop of hate to ocean of love, it was hard to chose specifically, so I picked a random stream from the thousands, "Remember that day in class when you fell asleep?"
"Which time?" she asked, grinning sheepishly.
"The time you drooled on your notebook and then tried to play it off as an artistic choice."
She gasped in mock outrage. "I did not drool!"
"You absolutely did. And when you woke up, you had this pencil mark on your cheek, but you were so confident about it that Gina and Lore thought it was some new makeup trend."
"That''s not..." she started, then paused. "Wait, that''s when you knew?"
"I grew to like you more at the moment," I said, remembering how she''d turned what could have been an embarrassing moment into something endearing through sheer force of personality. "You were just so... you about it.¡±
She was quiet for a moment, then buried her face in my shoulder. "That''s such a weird moment to fall for someone," she mumbled.
¡°It''s just one of many, I have more.¡±
¡°Tell me, tell me.¡±
¡°No,¡± I pushed her face away. "Leave them for some other time."
Later, as the afternoon light softened we had finished all our food and even had gone through a couple of games.
"Next game?" Jade eyes sparkled.
"No more cards."
"No, something better." She tugged me back down to the blanket, arranging us so she was sitting between my legs, her back to my chest. "Cloud watching."
I wrapped my arms around her waist, resting my chin on her shoulder. "Really?"
"Really. Look ¨C that one looks like a rabbit."
"It looks like a cloud."
She elbowed me gently. "Use your imagination! Oh, that one''s definitely a dragon."
"Still looks like a cloud."
"Ugh! Don¡¯t," she complained, but she snuggled deeper into my embrace. "Fine, you tell me what you see."
I pretended to think about it, mostly just enjoying how soft she felt in my arms. "I see... a beautiful girl who''s terrible at describing clouds."
She turned her head to bite my shoulder. "Smooth talker." But her hand found mine, fingers intertwining. "Tell me more about what you see."
"Well," I pressed a kiss to her necks, causing her shiver "I see someone whose eyes light up when she''s excited about something. Who scrunches her nose when she''s concentrating too hard. A fragile girl beneath the tough bravado who would start to cry when she¡¯s overwhelmed, but would never let a single tear spills outside. Someone who somehow manages to look cute even with a sprained ankle..."
"Keep going," she whispered, running her fingers through my hair.
"I see future," I said softly, honestly. Her hands stilled, eyes meeting mine. "Even if she''s probably going to make me lose my sleep for the rest of our lives."
Instead of responding, she kissed me ¨C deep and slow, like we had all the time in the world. Maybe, just for this moment, we did."Actually," Jade said, shifting to face me properly, "want to know when I first liked you?"
"When I dazzled you with my amazing personality?¡±
She went quiet for a moment, her fingers tightening around mine. "It wasn''t one moment," she said softly, "It was everything. All these little pieces that kept adding up until I couldn''t ignore them anymore and they began to overflow."
"Yeah?"
"Mhmm." She shifted closer, as if sharing a secret. "Remember our meta resonance in the beginning , I was freaking out about it secretly. I didn¡¯t know what was going on, it was so new and scary? I was like you want to harm me." Her thumb traced patterns on my palm. "Then, you just... approached and listened. Found ways to help me understand it better. You didn''t try to fix everything ¨C you just helped me find my own way."
"Then that night at the party," her voice quieted, but she pressed on. "When those guys... "I was so scared, so ashamed. But you didn''t ask questions, despite I had supposedly erased four guys life . You just got me out of there, made me feel safe again. Protected." Her fingers curled into my sweater. "The whole time you helped me reach home, I kept thinking about how right it felt in your arms. How I never wanted you to let go."
I pulled her closer, feeling her heart racing against my chest.
"And when I told you about wanting to be a hero..." She pulled back just enough to meet my eyes. "You explained everything to me. And despite the dangers, you didn¡¯t let me do it alone because you were worried I would hurt myself. You spent your own money, your time, just to help me achieve my silly dream."
Out of nowhere, tears spilled down her cheeks now. I wasn¡¯t good with emotional stuff and suddenly I found mountain waying on my shoulders. Still, I tried my bes. I reached up to wipe them away, but she caught my hand, pressing it to her face.
"But it''s more than that," she whispered. "It''s how you see me. Really see me. All the parts I try to hide, the things I''m ashamed of, the ways I mess up... you see it all and you''re still here. Still looking at me like I''m something precious."
Her voice broke completely. "And now I can''t... I can''t imagine not having this. Not having you. Sometimes when you''re not here, it physically hurts. I''ll be doing something completely normal and suddenly miss you so much I can''t breathe."
She pressed herself closer, as if trying to eliminate any space between us. "I''ll be lying in bed at night, thinking about how your arms feel around me, or the way you smile when you think I''m not looking, or how you always know exactly what I need... and it terrifies me how much I need you. How completely you''ve become part of me."
Her hands framed my face, thumbs brushing my cheeks. "I''ve never needed anyone like this before," she confessed, voice barely above a whisper. "Never wanted to. But with you... with you, I want everything. Every moment, every touch, every stupid little detail of your life. And it scares me how much I want it, but I can''t stop. Don''t want to stop."
I could feel her trembling as she pressed soft, desperate kisses to my face ¨C my forehead, my cheeks, the corner of my mouth. "I love you," she breathed against my skin. "I love you so much it feels like my heart might burst sometimes. And I don''t know what to do with all of it except tell you, show you, hope you understand..."
I wrapped my arms around her, cradling her. "I''m very sorry for making you feel sad and being so awful."
"You should be," she mumbled against my skin. "Making me fall in love with you. How dare you...."
She cried harder. "How am I supposed to hate you when you keep caring about me?"
Was it also a problem now?
Honestly, I hadn¡¯t seen her cry like this before. Hell, not even when she¡¯d been on the brink of collapse, her body practically burning from the inside out after overdrawing her meta. Not a single tear then. Her strength had seemed unshakable. But now? Now, she was falling apart right in front of me, her shoulders shaking. What had gotten into her?
I pressed my face into her hair, breathing in her familiar scent, trying to find words for the emotion threatening to overwhelm me.
"You know," I said softly, "every morning when I wake up, my first thought is you. Whether you slept well, if you''re already awake, what you might be doing." My hand moved slowly up and down her back. "Sometimes I catch myself smiling at nothing, just because I remembered something you said or did."
She pressed closer, if that was even possible. "Yeah?"
"Yeah." I kissed her temple, feeling her gradually relax against me. "And every time something good happens, you''re the first person I want to tell. When something bad happens, you''re the one I want to see. It''s like... like my whole world has rearranged itself around you without me even noticing."
Her breath hitched. "North..."
"So maybe we''re both awful," I continued, "Because I can''t imagine my life without you either. Don''t want to."
She kissed me then ¨C soft and slow and thorough, like she was trying to pour everything she couldn''t say into the gesture. When she pulled back, her eyes were half-closed, a small smile playing at her lips.
"I like this," she murmured, "Just us, here. Like nothing else exists. Maybe we should buy this mountain and build a house here. We''ll maybe have two three kids, if you want? if not, I think you''re alone enough for me for the rest of my life."
¡°Yeah?¡± I was speechless. She really did not make it easy for me to handle her. House? On a government mountain? Three kids?
The camera was still recording somewhere behind us, capturing this quiet aftermath of confessions and promises. Future evidence of a perfect moment that I desperately hoped would last beyond the next reset.
We sat like that for a while until it was time to go back as the sun started to hide behind the clouds.
"North?" Her voice was drowsy now, content.
"Hmm?"
"Thank you."
"For what?"
She nuzzled closer, her words warm against my neck. "For making it so easy to love you."
I watched her, my heart tightened¡ªnot with joy, but with a dull ache that spread like cracks in glass. The thought of another reset, of this world and everything in it slipping away, plagued me silently. Her laugh, her words, her very presence¡ªthey didn''t just bring joy; they made me painfully aware of how fleeting happiness could be.
I wish I could hold back time.
Act 2.24 (Chrysalis)
Our picnic ended peacefully. No surprise encounters with villains, no one jumping at me for a fight¡ªby my standards, that was a win. Today, however, I had more focused work to do. After my classes wrapped up, I made my way to the lab.
It had been a week of continuous experiments on the Arcane Spell, and so far, the results had been underwhelming. I stood outside the containment field, staring at the spell hovering faintly within the area enclosed by the Distortion Bars. Various test items were scattered inside the field¡ªmetals, organic matter, even a few meta-receptive objects.
Yet, as always, the spell seemed indifferent to them all. The effects, or rather the lack of them, were frustratingly consistent. Sure, there were minor shifts in the local reality constant, but they were negligible. To put it into perspective: if I stood still in one spot for five minutes, I¡¯d release more radiation or meta-aspect into the surroundings than the spell managed to produce in an hour. And Jade, well... she released more radiation every minute than I released in an entire decade. Her meta was terrifyingly volatile.
I leaned against the observation console, tapping a finger against its surface in thought. Maybe the spell needs specific conditions to activate properly. Something I haven¡¯t accounted for yet¡Like human.
It was the only explanation that made sense. But, of course, I didn¡¯t have a spare human locked in my basement to experiment on. So unless I wanted to test it on myself¡ªwhich, let¡¯s be honest, wasn¡¯t exactly ideal¡ªI had to find another way to figure things out.
And that was why I was here¡ªto make sense of it all. I needed to understand how the spell I had absorbed was affecting me, my surroundings, and, most importantly, my mind.
"Maybe we should poke it with a stick," Jade suggested from her perch on the lab counter, legs swinging. She''d invited herself along as my ''research partner'', claiming she was fascinated by magic. Though I suspected she was mostly here to keep me company and prevent me from getting too lost in my own head.
"That''s your solution to everything."
"Has worked so far." She hopped down, peering at the spell through the Distortion Bars. "What if we played it music? Everything responds to music."
I couldn''t tell if she was joking. "It''s an magical construct, not a houseplant."
"Grumpy." She poked my shoulder. "Come on, we''ve been at this for days now. Time to get creative."
She had a point. Despite hours of careful observation, the spell remained frustratingly passive.
"Hand me my notebook?" I asked, not taking my eyes off the containment field.
The notebook appeared in my peripheral vision. "Page 47," Jade said. "That''s where you drew those cute little runes that looked like ducks."
"They''re not ducks, they''re arcane symbols I saw."
"Quack quack," she whispered, making me fight back a smile.
I flipped through my diagrams, thinking aloud. "Maybe if we destabilize it somehow..."
The notebook contained runes I had been experimenting with, though unlike Sir Nash, I couldn''t conjure them effortlessly. I had to rely on other methods. Then an idea struck me¡ªwhat if I disrupted the spell to create resonance or dissonance? Like how two objects colliding produce an effect, perhaps "knocking" on the spell would elicit a response.
But the idea came with risks¡ªserious risks.
¡°What if the spell¡minds?¡± I muttered, glancing at Jade.
The thought lingered uncomfortably in the back of my mind. If the arcane spell decided to take offense at my actions, it could very well blow up the entire building¡ªand us along with it.
Jade raised an eyebrow but stayed quiet. I appreciated that about her ¨C knowing when to let me think things through. My fingers traced uncertain patterns over my notebook. This could either be brilliant or spectacularly stupid.
Well, one way or another, we were about to find out.
I raised my hand, watching the ceiling-mounted robotic arm mirror my movement. It picked up a simple screwdriver ¨C nothing fancy and moved toward the containment chamber where the arcane spell hovered, defying gravity with its unnatural stillness. Naturally, I wasn¡¯t reckless enough to add extra energy, use something like a blaster or any high-powered tool that could trigger an explosion¡ªor worse, some unforeseen reaction that could endanger both of us. I knew enough to avoid direct contact. Even Sir Nash hadn¡¯t dared touch the spell, opting instead to encase it securely within the seal.
The memory of the spell merging with me was still fresh ¨C not something I was eager to repeat.
But using an object instead of direct contact? That idea wouldn''t leave me alone. The robotic arm moved forward, holding the screwdriver like some weird mechanical peace offering as it entered the chamber.
I caught myself holding my breath and glanced at Jade. She was leaning forward, completely focused on the spell, probably not even realizing she was biting her lip ¨C something she always did when things got intense. When she noticed me hesitate, she nudged my arm. "Just do it already," she whispered. "Before you overthink it."
Right. No more stalling. I guided the screwdriver closer, closer ¨C until it touched.
I''d expected fireworks, maybe an explosion. What actually happened was way weirder.
The spell seemed to consume the screwdriver. It wasn¡¯t disintegrating, nor passing through the spell; it was vanishing in a way that defied explanation, as though being swallowed by the hollow arcane mass. My instincts kicked in and I yanked the robotic arm back, but it was too late. The spell had already turned violent. It began to revolve at an alarming speed, its size fluctuating wildly, parts of it trying to separate from itself. One second it was bulging against the containment field, the next it was barely a speck of light. It destabilized in a way that was eerily familiar¡ªjust as the splinter and mindfield spell had assimilated me the first time.
The monitoring screens around me flickered to red, alarms blaring with urgent beeps. "Reality Weight Constant Critical," the warning lights screamed, as I watched the scene unfold.
Reality cracked. Literally.
That''s the only way I can describe it. The containment chamber ¨C no, the whole room ¨C started to split and layer over itself like a glitching video game. The air rippled and fractured, bending in ways that hurt my eyes to look at.
"North!" Jade''s voice sounded distant and too close all at once. "What''s happening?"
I opened my mouth to answer, but the words died in my throat. Jade was... multiplying. Two of her stood there, perfect mirrors of each other, both staring at me with identical expressions of shock. My head snapped around instinctively, and there he was ¨C another me, moving in perfect sync with my own movements.
Leave a Face Behind.
The arcane spell had revealed its nature¡ªIt could grab moments of us from the past thirty seconds, duplicate them, make them real again. But only for those same thirty seconds before they dissolved back into nothing.
I turned to face my copy, studying it closely. Something was off about its eyes. They were hollow, lifeless, as though the spell couldn¡¯t fully replicate the soul behind the face. Perhaps it was because I hadn¡¯t fully assimilated with the spell yet. The same eerie hollowness was in Jade¡¯s copy, making them both feel¡ wrong.
And yet, the other me was staring at me¡ªnot just idly, but with an unsettling intensity. Its gaze suddenly sent a chill racing down my spine.
It smiled.
A slow, deliberate smile that chilled me to the bone.
And what followed was worse ¨C reality itself seemed to gag and convulse. The distortion bars didn''t just break; they twisted like living things, metal groaning as it warped into shapes that shouldn''t exist. They appeared as if something inside them was trying to break free. Their metal surfaces groaned, stretching and contorting into grotesque spirals that resembled jagged, writhing tendrils. The walls started to breathe. Actually breathe. Steel panels bubbled and swelled like infected flesh, growing what looked like tumors made of liquid metal. They hardened into crystal formations that caught the light wrong, reflecting things that weren''t there.Stolen story; please report.
"North?" Jade''s voice shook slightly. "The stool is... evolving."
She wasn''t wrong. The lab stool had turned into something from a nightmare, its legs fusing and splitting into a crown of bone-like spikes. Our equipment wasn''t doing much better ¨C the whole workstation had melted together into some kind of techno-organic horror show. Cables slithered across the floor with purpose, and the monitors... well, the monitors were showing things I couldn¡¯t comprehend, as if they were broadcasting from another dimension entirely.
Even the air was thick with strangeness. It tasted like old pennies and ozone. The light in the room flickered erratically, casting warped shadows that didn¡¯t match their sources. The shadows themselves seemed alive, crawling across surfaces like they had a will of their own.
Once the transmutation halted, cold sweat dripped down my neck as I watched our nice, normal lab turn into a modern art exhibit designed by someone who''d seen too many horror movies. But worse than all of it was that smile still burned into my brain ¨C that thing wearing my face that had looked at me like it knew something I didn''t.
As I thought calmly, It didn''t feel like a memory; it was more like an echo, something that refused to leave even though the distortion had faded.
"What the hell just happened?" Jade''s voice cracked as she backed away from a monitor that was now weeping something that looked uncomfortably like mercury. Her hand found mine, fingers gripping tight enough to hurt.
"I... I don''t know," I admitted, watching a section of floor that had twisted itself into something that looked like a metal Venus flytrap. It was as if the strangeness had infected everything. Luckily, we were standing outside the spell''s influence and hadn''t been affected in any way whatsoever.
Still, the fact that this wasn''t even in my top ten weirdest experiences probably said something about my life.
Jade was still staring at the warped containment chamber, her face pale. "Should we... call someone?"
"And tell them what? ''Sorry, we broke reality a little bit?''" I took her hand, leading us toward the door. "Come on, let''s get some air."
The spell had stabilized itself again, but I needed fresh air to process what I¡¯d just seen. We made our way to the garden, and as we reached a quiet spot, the ground beneath my feet shifted slightly as I sat down, thinking.
The behavior of the spell confirmed one of my suspicions: the Arcane was alive in some way. Not merely a construct or an energy source, but something with awareness¡ªor at least intent. The way it had reacted, the way my duplicate had smiled... this thing was alive. Maybe not in any way we''d understand, but it definitely had its own agenda.
"Earth to North," Jade waved her hand in front of my face. "Your thinking eyes are getting intense. The strangeness is moving."
"Just realizing I might have miscalculated." I replied.
Initially, I''d thought that I could use the Arcane spell against the Tunnel Underground gang, turn it into a weapon. Now I was wondering if I''d been playing with something that was just waiting for a chance to play back.
¡°Okay, but why do you sound more fascinated than freaked out?" Jade asked, studying my face.
I had to laugh at that. She wasn''t wrong. Any sane person would be running for the hills after watching reality have a nervous breakdown.
But then again... I was just a traveler. Getting worked up over every reality-bending monster or cosmic horror would be exhausting. I''d seen things that would make this look like a kid''s magic trick.
I plucked a blade of grass, twirling it between my fingers. "You want to know something interesting? Every meta-nature comes from somewhere deep inside us ¨C desires, obsessions, those weird little things that shape us."
Jade shifted to face me better, already familiar with the concept but curious where I was going with this.
¡°For me, my meta-nature came from something almost every child goes through¡ªa strange phase of obsessive fascination with something that doesn¡¯t make sense to anyone else.¡±
Jade drew her knees up, settling in for the story.
I paused, the memory surfacing as vividly as if it had happened yesterday. I reckoned it was the effect of the Splinter and Mindfield. Or maybe some memories just never fade.
"When I was eight, there was this man at the mall," I continued, the taste of grass bitter on my tongue. "He said he could see through anything. And me? I was a kid obsessed with superheroes. X-ray vision, laser eyes¡ªthe whole deal. So when this guy started talking, I was all in. He wasn¡¯t a street magician or one of those weird guys in tinfoil hats. He looked... normal. Like someone¡¯s uncle who got lost on his way to the food court."
"The way he described his powers was mesmerizing. He made it sound effortless. Just... looking, and knowing. I thought it was the coolest thing ever. But looking back, I think he was just enjoying the attention. Some wide-eyed kid hanging on to his every word."
I let out a slow breath, rubbing a bit of dirt between my fingers. "Then he did something strange. He reached out, grabbed my hand, and said, ¡®Let me show you.¡¯ And suddenly... I wasn¡¯t seeing through my own eyes anymore."
"At first, it was incredible. I could see through people like they were made of glass. Their clothes vanished, like some magic trick. But then... it changed. Their skin faded, layer by layer. Muscle peeled away. I could see their lungs expand, their hearts beating, their bones shifting as they moved. Then even those disappeared. It was like looking into nothingness. And in that nothingness, there were beautiful patterns. Coiling, twisting, infinite. Things I didn¡¯t have words for. Things I still don¡¯t."
I swallowed. Even now, recalling it sent a ripple of unease through me. "I turned to ask him what was happening. But when I looked beside me... he was gone. Just gone. Like he¡¯d never been there at all."
Jade¡¯s brow furrowed slightly, her curiosity clear, but she stayed silent.
¡°The incident didn¡¯t scare me though¡± I admitted, ¡°If anything, it left me fascinated. After that, I¡¯d stare at people for hours, waiting, hoping to see it happen again. I¡¯d watch objects, buildings¡ªanything¡ªjust to experience that strange sight one more time. My parents started getting concerned after our relatives started saying something was wrong with me. I even had to attend therapy for two years. But no matter how long I stared at things, I never saw anything like it again.¡±
I chuckled, shaking my head. ¡°It wasn¡¯t anything extraordinary in the end, just a fleeting moment that stuck with me for years. Funny how those things work.¡±
"It became your meta-nature catalyst," Jade said quietly, understanding dawning in her eyes.
"Yeah. It shaped how I saw reality ¨C or rather, how I wanted to see it." I turned to face her fully. "Want to guess what my real obsession was?"
She thought for a moment, head tilted. "To see through everything?"
I shook my head, my smile widening. ¡°No. It¡¯s to see everything through.¡±
Her brows furrowed as she tried to process my words, but I continued before she could say more. ¡°That day, I was angry at the man for disappearing halfway through¡ªfor not explaining everything to me. He left just when things started to get interesting, just when I felt like I was on the verge of understanding something incredible. I couldn¡¯t see what I wanted to see. So now¡¡±
I paused, chewing on the thought, then finished, ¡°I want to see everything through¡ªto the end. No half-measures, no unfinished answers.¡±
For a few moments, we sat in silence. Jade didn¡¯t speak, and neither did I. The quiet felt almost comforting, but my mind was already drifting to what I needed to do next. I thought about heading back inside to clean up for the next phase of experiments. But the task wasn¡¯t something I could handle alone¡ªI needed someone who had a meta-nature that could build and had a solid grasp of technology. Fortunately, such meta-natures weren¡¯t too rare, about one in ten thousand. Compared to telekinesis, gravity manipulation, or other abilities dealing with abstract concepts, the odds were practically favorable.
"Let''s go inside," I said, pushing myself halfway up. But Jade''s hand caught mine, the sudden contact making me pause. When I looked back, her expression made me settle back down. "Everything okay?"
She met my eyes, and something in her gaze made me wait. "It''s control," she said, her voice soft but certain.
"Control?" I tilted my head, not following.
She nodded, and this time when she spoke, the word carried more weight, like she was sharing something she''d never said aloud before. "For me, it''s the strong urge to have control over everything."
That should have made sense, but something didn''t fit. Jade was probably the least controlling person I''d ever met. She''d never tried to dictate my choices, never tried to change me. She was the opposite of controlling, actually. She went with the flow, turned disasters into adventures, made chaos look like an art form.
"You don''t believe me," she said, reading my expression.
"It''s not that. Just¡ You''re the least controlling person I know," I said, settling back down beside her. It wasn''t flattery ¨C just truth.
The fact that she was sharing this at all felt huge. People''s obsessions were like buried treasure ¨C the dark, precious things we keep locked away where no one can find them. They''re the parts of ourselves we don''t show anyone, the shadows we pretend don''t exist. And here was Jade, willingly cracking open that vault for me.
She wouldn''t meet my eyes, staring instead at the grass like it held answers. "Promise you won''t... just promise you won''t judge me too harshly?"
The idea that she thought I could hate her was almost funny ¨C in a sad way.
"Hey," I said softly, "after everything we''ve been through? You could tell me you secretly control the weather with interpretive dance and I wouldn''t judge."
That got a small smile out of her, but it faded quickly. "It''s not about controlling things the way you''re thinking," she said, choosing her words carefully. "It''s... the need to impose myself on everything, and imprint myself on the world.¡±
Her confession left me momentarily speechless. What must someone have experienced to develop an obsession like that? Her words lingered in my mind, pieces of a puzzle clicking into place. I understood now why she¡¯d asked for my promise, why the person in the background had sent her to Earth, and why she constantly bled into her surroundings, distorting reality itself. Why I was always in so much trouble! It all made sense¡ªfinally, a big clue revealed itself.
"Are you mad?" Jade''s voice was small, uncertain ¨C so different from her usual confidence. She looked ready to bolt, like she''d revealed too much of herself and was waiting for the consequences.
I couldn''t help but chuckle. Leave it to Jade to worry about my reaction when she''d just dropped a bombshell. "Do you want me to be mad?"
"Never." The word came out quick, almost desperate, and she looked up at me with those impossibly innocent eyes, making me lose my focus.
"Then let''s go inside," I said, pushing myself up and offering my hand. "We''ve got a experiment gone wrong to clean up."
Act 2.25 (Chrysalis: Ownerless Book Spirit)
For the next couple of hours, Jade and I worked tirelessly, moving equipment and materials between rooms. We were setting up a new containment chamber since our last experiment had rendered the original room unusable. The arcane spell had fused everything together, melting objects into one another until they became an inseparable techno-horror mass.
I sighed, feeling the weight of the mess I''d made. The only option left was to somehow move the spell to a new space, but I had no idea how to do that yet. Worse, I''d have to spend millions replacing all the machinery and devices I''d lost. What a headache.
"You really outdid yourself this time," Jade muttered as we passed the sealed door.
I couldn''t argue with that assessment.
Complicating matters further, the lab I was running was technically illegal. I hadn''t filed the necessary paperwork with the government to conduct experiments of this nature. The Thaumaturgical Research and Safety Commission had become increasingly strict after the Meridian City incident last year¡ªsomething about a rogue experiment creating a temporary dimensional rift. If this kind of incident happened again and the supers picked up on the disturbances in the area, I''d be in serious trouble.
Suddenly two objectives became clear in my mind. First, I needed to secure an official license for the lab while sourcing and purchasing the replacement equipment. Second, I needed to find someone with a techno-based meta-nature to help stabilize and streamline my operations.
As I mentally outlined my next steps, Jade came running toward me, her tote bag clutched in her hand. "My phone isn''t working."
I frowned and pulled my own phone from my pocket. A few taps later, I sighed. "Mine''s not working either."
Great. I sighed inwardly. ¡°Looks like it¡¯s time to buy new ones.¡± Fortunately, most data was stored in the cloud these days, so I wasn¡¯t too worried about losing anything important.
¡°I¡¯ll get you a new phone,¡± I added, glancing at Jade.
She agreed, but not without pulling a cute scowl. ¡°You¡¯d better,¡± she muttered, crossing her arms dramatically.
I raised my eyes at her antics, I wanted to ask if wasn¡¯t it she who wanted to accompany me during the experiment?
The arrogant dragon was angry without contemplating her actions or reasons. How bad!
The Beyonder''s Academy library was nothing out of the ordinary¡ªjust a regular library, albeit one packed with more books and papers than anyone could ever hope to read in a lifetime. The scent of old books and coffee lingered in the air, mixing with the quiet rustling of pages. It was housed in a separate building from the rest of the academy, and I rarely graced it with my presence except during exams. And right now? It was exam season. Predictably, our entire class was spread out across the library floors.
I found Alex on the third floor, sitting in the open study area where conversation was allowed. Most of the tables were occupied, students poring over their notes and textbooks, some muttering formulas under their breath. Honestly, I had considered sitting down and cramming some knowledge into my head, but in the end, I''d resigned myself to my usual strategy: scrape by with average marks. Studying just wasn''t worth the stress.
"Hey," I greeted Alex, pulling up the empty chair beside him.
He had a thick textbook open in front of him and was busy solving dimension and matrix-related physics problems. From what I could see, he was pretty good at it¡ªbetter than I was when I had to tackle those nightmares for the first time. Physics and I had never gotten along, like oil and water.
Alex set his pen down and leaned back in his chair, stretching with a groan that earned him a few annoyed glances from nearby tables.
"Tired?" I asked, noting the weariness in his movements and the empty energy drink cans lined up at the edge of his desk.
"I can''t think straight," he chuckled, rubbing his temples. "How could anyone solve and calculate these?"
"Well, they are extremely important."
"Important, my ass," he muttered, flicking his pen at the textbook. "I swear, this stuff is just mathematical torture disguised as science."
I watched as he shuffled through his jacket, suddenly looking more alert.
He pulled out his phone, practically bouncing with excitement as he turned the screen toward me. His account balance was displayed in bold numbers: a whopping four hundred and seventy million. His eyes gleamed brighter than I''d ever seen, and he looked ready to burst from sheer glee. I couldn''t help but smirk¡ªit was clear he''d never seen that much money in his life. Honestly, I was relieved he couldn''t just run off with it; otherwise, I might''ve worried he''d forget all about us in favor of the cash.
"Everything went well?" I asked, glancing up at him.
Alex nodded eagerly, his fingers still hovering over the phone screen. "I followed your instructions exactly. No issues, no flags, nothing. It¡¯s all there."
"Good," I replied with a firm nod, relieved our small gamble had paid off. "Now, you can keep twenty percent for your help, and then initiate a bank transfer for the rest."
Alex¡¯s eyes widened slightly, his brain immediately switching to calculation mode. His lips parted slightly as he did the math, his expression flickering between disbelief and exhilaration.
"That''s..." he started calculating in his head, "ninety-four million? Are you serious?"
I leaned back, arms crossed. "Do I look like I¡¯m joking?"
"Not usually, but¡ªholy shit," he breathed, his hands trembling slightly as he started the transfer. His entire demeanor was a mix of shock, excitement, and nervous energy. "This is insane. Do you even realize how much money this is?"
To be fair, it was probably a lot of money for someone like him, who lived a relatively normal life. Well, relatively¡ªif you ignored his current involvement in trying to dismantle a villain gang. There was no denying that the little group I was part of was completely mental.
"I do," I said dryly. "Which is why I¡¯d appreciate it if you didn¡¯t have a heart attack over it."
Alex let out a short laugh, shaking his head as he keyed in the necessary details. "Man, I don¡¯t even know what I¡¯d do with this kind of money. I feel like I should be buying a yacht or something."
I snorted. "Please don¡¯t. That would be the worst way to get attention."
"Okay, okay," he relented, still grinning. "No yachts. Maybe just a really nice gaming setup."
"Much safer."
"Thanks again," Alex said, an embarrassed smile spreading across his face as he began the transfer. His hands trembled slightly over the phone. "You can call me if you ever do something like this again," he added, his tone eager.
Did he just get hooked? I wondered briefly. In the end, he¡¯d earned the money he received, so I didn¡¯t feel bad about giving him a small chunk. He¡¯d taken the risks, after all.
¡°Sure,¡± I said with a nod. ¡°We might be doing something similar at the end of this month. I¡¯ll call you then.¡±
Alex practically buzzed with excitement, his energy almost contagious. ¡°You¡¯re the best,¡± he exclaimed, and to my surprise, he pulled me into a hug.
I hadn¡¯t expected that, but¡ it felt good. How odd.
"Alright, alright," I muttered, patting his back awkwardly. "Don¡¯t get all sentimental on me."
Alex pulled back, grinning. "Hey, let me have my moment.¡±
For the next few minutes, we talked about random things¡ªstuff happening around the academy, the city, or even beyond. Villain attacks, supers trying to save the day, and the status of the ongoing investigation. The news on that front wasn¡¯t great; progress was slow. Although the city had managed to capture a few gang members, they hadn¡¯t revealed much about where the rest of the missing people were being held.
Alex frowned as he scrolled through the latest reports on his phone. "You¡¯d think with all the tech and resources they have, they¡¯d be closer to finding them by now."
"You¡¯d think," I echoed, my mind drifting to a troubling thought.
If more than four hundred people were being kept underground, how were the villains feeding them? Assuming they were still alive, keeping that many captives nourished and stable was no small feat. Sooner or later, fear, malnourishment, or worse would set in, and they wouldn''t be able to use them for whatever cause they needed them.
I tapped my fingers against the table. "They¡¯ve got to be keeping them somewhere that¡¯s at least somewhat sustainable."
"Maybe," Alex mused. "Or maybe they don¡¯t care if they make it out alive."
That wasn¡¯t a pleasant thought.
I exhaled slowly, shifting gears. "Do you know anyone who¡¯s good with computers?"
Alex arched an eyebrow. "Other than me?"
"Someone whose meta specializes in security breaches, digital tracking, or maybe even AI analysis."
Alex blinked at me, clearly puzzled by the sudden question. I elaborated quickly. ¡°I want to track if a large amount of food is being purchased and stored somewhere. Water, electricity diverted. If the villains are keeping those people alive, they¡¯d need to feed, and keep them warm them. Maybe that could give us a lead.¡±
Alex¡¯s expression shifted, his initial confusion replaced by surprise. ¡°Huh. That¡¯s actually¡ a really good angle.¡± His fingers drummed against the table before he pulled out his phone. ¡°Let me post a message in our class group. Maybe someone in there has the skills, or at least knows someone who does.¡±
He began typing furiously, his brows furrowed in concentration. I watched in silence for a moment, then¡ª
Wait¡ class group?
A pang of sadness hit me out of nowhere.
What class group?
Why wasn¡¯t I in this so-called class group?
A wave of melancholy washed over me. These people clearly didn¡¯t consider me important enough to add to their little group chat. How tragic. All those hours spent around them, yet I was still an afterthought. Left out. Abandoned. A lone wanderer in the vast desert of social rejection.
Alex, oblivious to my sudden inner turmoil, finished typing and looked up at me with a sly smile. ¡°By the way, I saw Jade earlier on this floor,¡± he said, his tone dripping with amusement.
I rolled my eyes. ¡°Yeah? And?¡±
His grin widened. ¡°Nothing. Just thought it was interesting. She looked like she was deep in thought. Maybe even¡ avoiding someone.¡±
I scoffed. ¡°Avoiding who, exactly?¡±
Alex shrugged, his smirk telling me exactly what he meant.
Oh, please. Like if she had her ways, she would eat me alive. Avoid me? Ridiculous.
Still, the thought lingered, a small, unnecessary itch at the back of my mind.
I waved a dismissive hand. ¡°She¡¯s probably just reading or something. You know, doing normal, productive things. Unlike you.¡±
¡°Hey!¡± Alex feigned offense. ¡°I¡¯m being incredibly productive right now. I¡¯m actively seeking out underground tech specialists for a top-secret operation. That¡¯s gotta count for something.¡±
I let out a small chuckle. ¡°Sure. You¡¯re basically a spy.¡±
¡°Damn right I am,¡± he said proudly, tapping his phone screen. ¡°Alright, sent the message. Now we just wait.¡±
¡°Let me know when you get a reply,¡± I said, standing up and stretching.
Alex gave me a mock salute. ¡°Aye, Captain. If I crack the case before you, I want a bonus.¡±
I snorted. ¡°Dream on.¡±
And with that, I quickly skittered away from Alex, shaking my head at his antics.If you discover this tale on Amazon, be aware that it has been unlawfully taken from Royal Road. Please report it.
I began strolling through the tall rows of bookshelves, letting my eyes scan over the endless spines of books. Of course, I wasn¡¯t just wandering aimlessly¡ªI was looking for the other half of myself. I didn¡¯t need anyone to tell me Jade¡¯s location; as long as we were within a few meters of each other, we could feel each other¡¯s presence. It was just how our meta-natures malfunctioned¡ªor resonated, depending on perspective.
I wandered for a while, my attention occasionally drawn to the sky and clouds outside through the tall windows. It was sunny, and the bubbling clouds were picturesque, almost unreal in their softness. The way the light spilled into the library was oddly calming.
Still, I quickly refocused and pressed on. The library was too big for to be scoured in dozen minutes.
After about ten minutes, I caught a glimpse of someone familiar.
She was far enough away that we hadn¡¯t noticed each other¡¯s presence yet, but I recognized her instantly. Jade was standing between two shelves, flipping through the pages of a book, her brows furrowed in concentration. She was scowling slightly, and it made her look unintentionally cute.
Her style was expensive, fancy, and elegant; this much we had in common. She wore a fuzzy gradient cardigan that faded from soft white to deep brown at the cuffs, its pearl-like buttons adding a vintage charm. A crisp navy pleated midi skirt flared gracefully as she moved, cinched at the waist with a brown leather belt that accentuated her polished look. Dark brown cowboy boots, adorned with subtle embroidery, peeked from beneath the hem. A structured brown leather handbag dangled from her fingers beneath the book she carried, its gold hardware gleaming under the light.
Her soft waves cascaded over her shoulders, framing her delicate features, with a pair of gold hoop earrings catching the faintest glimmer¡ªa perfect blend of refined sophistication and effortless grace.
I had to admire her gift for fashion. It wasn''t just about wearing expensive clothes; Jade had this supernatural ability to make anything look runway-ready. No¡ªit went beyond the clothes themselves. She was just naturally stunning, turning everything around her into something extraordinary by simply existing.
Of course, her tastes weren''t exactly budget-friendly. Our three shopping trips together had been educational, to say the least. That "simple" fuzzy cardigan? Probably from some limited artist collaboration that cost more than a month''s rent. But Jade never seemed bothered by price tags, treating thousand-dollar purchases like they were pocket change. And now, after our lottery win, her already impressive spending power had reached new heights.
Still, Jade wasn¡¯t the type to flaunt her wealth obnoxiously¡ªit was more like she just¡ lived in a different financial reality.
Anyway, I kept my distance, following her movements as she skipped from bookshelf to bookshelf. She moved quickly, almost methodically, plucking one book off the shelf only to glance at it briefly and put it back before moving to the next. She reminded me of a cat tracking something only she could see. A few other students in this section watched her with bemused expressions, probably wondering if exam stress had finally claimed another victim.
Yet, books seemed to ripple in her wake as she moved. Most people wouldn''t notice it, but I knew better¡ªthere was meta at work here.
Finally, Jade''s face lit up with that familiar "gotcha" grin, and she dropped to the floor right there between Psychology and Ancient History, clutching a weathered book to her chest. The triumph in her expression was almost comical.
Watching her, something clicked in my mind: Jade stumbled into just as many weird situations as I did, maybe even more. The difference was she treated them like adventures while I treated them like problems to solve. Case in point: whatever this current book-hunting expedition was about.
I immediately phased through the last bookshelf separating us.
"What are you doing?" I asked, trying to sound disapproving but probably failing. It was hard to be serious when she looked so pleased with herself.
She jumped at my voice, but her surprise instantly melted into a bright smile. Her hair was wild from her library chase, and her flower choker necklace had gone slightly crooked. "I caught something!" she declared proudly, holding up the book like she''d just won first prize at a competition.
I raised an eyebrow, staring at what appeared to be ¡®The Lost Writings of Evermore?¡¯ Sounds dramatic .
"Inside the book?" The way her eyes sparkled told me this was going to be another one of those stories that started with "You''ll never believe what I found..."
¡°Come closer, I¡¯ll show you,¡± she said, beckoning me with a happy wave.
There was a mischievous twinkle in her eyes¡ªthe kind that always made me wary of her antics.
I crouched down beside her, and she opened the book as though revealing a precious secret. What I saw inside made me freeze.
A tiny figure, constructed entirely from living text, moved across the pages. Words and letters flowed like liquid, constantly shifting and rearranging to form its body, limbs, and increasingly agitated expressions. The creature paced back and forth, leaving trails of displaced sentences in its wake. When it noticed me staring, it stopped abruptly and glared upward. Its body rippled with indignation, letters rearranging themselves to form "LET ME OUT" across its chest like a protest sign.
Jade beamed. ¡°See?¡± she whispered, clearly delighted with her discovery.
I stared in disbelief. ¡°What¡ is that?¡± I asked, my voice barely above a whisper.
Jade¡¯s grin widened, like a kid showing off a particularly cool bug she¡¯d caught. ¡°I don¡¯t know exactly, but isn¡¯t it amazing?¡± she said, her tone filled with wonder. ¡°I was flipping through books, trying to find something interesting, and this little guy jumped out of nowhere. Then it kept jumping from one to another. He thought he could get away, but¡±¡ªshe held up the book proudly¡ª¡°I caught him!¡±
"You... caught him." It wasn''t a question. My brain was too busy short-circuiting to form proper questions. This wasn''t like catching a runaway magical paper airplane or an enchanted bookmark.
Jade nodded. ¡°Yeah! It took me forever, too. He was fast.¡±
"You know, that''s not a butterfly. That''s... that''s a living being or person! Probably someone with a meta-nature that lets them enter books."
I watched as the figure flopped onto its back in theatrical despair, its body spelling out "UNFAIR" like a tiny typographical temper tantrum.
She shrugged, completely unfazed by the ethical implications. "Well, he shouldn''t have been causing trouble. Do you know how many books he made me run through? The entire Advanced Metaphysics section is completely shuffled!" She pointed accusingly at the figure, which had now arranged itself into what appeared to be a miniature fainting couch made of punctuation marks.
I rubbed my temple, feeling a headache building. Thanks to her meta, this person¡ªthis living, thinking being¡ªwas now trapped between the pages like a pressed flower. She¡¯d taken away all his existing possibilities to escape without a second thought.
The horrible realization hit me: She was accidentally torturing someone in a book, treating it like she''d just won a game of hide-and-seek.
How infuriating¡ªand, in a strange way, very Jade.
"Just so you forgot, that¡¯s some poor guy inside a book and you¡¯re torturing him right now," I pointed out.
She huffed. "Oh, please. I¡¯m not torturing him. I¡¯m just¡ detaining him. For questioning."
The figure aggressively formed the word "KIDNAPPING!" across its tiny chest, waving its arms in furious protest.
I turned to her, deadpan. "He disagrees."
Jade sighed dramatically and leaned closer to the book. ¡°Okay, fine, I¡¯ll let you go. But only if you promise not to run away again.¡±
The figure hesitated, then quickly rearranged its body into the words "I PROMISE."
I narrowed my eyes. ¡°That was too fast. He¡¯s lying.¡±
"Let''s book an empty room first," I suggested, keeping my face neutral despite my growing curiosity about this person''s meta-nature. My choice of words hit me a second later. "We''ll tortur¡ªI mean, investigate him together." Real smooth.
Jade bounced on her heels, nodding so enthusiastically I thought she might fly off.
After securing a study room from the front desk , we made our way down the hallway. Jade''s grip on the book never loosened¡ªclearly, she wasn''t taking any chances with our typographical escapee making a break for the nearest dictionary.
"You''re holding that thing like it''s going to sprout legs and run away," I noted aloud.
"Because it will," she shot back, her fingers tightening even further. "You can''t see it with your limited perception, but actually I''m holding onto thousands of future frames with multiple possibilities of him escaping. In one, he slips through page 394. In another, he makes a break for that physics textbook on the next table. There''s even one where he tries to hide in the page numbers. This guy is clearly no ordinary. So, I have to anchoring all those possibilities in place so none of them can actually happen. Think of it like... holding down every corner of a thousand paper airplanes all at once, right before they try to take flight. Miss one, and the whole thing falls apart."
No wonder she looked so focused.
¡°Pretty sure the librarians wouldn¡¯t appreciate us interrogating a book spirit in one of their rooms,¡± I mused as we reached the door.
¡°It¡¯s not a spirit, it¡¯s a student,¡± she corrected, nudging the door open with her hip. ¡°And besides, I¡¯m sure people do way weirder things in study rooms.¡±
She winked at me.
I clicked my tongue. She was shameless as ever, "I don''t even want to know what you''re implying."
Jade smirked, stepping inside, ¡°I¡¯m just saying, people get up to all sorts of things behind closed doors.¡±
I stared at her. ¡°...You¡¯re proud of that logic, aren¡¯t you?¡±
¡°Extremely.¡±
I sighed, dragging a chair out and sitting down. ¡°Let¡¯s just interrogate the book-person before you get any more ideas.¡±
Jade pouted but sat down across from me, placing the book in the center of the table. She took the lead, delicately opening it again.
The figure was still there, now dramatically slumped with its head between its knees, text rippling with what could only be described as sulking. It would have been hilarious if I wasn''t acutely aware this was an actual person we were keeping captive.
In a library book. On exam week. Sometimes I wondered how this became my normal.
Jade barely contained her excitement, her feet tapping rapidly under the table despite the serious tone she adopted. ¡°Let me ask him first.¡±
¡°By all means,¡± I gestured. ¡°I wouldn¡¯t dare get in the way of your expert interrogation techniques.¡±
She ignored my sarcasm and leaned closer to the book. ¡°Who are you?¡± she asked, her voice firm and direct.
The letters and words on the page morphed rapidly, rearranging themselves into a dialog box. Within the box, more words appeared, forming a response.
¡°I¡¯m Callisto, a second-year student at the academy. I¡¯m telling you, let me go, or this won¡¯t end well for you! I¡¯ll report you to the academy¡ªand to my friends! You are in a lot of trouble. You don¡¯t know how far my connections go¡¡±
¡°YOU DON¡¯T KNOW WHO YOU¡¯RE DEALING WITH.¡±
Jade gasped, ¡°Oh no! Are you secretly a mafia prince?¡±
¡°A shadow ruler?¡± I added, playing along.
Jade leaned in. ¡°A crime lord¡¯s heir, destined to reclaim his lost throne?¡±
Callisto rearranged himself into ¡°I HATE BOTH OF YOU.¡±
The little figure gestured dramatically as it yapped on, clearly agitated.
Jade snapped the book shut without hesitation, cutting him off mid-rant.
I blinked. ¡°Jade.¡±
She held up a hand. ¡°Nope. Not listening to threats today. My quota is already full for this month.¡±
I raised my hands in defeat. I didn¡¯t want to be the one on her chopping board.
¡°At least we know his name and that he¡¯s a student,¡± Jade said, tilting her head thoughtfully. ¡°He doesn¡¯t seem like a spy or someone with bad intentions.¡±
I stared at her. ¡°You¡¯re acting like you caught a stray cat and are deciding whether to adopt it.¡±
She gave me a look. ¡°He ran around and made me chase him. That is very cat-like behavior.¡±
Callisto aggressively reshaped himself into ¡°EXCUSE YOU¡± before rolling back into an angry mess of shifting letters.
Jade smirked. ¡°See? He¡¯s got an attitude too.¡±
I sighed, leaning back slightly in my chair. ¡°Fine, but maybe we should actually ask him what he was doing inside the books before we start classifying him as a new pet.¡±
Jade opened the book again, and the figure stood quietly this time. It seemed he¡¯d grown scared, realizing that Jade had no intention of releasing him even after learning his identity. I wondered if he was silently cursing his luck, wondering what kind of lunatics he¡¯d run into today. The thought made me chuckle inwardly¡ªit was darkly amusing, in its own way.
The guy must be shitting his pants¡ªif he had a real body somewhere to shit in.
Jade tapped the page lightly. ¡°Okay, okay. What were you doing in the books?¡±
The words formed again in the dialog box on the page.
¡°I was just reading. It¡¯s much faster than staring at the books for hours.¡±
More text appeared beneath it:
¡°I can dive into the text like water and soak everything up like a sponge.¡±
I frowned slightly. That was¡ actually a pretty useful ability. Not exactly threatening, just unique. Maybe he was telling the truth.
But then, the dialog box began to glitch. The words deformed, breaking apart into streaks of ink.
New text appeared in a frantic scrawl:
¡°Please let me go! I swear I¡¯ll never tell anyone about this¡ªand I won¡¯t jump between books ever again!¡±
The figure inside seemed to tremble, its tiny hands wringing together.
Then, the letters distorted further, melting into inky tendrils that seeped into the pages, trying to escape. He was clearly desperate, but his methods might¡¯ve worked if he weren¡¯t dealing with Jade.
Without hesitation, she snapped the book shut again, trapping him once more.
I watched her, raising an eyebrow. ¡°Okay, I have to ask¡ªwhat exactly are you hoping to get out of this?¡±
Jade didn¡¯t answer immediately.
I exhaled. ¡°Because, honestly? He¡¯s not useful to us in any way. If anything, this is just¡¡± I gestured vaguely. ¡°¡a little cruel?¡±
Jade turned her head slightly, her eyes narrowing as she whispered, ¡°He¡¯s lying.¡±
That caught my attention immediately. She rarely jumped to conclusions without a reason. I leaned in, intrigued.
She studied my expression for a moment before explaining.
Slowly, she opened the book again. The trapped figure quivered as her voice took on an edge.
¡°I study regularly at the library,¡± Jade said. ¡°And over the past few weeks, I¡¯ve noticed something strange. Books I¡¯ve read before suddenly have missing dates, missing important figures. Some fantasy books have entire chapters or characters gone, like they never existed.¡±
The figure inside the book froze.
Jade continued, her tone unwavering.
¡°Why do you think I laid a trap to catch you?¡± She leaned in slightly, her eyes sharp. ¡°You¡¯re stealing things from the books, aren¡¯t you? Don¡¯t lie to me¡ªI already know you¡¯ve got some other motive.¡±
My eyes widened as I processed her words.
The book figure¡ªthis strange, living amalgamation of words¡ªstood frozen on the page, its previously animated movements eerily still.
For a moment, the only sound in the room was the faint rustling of the library¡¯s distant air vents.
Then, finally, the tiny figure began moving again. This time, slowly.
Deliberately.
Its tiny head tilted upward, and then, letter by letter, it rearranged itself into a single word.
¡°PROVE IT.¡±
Jade smirked. ¡°Gladly.¡±
She reached into her bag and pulled out a small, leather-bound notebook. I recognized it immediately¡ªit was her personal reading log, something she kept religiously updated.
Flipping through the pages, she landed on a specific entry. Her finger tapped the page firmly.
¡°Three weeks ago, I read ¡®The Iron Crown Chronicles.¡¯ Chapter 17 was about the war council meeting. When I reread it last week?¡± Her eyes flicked toward Callisto. ¡°There was no war council. No meeting. No mention of the battle plans. It was like that entire piece of history had been erased.¡±
Callisto said nothing.
Jade turned another page.
¡°Same with ¡®The Moonlit Pact.¡¯ I remember a whole subplot about the second prince. But now? He doesn¡¯t exist. The entire story changed. Not just minor details¡ªwhole narratives shifted.¡±
Her voice lowered, intense.
¡°Someone is either editing or stealing content from the books. And I¡¯m pretty damn sure that someone is you.¡±
I exhaled slowly, realization clicking into place. If what she was saying was true, this wasn¡¯t just a weird meta-ability. This was something dangerous. Someone who could rewrite knowledge itself.
The figure stood frozen on the page, no longer the dramatic victim, but instead, caught red handed for his crimes.